Quotations.ch
  Directory : New Arabian Nights
GUIDE SUPPORT US BLOG
  • The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Works of Robert Louis Stevenson -
  • Swanston Edition Vol. 4 (of 25), by Robert Louis Stevenson
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
  • Title: The Works of Robert Louis Stevenson - Swanston Edition Vol. 4 (of 25)
  • Author: Robert Louis Stevenson
  • Other: Andrew Lang
  • Release Date: December 17, 2009 [EBook #30700]
  • Language: English
  • *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK WORKS--R.L. STEVENSON, VOL 4 (OF 25) ***
  • Produced by Marius Masi, Jonathan Ingram and the Online
  • Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
  • THE WORKS OF
  • ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON
  • SWANSTON EDITION
  • VOLUME IV
  • _Of this SWANSTON EDITION in Twenty-five
  • Volumes of the Works of ROBERT LOUIS
  • STEVENSON Two Thousand and Sixty Copies
  • have been printed, of which only Two Thousand
  • Copies are for sale._
  • _This is No._ .......
  • [Illustration: TREE AT SWANSTON BEARING INITIALS OF R. L. S.]
  • THE WORKS OF
  • ROBERT LOUIS
  • STEVENSON
  • VOLUME FOUR
  • LONDON : PUBLISHED BY CHATTO AND
  • WINDUS : IN ASSOCIATION WITH CASSELL
  • AND COMPANY LIMITED : WILLIAM
  • HEINEMANN : AND LONGMANS GREEN
  • AND COMPANY MDCCCCXI
  • ALL RIGHTS RESERVED
  • CONTENTS
  • NEW ARABIAN NIGHTS
  • THE SUICIDE CLUB
  • PAGE
  • STORY OF THE YOUNG MAN WITH THE CREAM TARTS 5
  • THE STORY OF THE PHYSICIAN AND THE SARATOGA TRUNK 37
  • THE ADVENTURE OF THE HANSOM CABS 65
  • THE RAJAH'S DIAMOND
  • STORY OF THE BANDBOX 86
  • STORY OF THE YOUNG MAN IN HOLY ORDERS 111
  • THE STORY OF THE HOUSE WITH THE GREEN BLINDS 127
  • THE ADVENTURE OF PRINCE FLORIZEL AND A DETECTIVE 159
  • THE PAVILION ON THE LINKS
  • CHAPTER
  • I. TELLS HOW I CAMPED IN GRADEN SEA-WOOD, AND BEHELD A
  • LIGHT IN THE PAVILION 167
  • II. TELLS OF THE NOCTURNAL LANDING FROM THE YACHT 174
  • III. TELLS HOW I BECAME ACQUAINTED WITH MY WIFE 180
  • IV. TELLS IN WHAT A STARTLING MANNER I LEARNED THAT I WAS
  • NOT ALONE IN GRADEN SEA-WOOD 189
  • V. TELLS OF AN INTERVIEW BETWEEN NORTHMOUR, CLARA, AND
  • MYSELF 197
  • VI. TELLS OF MY INTRODUCTION TO THE TALL MAN 202
  • VII. TELLS HOW A WORD WAS CRIED THROUGH THE PAVILION WINDOW 208
  • VIII. TELLS THE LAST OF THE TALL MAN 214
  • IX. TELLS HOW NORTHMOUR CARRIED OUT HIS THREAT 221
  • A LODGING FOR THE NIGHT 227
  • THE SIRE DE MALÉTROIT'S DOOR 250
  • PROVIDENCE AND THE GUITAR 273
  • NEW ARABIAN NIGHTS
  • TO
  • ROBERT ALAN MOWBRAY STEVENSON
  • IN GRATEFUL REMEMBRANCE OF THEIR YOUTH AND THEIR ALREADY OLD AFFECTION
  • NEW ARABIAN NIGHTS
  • THE SUICIDE CLUB
  • STORY OF THE YOUNG MAN WITH THE CREAM TARTS
  • During his residence in London, the accomplished Prince Florizel of
  • Bohemia gained the affection of all classes by the seduction of his
  • manner and by a well-considered generosity. He was a remarkable man even
  • by what was known of him; and that was but a small part of what he
  • actually did. Although of a placid temper in ordinary circumstances, and
  • accustomed to take the world with as much philosophy as any ploughman,
  • the Prince of Bohemia was not without a taste for ways of life more
  • adventurous and eccentric than that to which he was destined by his
  • birth. Now and then, when he fell into a low humour, when there was no
  • laughable play to witness in any of the London theatres, and when the
  • season of the year was unsuitable to those field sports in which he
  • excelled all competitors, he would summon his confidant and Master of
  • the Horse, Colonel Geraldine, and bid him prepare himself against an
  • evening ramble. The Master of the Horse was a young officer of a brave
  • and even temerarious disposition. He greeted the news with delight, and
  • hastened to make ready. Long practice and a varied acquaintance of life
  • had given him a singular facility in disguise; he could adapt, not only
  • his face and bearing, but his voice and almost his thoughts, to those of
  • any rank, character, or nation; and in this way he diverted attention
  • from the Prince, and sometimes gained admission for the pair into
  • strange societies. The civil authorities were never taken into the
  • secret of these adventures; the imperturbable courage of the one and the
  • ready invention and chivalrous devotion of the other had brought them
  • through a score of dangerous passes; and they grew in confidence as time
  • went on.
  • One evening in March they were driven by a sharp fall of sleet into an
  • Oyster Bar in the immediate neighbourhood of Leicester Square. Colonel
  • Geraldine was dressed and painted to represent a person connected with
  • the Press in reduced circumstances; while the Prince had, as usual,
  • travestied his appearance by the addition of false whiskers and a pair
  • of large adhesive eyebrows. These lent him a shaggy and weather-beaten
  • air, which, for one of his urbanity, formed the most impenetrable
  • disguise. Thus equipped, the commander and his satellite sipped their
  • brandy and soda in security.
  • The bar was full of guests, male and female; but though more than one of
  • these offered to fall into talk with our adventurers, none of them
  • promised to grow interesting upon a nearer acquaintance. There was
  • nothing present but the lees of London and the commonplace of
  • disrespectability; and the Prince had already fallen to yawning, and was
  • beginning to grow weary of the whole excursion, when the swing doors
  • were pushed violently open, and a young man, followed by a couple of
  • commissionaires, entered the bar. Each of the commissionaires carried a
  • large dish of cream tarts under a cover, which they at once removed; and
  • the young man made the round of the company, and pressed these
  • confections upon every one's acceptance with an exaggerated courtesy.
  • Sometimes the offer was laughingly accepted; sometimes it was firmly, or
  • even harshly, rejected. In these latter cases the new-comer always ate
  • the tart himself, with some more or less humorous commentary.
  • At last he accosted Prince Florizel.
  • "Sir," said he, with a profound obeisance, proffering the tart at the
  • same time between his thumb and forefinger, "will you so far honour an
  • entire stranger? I can answer for the quality of the pastry, having
  • eaten two dozen and three of them myself since five o'clock."
  • "I am in the habit," replied the Prince, "of looking not so much to the
  • nature of a gift as to the spirit in which it is offered."
  • "The spirit, sir," returned the young man, with another bow, "is one of
  • mockery."
  • "Mockery!" repeated Florizel. "And whom do you propose to mock?"
  • "I am not here to expound my philosophy," replied the other, "but to
  • distribute these cream tarts. If I mention that I heartily include
  • myself in the ridicule of the transaction, I hope you will consider
  • honour satisfied and condescend. If not, you will constrain me to eat my
  • twenty-eighth, and I own to being weary of the exercise."
  • "You touch me," said the Prince, "and I have all the will in the world
  • to rescue you from this dilemma, but upon one condition. If my friend
  • and I eat your cakes--for which we have neither of us any natural
  • inclination--we shall expect you to join us at supper by way of
  • recompense."
  • The young man seemed to reflect.
  • "I have still several dozen upon hand," he said at last; "and that will
  • make it necessary for me to visit several more bars before my great
  • affair is concluded. This will take some time; and if you are
  • hungry----"
  • The Prince interrupted him with a polite gesture.
  • "My friend and I will accompany you," he said; "for we have already a
  • deep interest in your very agreeable mode of passing an evening. And now
  • that the preliminaries of peace are settled, allow me to sign the treaty
  • for both."
  • And the Prince swallowed the tart with the best grace imaginable.
  • "It is delicious," said he.
  • "I perceive you are a connoisseur," replied the young man.
  • Colonel Geraldine likewise did honour to the pastry; and every one in
  • that bar having now either accepted or refused his delicacies, the young
  • man with the cream tarts led the way to another and similar
  • establishment. The two commissionaires, who seemed to have grown
  • accustomed to their absurd employment, followed immediately after; and
  • the Prince and the Colonel brought up the rear, arm-in-arm, and smiling
  • to each other as they went. In this order the company visited two other
  • taverns, where scenes were enacted of a like nature to that already
  • described--some refusing, some accepting, the favours of this vagabond
  • hospitality, and the young man himself eating each rejected tart.
  • On leaving the third saloon the young man counted his store. There were
  • but nine remaining, three in one tray and six in the other.
  • "Gentlemen," said he, addressing himself to his two new followers, "I am
  • unwilling to delay your supper. I am positively sure you must be hungry.
  • I feel that I owe you a special consideration. And on this great day for
  • me, when I am closing a career of folly by my most conspicuously silly
  • action, I wish to behave handsomely to all who give me countenance.
  • Gentlemen, you shall wait no longer. Although my constitution is
  • shattered by previous excesses, at the risk of my life I liquidate the
  • suspensory condition."
  • With these words he crushed the nine remaining tarts into his mouth, and
  • swallowed them at a single movement each. Then, turning to the
  • commissionaires, he gave them a couple of sovereigns.
  • "I have to thank you," said he, "for your extraordinary patience."
  • And he dismissed them with a bow apiece. For some seconds he stood
  • looking at the purse from which he had just paid his assistants, then,
  • with a laugh, he tossed it into the middle of the street, and signified
  • his readiness for supper.
  • In a small French restaurant in Soho, which had enjoyed an exaggerated
  • reputation for some little while, but had already begun to be forgotten,
  • and in a private room up two pair of stairs, the three companions made a
  • very elegant supper, and drank three or four bottles of champagne,
  • talking the while upon indifferent subjects. The young man was fluent
  • and gay, but he laughed louder than was natural in a person of polite
  • breeding; his hands trembled violently, and his voice took sudden and
  • surprising inflections, which seemed to be independent of his will. The
  • dessert had been cleared away, and all three had lighted their cigars,
  • when the Prince addressed him in these words:--
  • "You will, I am sure, pardon my curiosity. What I have seen of you has
  • greatly pleased but even more puzzled me. And though I should be loth to
  • seem indiscreet, I must tell you that my friend and I are persons very
  • well worthy to be entrusted with a secret. We have many of our own,
  • which we are continually revealing to improper ears. And if, as I
  • suppose, your story is a silly one, you need have no delicacy with us,
  • who are two of the silliest men in England. My name is Godall,
  • Theophilus Godall; my friend is Major Alfred Hammersmith--or at least,
  • such is the name by which he chooses to be known. We pass our lives
  • entirely in the search for extravagant adventures; and there is no
  • extravagance with which we are not capable of sympathy."
  • "I like you, Mr. Godall," returned the young man; "you inspire me with a
  • natural confidence; and I have not the slightest objection to your
  • friend the Major, whom I take to be a nobleman in masquerade. At least,
  • I am sure he is no soldier."
  • The Colonel smiled at this compliment to the perfection of his art; and
  • the young man went on in a more animated manner.
  • "There is every reason why I should not tell you my story. Perhaps that
  • is just the reason why I am going to do so. At least, you seem so well
  • prepared to hear a tale of silliness that I cannot find it in my heart
  • to disappoint you. My name, in spite of your example, I shall keep to
  • myself. My age is not essential to the narrative. I am descended from my
  • ancestors by ordinary generation, and from them I inherited the very
  • eligible human tenement which I still occupy and a fortune of three
  • hundred pounds a year. I suppose they also handed on to me a harebrain
  • humour, which it has been my chief delight to indulge. I received a good
  • education. I can play the violin nearly well enough to earn money in the
  • orchestra of a penny gaff, but not quite. The same remark applies to the
  • flute and the French horn. I learned enough of whist to lose about a
  • hundred a year at that scientific game. My acquaintance with French was
  • sufficient to enable me to squander money in Paris with almost the same
  • facility as in London. In short, I am a person full of manly
  • accomplishments. I have had every sort of adventure, including a duel
  • about nothing. Only two months ago I met a young lady exactly suited to
  • my taste in mind and body; I found my heart melt; I saw that I had come
  • upon my fate at last, and was in the way to fall in love. But when I
  • came to reckon up what remained to me of my capital, I found it amounted
  • to something less than four hundred pounds! I ask you fairly--can a man
  • who respects himself fall in love on four hundred pounds? I concluded,
  • certainly not; left the presence of my charmer, and slightly
  • accelerating my usual rate of expenditure, came this morning to my last
  • eighty pounds. This I divided into two equal parts; forty I reserved for
  • a particular purpose; the remaining forty I was to dissipate before the
  • night. I have passed a very entertaining day, and played many farces
  • besides that of the cream tarts which procured me the advantage of your
  • acquaintance; for I was determined, as I told you, to bring a foolish
  • career to a still more foolish conclusion; and when you saw me throw my
  • purse into the street the forty pounds were at an end. Now you know me
  • as well as I know myself: a fool, but consistent in his folly; and, as I
  • will ask you to believe, neither a whimperer nor a coward."
  • From the whole tone of the young man's statement it was plain that he
  • harboured very bitter and contemptuous thoughts about himself. His
  • auditors were led to imagine that his love affair was nearer his heart
  • than he admitted, and that he had a design on his own life. The farce of
  • the cream tarts began to have very much the air of a tragedy in
  • disguise.
  • "Why, is this not odd," broke out Geraldine, giving a look to Prince
  • Florizel, "that we three fellows should have met by the merest accident
  • in so large a wilderness as London, and should be so nearly in the same
  • condition?"
  • "How?" cried the young man. "Are you, too, ruined? Is this supper a
  • folly like my cream tarts? Has the devil brought three of his own
  • together for a last carouse?"
  • "The devil, depend upon it, can sometimes do a very gentlemanly thing,"
  • returned Prince Florizel; "and I am so much touched by this coincidence
  • that, although we are not entirely in the same case, I am going to put
  • an end to the disparity. Let your heroic treatment of the last cream
  • tarts be my example."
  • So saying, the Prince drew out his purse and took from it a small bundle
  • of bank-notes.
  • "You see, I was a week or so behind you, but I mean to catch you up and
  • come neck-and-neck into the winning-post," he continued. "This," laying
  • one of the notes upon the table, "will suffice for the bill. As for the
  • rest----"
  • He tossed them into the fire, and they went up the chimney in a single
  • blaze.
  • The young man tried to catch his arm, but as the table was between them
  • his interference came too late.
  • "Unhappy man," he cried, "you should not have burned them all! You
  • should have kept forty pounds."
  • "Forty pounds!" repeated the Prince. "Why, in Heaven's name, forty
  • pounds?"
  • "Why not eighty?" cried the Colonel; "for to my certain knowledge there
  • must have been a hundred in the bundle."
  • "It was only forty pounds he needed," said the young man gloomily. "But
  • without them there is no admission. The rule is strict. Forty pounds for
  • each. Accursed life, where a man cannot even die without money!"
  • The Prince and the Colonel exchanged glances.
  • "Explain yourself," said the latter. "I have still a pocket-book
  • tolerably well lined, and I need not say how readily I should share my
  • wealth with Godall. But I must know to what end: you must certainly tell
  • us what you mean."
  • The young man seemed to awaken: he looked uneasily from one to the
  • other, and his face flushed deeply.
  • "You are not fooling me?" he asked. "You are indeed ruined men like me?"
  • "Indeed, I am for my part," replied the Colonel.
  • "And for mine," said the Prince, "I have given you proof. Who but a
  • ruined man would throw his notes into the fire? The action speaks for
  • itself."
  • "A ruined man--yes," returned the other suspiciously, "or else a
  • millionaire."
  • "Enough, sir," said the Prince; "I have said so, and I am not accustomed
  • to have my word remain in doubt."
  • "Ruined?" said the young man. "Are you ruined, like me? Are you, after a
  • life of indulgence, come to such a pass that you can only indulge
  • yourself in one thing more? Are you"--he kept lowering his voice as he
  • went on--"are you going to give yourselves that last indulgence? Are you
  • going to avoid the consequences of your folly by the one infallible and
  • easy path? Are you going to give the slip to the sheriff's officers of
  • conscience by the one open door?"
  • Suddenly he broke off and attempted to laugh.
  • "Here is your health!" he cried, emptying his glass, "and good-night to
  • you, my merry ruined men."
  • Colonel Geraldine caught him by the arm as he was about to rise.
  • "You lack confidence in us," he said, "and you are wrong. To all your
  • questions I make answer in the affirmative. But I am not so timid, and
  • can speak the Queen's English plainly. We too, like yourself, have had
  • enough of life, and are determined to die. Sooner or later, alone or
  • together, we meant to seek out death and beard him where he lies ready.
  • Since we have met you, and your case is more pressing, let it be
  • to-night--and at once--and, if you will, all three together. Such a
  • penniless trio," he cried, "should go arm-in-arm into the halls of
  • Pluto, and give each other some countenance among the shades!"
  • Geraldine had hit exactly on the manners and intonations that became the
  • part he was playing. The Prince himself was disturbed, and looked over
  • at his confidant with a shade of doubt. As for the young man, the flush
  • came back darkly into his cheek, and his eyes threw out a spark of
  • light.
  • "You are the men for me!" he cried, with an almost terrible gaiety.
  • "Shake hands upon the bargain!" (his hand was cold and wet). "You little
  • know in what a company you will begin the march! You little know in what
  • a happy moment for yourselves you partook of my cream tarts! I am only a
  • unit, but I am a unit in an army. I know Death's private door. I am one
  • of his familiars, and can show you into eternity without ceremony and
  • yet without scandal."
  • They called upon him eagerly to explain his meaning.
  • "Can you muster eighty pounds between you?" he demanded.
  • Geraldine ostentatiously consulted his pocket-book, and replied in the
  • affirmative.
  • "Fortunate beings!" cried the young man. "Forty pounds is the
  • entry-money of the Suicide Club."
  • "The Suicide Club," said the Prince, "why, what the devil is that?"
  • "Listen," said the young man; "this is the age of conveniences, and I
  • have to tell you of the last perfection of the sort. We have affairs in
  • different places; and hence railways were invented. Railways separated
  • us infallibly from our friends; and so telegraphs were made that we
  • might communicate speedily at great distances. Even in hotels we have
  • lifts to spare us a climb of some hundred steps. Now, we know that life
  • is only a stage to play the fool upon as long as the part amuses us.
  • There was one more convenience lacking to modern comfort: a decent, easy
  • way to quit that stage; the back stairs to liberty; or, as I said this
  • moment, Death's private door. This, my two fellow-rebels, is supplied by
  • the Suicide Club. Do not suppose that you and I are alone, or even
  • exceptional, in the highly reasonable desire that we profess. A large
  • number of our fellowmen, who have grown heartily sick of the performance
  • in which they are expected to join daily, and all their lives long, are
  • only kept from flight by one or two considerations. Some have families
  • who would be shocked, or even blamed, if the matter became public;
  • others have a weakness at heart and recoil from the circumstances of
  • death. That is, to some extent, my own experience. I cannot put a pistol
  • to my head and draw the trigger; for something stronger than myself
  • withholds the act; and although I loathe life, I have not strength
  • enough in my body to take hold of death and be done with it. For such as
  • I, and for all who desire to be out of the coil without posthumous
  • scandal, the Suicide Club has been inaugurated. How this has been
  • managed, what is its history, or what may be its ramifications in other
  • lands, I am myself uninformed; and what I know of its constitution, I
  • am not at liberty to communicate to you. To this extent, however, I am
  • at your service. If you are truly tired of life, I will introduce you
  • to-night to a meeting; and if not to-night, at least some time within
  • the week, you will be easily relieved of your existences. It is now
  • (consulting his watch) eleven; by half-past, at latest, we must leave
  • this place; so that you have half an hour before you to consider my
  • proposal. It is more serious than a cream tart," he added, with a smile;
  • "and I suspect more palatable."
  • "More serious, certainly," returned Colonel Geraldine; "and as it is so
  • much more so, will you allow me five minutes' speech in private with my
  • friend Mr. Godall?"
  • "It is only fair," answered the young man. "If you will permit, I will
  • retire."
  • "You will be very obliging," said the Colonel.
  • As soon as the two were alone--"What," said Prince Florizel, "is the use
  • of this confabulation, Geraldine? I see you are flurried, whereas my
  • mind is very tranquilly made up. I will see the end of this."
  • "Your Highness," said the Colonel, turning pale; "let me ask you to
  • consider the importance of your life, not only to your friends, but to
  • the public interest. 'If not to-night,' said this madman; but supposing
  • that to-night some irreparable disaster were to overtake your Highness's
  • person, what, let me ask you, what would be my despair, and what the
  • concern and disaster of a great nation?"
  • "I will see the end of this," repeated the Prince in his most deliberate
  • tones; "and have the kindness, Colonel Geraldine, to remember and
  • respect your word of honour as a gentleman. Under no circumstances,
  • recollect, nor without my special authority, are you to betray the
  • incognito under which I choose to go abroad. These were my commands,
  • which I now reiterate. And now," he added, "let me ask you to call for
  • the bill."
  • Colonel Geraldine bowed in submission; but he had a very white face as
  • he summoned the young man of the cream tarts, and issued his directions
  • to the waiter. The Prince preserved his undisturbed demeanour, and
  • described a Palais-Royal farce to the young suicide with great humour
  • and gusto. He avoided the Colonel's appealing looks without ostentation,
  • and selected another cheroot with more than usual care. Indeed, he was
  • now the only man of the party who kept any command over his nerves.
  • The bill was discharged, the Prince giving the whole change of the note
  • to the astonished waiter; and the three drove off in a four-wheeler.
  • They were not long upon the way before the cab stopped at the entrance
  • to a rather dark court. Here all descended.
  • After Geraldine had paid the fare, the young man turned, and addressed
  • Prince Florizel as follows:--
  • "It is still time, Mr. Godall, to make good your escape into thraldom.
  • And for you too, Major Hammersmith. Reflect well before you take another
  • step; and if your hearts say no--here are the cross-roads."
  • "Lead on, sir," said the Prince, "I am not the man to go back from a
  • thing once said."
  • "Your coolness does me good," replied their guide. "I have never seen
  • any one so unmoved at this conjuncture; and yet you are not the first
  • whom I have escorted to this door. More than one of my friends has
  • preceded me, where I knew I must shortly follow. But this is of no
  • interest to you. Wait me here for only a few moments; I shall return as
  • soon as I have arranged the preliminaries of your introduction."
  • And with that the young man, waving his hand to his companions, turned
  • into the court, entered a doorway and disappeared.
  • "Of all our follies," said Colonel Geraldine in a low voice, "this is
  • the wildest and most dangerous."
  • "I perfectly believe so," returned the Prince.
  • "We have still," pursued the Colonel, "a moment to ourselves. Let me
  • beseech your Highness to profit by the opportunity and retire. The
  • consequences of this step are so dark, and may be so grave, that I feel
  • myself justified in pushing a little further than usual the liberty
  • which your Highness is so condescending as to allow me in private."
  • "Am I to understand that Colonel Geraldine is afraid?" asked his
  • Highness, taking his cheroot from his lips, and looking keenly into the
  • other's face.
  • "My fear is certainly not personal," replied the other proudly; "of that
  • your Highness may rest well assured."
  • "I had supposed as much," returned the Prince, with undisturbed
  • good-humour; "but I was unwilling to remind you of the difference in our
  • stations. No more--no more," he added, seeing Geraldine about to
  • apologise; "you stand excused."
  • And he smoked placidly, leaning against a railing, until the young man
  • returned.
  • "Well," he asked, "has our reception been arranged?"
  • "Follow me," was the reply. "The President will see you in the cabinet.
  • And let me warn you to be frank in your answers. I have stood your
  • guarantee; but the club requires a searching inquiry before admission;
  • for the indiscretion of a single member would lead to the dispersion of
  • the whole society for ever."
  • The Prince and Geraldine put their heads together for a moment. "Bear me
  • out in this," said the one; and "bear me out in that," said the other;
  • and by boldly taking up the characters of men with whom both were
  • acquainted, they had come to an agreement in a twinkling, and were ready
  • to follow their guide into the President's cabinet.
  • There were no formidable obstacles to pass. The outer door stood open;
  • the door of the cabinet was ajar; and there, in a small but very high
  • apartment, the young man left them once more.
  • "He will be here immediately," he said with a nod, as he disappeared.
  • Voices were audible in the cabinet through the folding-doors which
  • formed one end; and now and then the noise of a champagne cork, followed
  • by a burst of laughter, intervened among the sounds of conversation. A
  • single tall window looked out upon the river and the embankment; and by
  • the disposition of the lights they judged themselves not far from
  • Charing Cross station. The furniture was scanty, and the coverings worn
  • to the thread; and there was nothing movable except a hand-bell in the
  • centre of a round table, and the hats and coats of a considerable party
  • hung round the wall on pegs.
  • "What sort of a den is this?" said Geraldine.
  • "That is what I have come to see," replied the Prince. "If they keep
  • live devils on the premises, the thing may grow amusing."
  • Just then the folding-door was opened no more than was necessary for the
  • passage of a human body; and there entered at the same moment a louder
  • buzz of talk, and the redoubtable President of the Suicide Club. The
  • President was a man of fifty or upwards; large and rambling in his gait,
  • with shaggy side whiskers, a bald top to his head, and a veiled grey
  • eye, which now and then emitted a twinkle. His mouth, which embraced a
  • large cigar, he kept continually screwing round and round and from side
  • to side, as he looked sagaciously and coldly at the strangers. He was
  • dressed in light tweeds, with his neck very open in a striped shirt
  • collar; and carried a minute-book under one arm.
  • "Good-evening," said he, after he had closed the door behind him. "I am
  • told you wish to speak with me."
  • "We have a desire, sir, to join the Suicide Club," replied the Colonel.
  • The President rolled his cigar about in his mouth.
  • "What is that?" he said abruptly.
  • "Pardon me," returned the Colonel, "but I believe you are the person
  • best qualified to give us information on that point."
  • "I?" cried the President. "A Suicide Club? Come, come! this is a frolic
  • for All Fools' Day. I can make allowances for gentlemen who get merry
  • in their liquor; but let there be an end to this."
  • "Call your club what you will," said the Colonel; "you have some company
  • behind these doors, and we insist on joining it."
  • "Sir," returned the President curtly, "you have made a mistake. This is
  • a private house, and you must leave it instantly."
  • The Prince had remained quietly in his seat throughout this little
  • colloquy; but now, when the Colonel looked over to him, as much as to
  • say, "Take your answer and come away, for God's sake!" he drew his
  • cheroot from his mouth, and spoke--
  • "I have come here," said he, "upon the invitation of a friend of yours.
  • He has doubtless informed you of my intention in thus intruding on your
  • party. Let me remind you that a person in my circumstances has
  • exceedingly little to bind him, and is not at all likely to tolerate
  • much rudeness. I am a very quiet man, as a usual thing; but, my dear
  • sir, you are either going to oblige me in the little matter of which you
  • are aware, or you shall very bitterly repent that you ever admitted me
  • to your ante-chamber."
  • The President laughed aloud.
  • "That is the way to speak," said he. "You are a man who is a man. You
  • know the way to my heart, and can do what you like with me. Will you,"
  • he continued, addressing Geraldine, "will you step aside for a few
  • minutes? I shall finish first with your companion, and some of the
  • club's formalities require to be fulfilled in private."
  • With the words he opened the door of a small closet, into which he shut
  • the Colonel.
  • "I believe in you," he said to Florizel, as soon as they were alone;
  • "but are you sure of your friend?"
  • "Not so sure as I am of myself, though he has more cogent reasons,"
  • answered Florizel, "but sure enough to bring him here without alarm. He
  • has had enough to cure the most tenacious man of life. He was cashiered
  • the other day for cheating at cards."
  • "A good reason, I daresay," replied the President; "at least, we have
  • another in the same case, and I feel sure of him. Have you also been in
  • the Service, may I ask?"
  • "I have," was the reply; "but I was too lazy--I left it early."
  • "What is your reason for being tired of life?" pursued the President.
  • "The same, as near as I can make out," answered the Prince:
  • "unadulterated laziness."
  • The President started. "D--n it," said he, "you must have something
  • better than that."
  • "I have no more money," added Florizel. "That is also a vexation,
  • without doubt. It brings my sense of idleness to an acute point."
  • The President rolled his cigar round in his mouth for some seconds,
  • directing his gaze straight into the eyes of this unusual neophyte; but
  • the Prince supported his scrutiny with unabashed good temper.
  • "If I had not a deal of experience," said the President at last, "I
  • should turn you off. But I know the world; and this much any way, that
  • the most frivolous excuses for a suicide are often the toughest to stand
  • by. And when I downright like a man, as I do you, sir, I would rather
  • strain the regulation than deny him."
  • The Prince and the Colonel, one after the other, were subjected to a
  • long and particular interrogatory: the Prince alone; but Geraldine in
  • the presence of the Prince, so that the President might observe the
  • countenance of the one while the other was being warmly cross-examined.
  • The result was satisfactory; and the President, after having booked a
  • few details of each case, produced a form of oath to be accepted.
  • Nothing could be conceived more passive than the obedience promised, or
  • more stringent than the terms by which the juror bound himself. The man
  • who forfeited a pledge so awful could scarcely have a rag of honour or
  • any of the consolations of religion left to him. Florizel signed the
  • document, but not without a shudder; the Colonel followed his example
  • with an air of great depression. Then the President received the entry
  • money; and without more ado, introduced the two friends into the
  • smoking-room of the Suicide Club.
  • The smoking-room of the Suicide Club was the same height as the cabinet
  • into which it opened, but much larger, and papered from top to bottom
  • with an imitation of oak wainscot. A large and cheerful fire and a
  • number of gas-jets illuminated the company. The Prince and his follower
  • made the number up to eighteen. Most of the party were smoking, and
  • drinking champagne; a feverish hilarity reigned, with sudden and rather
  • ghastly pauses.
  • "Is this a full meeting?" asked the Prince.
  • "Middling," said the President.--"By the way," he added, "if you have
  • any money, it is usual to offer some champagne. It keeps up a good
  • spirit, and is one of my own little perquisites."
  • "Hammersmith," said Florizel, "I may leave the champagne to you."
  • And with that he turned away and began to go round among the guests.
  • Accustomed to play the host in the highest circles, he charmed and
  • dominated all whom he approached; there was something at once winning
  • and authoritative in his address; and his extraordinary coolness gave
  • him yet another distinction in this half-maniacal society. As he went
  • from one to another he kept both his eyes and ears open, and soon began
  • to gain a general idea of the people among whom he found himself. As in
  • all other places of resort, one type predominated: people in the prime
  • of youth, with every show of intelligence and sensibility in their
  • appearance, but with little promise of strength or the quality that
  • makes success. Few were much above thirty, and not a few were still in
  • their teens. They stood, leaning on tables and shifting on their feet;
  • sometimes they smoked extraordinarily fast, and sometimes they let
  • their cigars go out; some talked well, but the conversation of others
  • was plainly the result of nervous tension, and was equally without wit
  • or purport. As each new bottle of champagne was opened, there was a
  • manifest improvement in gaiety. Only two were seated--one in a chair in
  • the recess of the window, with his head hanging and his hands plunged
  • deep into his trousers pockets, pale, visibly moist with perspiration,
  • saying never a word, a very wreck of soul and body; the other sat on the
  • divan close by the chimney, and attracted notice by a trenchant
  • dissimilarity from all the rest. He was probably upwards of forty, but
  • he looked fully ten years older; and Florizel thought he had never seen
  • a man more naturally hideous, nor one more ravaged by disease and
  • ruinous excitements. He was no more than skin and bone, was partly
  • paralysed, and wore spectacles of such unusual power that his eyes
  • appeared through the glasses greatly magnified and distorted in shape.
  • Except the Prince and the President, he was the only person in the room
  • who preserved the composure of ordinary life.
  • There was little decency among the members of the club. Some boasted of
  • the disgraceful actions, the consequences of which had reduced them to
  • seek refuge in death; and the others listened without disapproval. There
  • was a tacit understanding against moral judgments; and whoever passed
  • the club doors enjoyed already some of the immunities of the tomb. They
  • drank to each other's memories, and to those of notable suicides in the
  • past. They compared and developed their different views of death--some
  • declaring that it was no more than blackness and cessation; others full
  • of a hope that that very night they should be scaling the stars and
  • commercing with the mighty dead.
  • "To the eternal memory of Baron Trenck, the type of suicides!" cried
  • one. "He went out of a small cell into a smaller, that he might come
  • forth again to freedom."
  • "For my part," said a second, "I wish no more than a bandage for my eyes
  • and cotton for my ears. Only they have no cotton thick enough in this
  • world."
  • A third was for reading the mysteries of life in a future state; and a
  • fourth professed that he would never have joined the club if he had not
  • been induced to believe in Mr. Darwin.
  • "I could not bear," said this remarkable suicide, "to be descended from
  • an ape."
  • Altogether, the Prince was disappointed by the bearing and conversation
  • of the members.
  • "It does not seem to me," he thought, "a matter of so much disturbance.
  • If a man has made up his mind to kill himself, let him do it, in God's
  • name, like a gentleman. This flutter and big talk is out of place."
  • In the meanwhile Colonel Geraldine was a prey to the blackest
  • apprehensions; the club and its rules were still a mystery, and he
  • looked round the room for some one who should be able to set his mind at
  • rest. In this survey his eye lighted on the paralytic person with the
  • strong spectacles; and seeing him so exceedingly tranquil, he besought
  • the President, who was going in and out of the room under a pressure of
  • business, to present him to the gentleman on the divan.
  • The functionary explained the needlessness of all such formalities
  • within the club, but nevertheless presented Mr. Hammersmith to Mr.
  • Malthus.
  • Mr. Malthus looked at the Colonel curiously, and then requested him to
  • take a seat upon his right.
  • "You are a new-comer," he said, "and wish information? You have come to
  • the proper source. It is two years since I first visited this charming
  • club."
  • The Colonel breathed again. If Mr. Malthus had frequented the place for
  • two years there could be little danger for the Prince in a single
  • evening. But Geraldine was none the less astonished, and began to
  • suspect a mystification.
  • "What!" cried he, "two years! I thought--but indeed I see I have been
  • made the subject of a pleasantry."
  • "By no means," replied Mr. Malthus mildly. "My case is peculiar. I am
  • not, properly speaking, a suicide at all; but, as it were, an honorary
  • member. I rarely visit the club twice in two months. My infirmity and
  • the kindness of the President have procured me these little immunities,
  • for which besides I pay at an advanced rate. Even as it is, my luck has
  • been extraordinary."
  • "I am afraid," said the Colonel, "that I must ask you to be more
  • explicit. You must remember that I am still most imperfectly acquainted
  • with the rules of the club."
  • "An ordinary member who comes here in search of death, like yourself,"
  • replied the paralytic, "returns every evening until fortune favours him.
  • He can even, if he is penniless, get board and lodging from the
  • President: very fair, I believe, and clean, although, of course, not
  • luxurious; that could hardly be, considering the exiguity (if I may so
  • express myself) of the subscription. And then the President's company is
  • a delicacy in itself."
  • "Indeed!" cried Geraldine, "he had not greatly prepossessed me."
  • "Ah!" said Mr. Malthus, "you do not know the man: the drollest fellow!
  • What stories! What cynicism! He knows life to admiration, and, between
  • ourselves, is probably the most corrupt rogue in Christendom."
  • "And he also," asked the Colonel, "is a permanency--like yourself, if I
  • may say so without offence?"
  • "Indeed, he is a permanency in a very different sense from me," replied
  • Mr. Malthus. "I have been graciously spared, but I must go at last. Now
  • he never plays. He shuffles and deals for the club, and makes the
  • necessary arrangements. That man, my dear Mr. Hammersmith, is the very
  • soul of ingenuity. For three years he has pursued in London his useful
  • and, I think I may add, his artistic calling; and not so much as a
  • whisper of suspicion has been once aroused. I believe himself to be
  • inspired. You doubtless remember the celebrated case, six months ago,
  • of the gentleman who was accidentally poisoned in a chemist's shop? That
  • was one of the least rich, one of the least racy, of his notions; but
  • then, how simple! and how safe!"
  • "You astound me," said the Colonel. "Was that unfortunate gentleman one
  • of the----" He was about to say "victims"; but bethinking himself in
  • time, he substituted--"members of the club?"
  • In the same flash of thought it occurred to him that Mr. Malthus himself
  • had not at all spoken in the tone of one who is in love with death; and
  • he added hurriedly--
  • "But I perceive I am still in the dark. You speak of shuffling and
  • dealing; pray, for what end? And since you seem rather unwilling to die
  • than otherwise, I must own that I cannot conceive what brings you here
  • at all."
  • "You say truly that you are in the dark," replied Mr. Malthus with more
  • animation. "Why, my dear sir, this club is the temple of intoxication.
  • If my enfeebled health could support the excitement more often, you may
  • depend upon it I should be more often here. It requires all the sense of
  • duty engendered by a long habit of ill-health and careful regimen, to
  • keep me from excess in this, which is, I may say, my last dissipation. I
  • have tried them all, sir," he went on, laying his hand on Geraldine's
  • arm, "all, without exception, and I declare to you, upon my honour,
  • there is not one of them that has not been grossly and untruthfully
  • overrated. People trifle with love. Now, I deny that love is a strong
  • passion. Fear is the strong passion; it is with fear that you must
  • trifle if you wish to taste the intensest joys of living. Envy me--envy
  • me, sir," he added with a chuckle, "I am a coward!"
  • Geraldine could scarcely repress a movement of repulsion for this
  • deplorable wretch; but he commanded himself with an effort, and
  • continued his inquiries.
  • "How, sir," he asked, "is the excitement so artfully prolonged? and
  • where is there any element of uncertainty?"
  • "I must tell you how the victim for every evening is selected," returned
  • Mr. Malthus; "and not only the victim, but another member, who is to be
  • the instrument in the club's hands, and death's high priest for that
  • occasion."
  • "Good God!" said the Colonel, "do they then kill each other?"
  • "The trouble of suicide is removed in that way," returned Malthus with a
  • nod.
  • "Merciful heavens!" ejaculated the Colonel, "and may you--may I--may
  • the--my friend, I mean--may any of us be pitched upon this evening as
  • the slayer of another man's body and immortal spirit? Can such things be
  • possible among men born of women? Oh! infamy of infamies!"
  • He was about to rise in his horror, when he caught the Prince's eye. It
  • was fixed upon him from across the room with a frowning and angry stare.
  • And in a moment Geraldine recovered his composure.
  • "After all," he added, "why not? and since you say the game is
  • interesting, _vogue la galère_--I follow the club!"
  • Mr. Malthus had keenly enjoyed the Colonel's amazement and disgust. He
  • had the vanity of wickedness; and it pleased him to see another man give
  • way to a generous movement, while he felt himself, in his entire
  • corruption, superior to such emotions.
  • "You now, after your first moment of surprise," said he, "are in a
  • position to appreciate the delights of our society. You can see how it
  • combines the excitement of a gaming-table, a duel, and a Roman
  • amphitheatre. The Pagans did well enough; I cordially admire the
  • refinement of their minds; but it has been reserved for a Christian
  • country to attain this extreme, this quintessence, this absolute of
  • poignancy. You will understand how vapid are all amusements to a man who
  • has acquired a taste for this one. The game we play," he continued, "is
  • one of extreme simplicity. A full pack--but I perceive you are about to
  • see the thing in progress. Will you lend me the help of your arm? I am
  • unfortunately paralysed."
  • Indeed, just as Mr. Malthus was beginning his description, another pair
  • of folding-doors was thrown open, and the whole club began to pass, not
  • without some hurry, into the adjoining room. It was similar in every
  • respect to the one from which it was entered, but somewhat differently
  • furnished. The centre was occupied by a long green table, at which the
  • President sat shuffling a pack of cards with great particularity. Even
  • with the stick and the Colonel's arm, Mr. Malthus walked with so much
  • difficulty that everyone was seated before this pair and the Prince, who
  • had waited for them, entered the apartment; and, in consequence, the
  • three took seats close together at the lower end of the board.
  • "It is a pack of fifty-two," whispered Mr. Malthus. "Watch for the ace
  • of spades, which is the sign of death, and the ace of clubs, which
  • designates the official of the night. Happy, happy young men!" he added.
  • "You have good eyes, and can follow the game. Alas! I cannot tell an ace
  • from a deuce across the table."
  • And he proceeded to equip himself with a second pair of spectacles.
  • "I must at least watch the faces," he explained.
  • The Colonel rapidly informed his friend of all that he had learned from
  • the honorary member, and of the horrible alternative that lay before
  • them. The Prince was conscious of a deadly chill and a contraction about
  • his heart; he swallowed with difficulty, and looked from side to side
  • like a man in a maze.
  • "One bold stroke," whispered the Colonel, "and we may still escape."
  • But the suggestion recalled the Prince's spirits.
  • "Silence!" said he. "Let me see that you can play like a gentleman for
  • any stake, however serious."
  • And he looked about him, once more to all appearance at his ease,
  • although his heart beat thickly, and he was conscious of an unpleasant
  • heat in his bosom. The members were all very quiet and intent; every one
  • was pale, but none so pale as Mr. Malthus. His eyes protruded; his head
  • kept nodding involuntarily upon his spine; his hands found their way,
  • one after the other, to his mouth, where they made clutches at his
  • tremulous and ashen lips. It was plain that the honorary member enjoyed
  • his membership on very startling terms.
  • "Attention, gentlemen!" said the President.
  • And he began slowly dealing the cards about the table in the reverse
  • direction, pausing until each man had shown his card. Nearly every one
  • hesitated; and sometimes you would see a player's fingers stumble more
  • than once before he could turn over the momentous slip of pasteboard. As
  • the Prince's turn drew nearer, he was conscious of a growing and almost
  • suffocating excitement; but he had somewhat of the gambler's nature, and
  • recognised almost with astonishment that there was a degree of pleasure
  • in his sensations. The nine of clubs fell to his lot; the three of
  • spades was dealt to Geraldine; and the queen of hearts to Mr. Malthus,
  • who was unable to suppress a sob of relief. The young man of the cream
  • tarts almost immediately afterwards turned over the ace of clubs, and
  • remained frozen with horror, the card still resting on his finger; he
  • had not come there to kill, but to be killed; and the Prince in his
  • generous sympathy with his position almost forgot the peril that still
  • hung over himself and his friend.
  • The deal was coming round again, and still Death's card had not come
  • out. The players held their respiration, and only breathed by gasps. The
  • Prince received another club; Geraldine had a diamond; but when Mr.
  • Malthus turned up his card a horrible noise, like that of something
  • breaking, issued from his mouth; and he rose from his seat and sat down
  • again, with no sign of his paralysis. It was the ace of spades. The
  • honorary member had trifled once too often with his terrors.
  • Conversation broke out again almost at once. The players relaxed their
  • rigid attitudes, and began to rise from the table and stroll back by
  • twos and threes into the smoking-room. The President stretched his arms
  • and yawned, like a man who has finished his day's work. But Mr. Malthus
  • sat in his place, with his head in his hands, and his hands upon the
  • table, drunk and motionless--a thing stricken down.
  • The Prince and Geraldine made their escape at once. In the cold night
  • air their horror of what they had witnessed was redoubled.
  • "Alas!" cried the Prince, "to be bound by an oath in such a matter! to
  • allow this wholesale trade in murder to be continued with profit and
  • impunity! If I but dared to forfeit my pledge!"
  • "That is impossible for your Highness," replied the Colonel, "whose
  • honour is the honour of Bohemia. But I dare, and may with propriety,
  • forfeit mine."
  • "Geraldine," said the Prince, "if your honour suffers in any of the
  • adventures into which you follow me, not only will I never pardon you,
  • but--what I believe will much more sensibly affect you--I should never
  • forgive myself."
  • "I receive your Highness's commands," replied the Colonel. "Shall we go
  • from this accursed spot?"
  • "Yes," said the Prince. "Call a cab in Heaven's name, and let me try to
  • forget in slumber the memory of this night's disgrace."
  • But it was notable that he carefully read the name of the court before
  • he left it.
  • The next morning, as soon as the Prince was stirring, Colonel Geraldine
  • brought him a daily newspaper, with the following paragraph marked:--
  • "MELANCHOLY ACCIDENT.--This morning, about two o'clock, Mr.
  • Bartholomew Malthus, of 16 Chepstow Place, Westbourne Grove, on his
  • way home from a party at a friend's house, fell over the upper
  • parapet in Trafalgar Square, fracturing his skull and breaking a leg
  • and an arm. Death was instantaneous. Mr. Malthus, accompanied by a
  • friend, was engaged in looking for a cab at the time of the
  • unfortunate occurrence. As Mr. Malthus was paralytic, it is thought
  • that his fall may have been occasioned by another seizure. The
  • unhappy gentleman was well known in the most respectable circles, and
  • his loss will be widely and deeply deplored."
  • "If ever a soul went straight to Hell," said Geraldine solemnly, "it was
  • that paralytic man's."
  • The Prince buried his face in his hands, and remained silent.
  • "I am almost rejoiced," continued the Colonel, "to know that he is dead.
  • But for our young man of the cream tarts I confess my heart bleeds."
  • "Geraldine," said the Prince, raising his face, "that unhappy lad was
  • last night as innocent as you and I; and this morning the guilt of blood
  • is on his soul. When I think of the President, my heart grows sick
  • within me. I do not know how it shall be done, but I shall have that
  • scoundrel at my mercy as there is a God in heaven. What an experience,
  • what a lesson, was that game of cards!"
  • "One," said the Colonel, "never to be repeated."
  • The Prince remained so long without replying that Geraldine grew
  • alarmed.
  • "You cannot mean to return," he said. "You have suffered too much and
  • seen too much horror already. The duties of your high position forbid
  • the repetition of the hazard."
  • "There is much in what you say," replied Prince Florizel, "and I am not
  • altogether pleased with my own determination. Alas! in the clothes of
  • the greatest potentate what is there but a man? I never felt my weakness
  • more acutely than now, Geraldine, but it is stronger than I. Can I
  • cease to interest myself in the fortunes of the unhappy young man who
  • supped with us some hours ago? Can I leave the President to follow his
  • nefarious career unwatched? Can I begin an adventure so entrancing, and
  • not follow it to an end? No, Geraldine, you ask of the Prince more than
  • the man is able to perform. To-night, once more, we take our places at
  • the table of the Suicide Club."
  • Colonel Geraldine fell upon his knees.
  • "Will your Highness take my life?" he cried. "It is his--his freely; but
  • do not, O do not! let him ask me to countenance so terrible a risk."
  • "Colonel Geraldine," replied the Prince, with some haughtiness of
  • manner, "your life is absolutely your own. I only looked for obedience;
  • and when that is unwillingly rendered, I shall look for that no longer.
  • I add one word: your importunity in this affair has been sufficient."
  • The Master of the Horse regained his feet at once.
  • "Your Highness," he said, "may I be excused in my attendance this
  • afternoon? I dare not, as an honourable man, venture a second time into
  • that fatal house until I have perfectly ordered my affairs. Your
  • Highness shall meet, I promise him, with no more opposition from the
  • most devoted and grateful of his servants."
  • "My dear Geraldine," returned Prince Florizel, "I always regret when you
  • oblige me to remember my rank. Dispose of your day as you think fit, but
  • be here before eleven in the same disguise."
  • The club, on this second evening, was not so fully attended; and when
  • Geraldine and the Prince arrived there were not above half a dozen
  • persons in the smoking-room. His Highness took the President aside and
  • congratulated him warmly on the demise of Mr. Malthus.
  • "I like," he said, "to meet with capacity, and certainly find much of it
  • in you. Your profession is of a very delicate nature, but I see you are
  • well qualified to conduct it with success and secrecy."
  • The President was somewhat affected by these compliments from one of his
  • Highness's superior bearing. He acknowledged them almost with humility.
  • "Poor Malthy!" he added, "I shall hardly know the club without him. The
  • most of my patrons are boys, sir, and poetical boys, who are not much
  • company for me. Not but what Malthy had some poetry too; but it was of a
  • kind that I could understand."
  • "I can readily imagine you should find yourself in sympathy with Mr.
  • Malthus," returned the Prince. "He struck me as a man of a very original
  • disposition."
  • The young man of the cream tarts was in the room, but painfully
  • depressed and silent. His late companions sought in vain to lead him
  • into conversation.
  • "How bitterly I wish," he cried, "that I had never brought you to this
  • infamous abode! Begone, while you are clean-handed. If you could have
  • heard the old man scream as he fell, and the noise of his bones upon the
  • pavement! Wish me, if you have any kindness to so fallen a being--wish
  • the ace of spades for me to-night!"
  • A few more members dropped in as the evening went on, but the club did
  • not muster more than the devil's dozen when they took their places at
  • the table. The Prince was again conscious of a certain joy in his
  • alarms; but he was astonished to see Geraldine so much more
  • self-possessed than on the night before.
  • "It is extraordinary," thought the Prince, "that a will, made or unmade,
  • should so greatly influence a young man's spirit."
  • "Attention, gentlemen!" said the President, and he began to deal.
  • Three times the cards went all round the table, and neither of the
  • marked cards had yet fallen from his hand. The excitement as he began
  • the fourth distribution was overwhelming. There were just cards enough
  • to go once more entirely round. The Prince, who sat second from the
  • dealer's left, would receive, in the reverse mode of dealing practised
  • at the club, the second last card. The third player turned up a black
  • ace--it was the ace of clubs. The next received a diamond, the next a
  • heart, and so on; but the ace of spades was still undelivered. At last
  • Geraldine, who sat upon the Prince's left, turned his card; it was an
  • ace, but the ace of hearts.
  • When Prince Florizel saw his fate upon the table in front of him, his
  • heart stood still. He was a brave man, but the sweat poured off his
  • face. There were exactly fifty chances out of a hundred that he was
  • doomed. He reversed the card; it was the ace of spades. A loud roaring
  • filled his brain, and the table swam before his eyes. He heard the
  • player on his right break into a fit of laughter that sounded between
  • mirth and disappointment; he saw the company rapidly dispersing, but his
  • mind was full of other thoughts. He recognised how foolish, how
  • criminal, had been his conduct. In perfect health, in the prime of his
  • years, the heir to a throne, he had gambled away his future and that of
  • a brave and loyal country. "God," he cried, "God forgive me!" And with
  • that the confusion of his senses passed away, and he regained his
  • self-possession in a moment.
  • To his surprise, Geraldine had disappeared. There was no one in the
  • card-room but his destined butcher consulting with the President, and
  • the young man of the cream tarts, who slipped up to the Prince and
  • whispered in his ear--
  • "I would give a million, if I had it, for your luck."
  • His Highness could not help reflecting, as the young man departed, that
  • he would have sold his opportunity for a much more moderate sum.
  • The whispered conference now came to an end. The holder of the ace of
  • clubs left the room with a look of intelligence, and the President,
  • approaching the unfortunate Prince, proffered him his hand.
  • "I am pleased to have met you, sir," said he, "and pleased to have been
  • in a position to do you this trifling service. At least, you cannot
  • complain of delay. On the second evening--what a stroke of luck!"
  • The Prince endeavoured in vain to articulate something in response, but
  • his mouth was dry and his tongue seemed paralysed.
  • "You feel a little sickish?" asked the President, with some show of
  • solicitude. "Most gentlemen do. Will you take a little brandy?"
  • The Prince signified in the affirmative, and the other immediately
  • filled some of the spirit into a tumbler.
  • "Poor old Malthy!" ejaculated the President, as the Prince drained the
  • glass. "He drank near upon a pint, and little enough good it seemed to
  • do him!"
  • "I am more amenable to treatment," said the Prince, a good deal revived.
  • "I am my own man again at once, as you perceive. And so, let me ask you,
  • what are my directions?"
  • "You will proceed along the Strand in the direction of the City, and on
  • the left-hand pavement, until you meet the gentleman who has just left
  • the room. He will continue your instructions, and him you will have the
  • kindness to obey; the authority of the club is vested in his person for
  • the night. And now," added the President, "I wish you a pleasant walk."
  • Florizel acknowledged the salutation rather awkwardly, and took his
  • leave. He passed through the smoking-room, where the bulk of the players
  • were still consuming champagne, some of which he had himself ordered and
  • paid for; and he was surprised to find himself cursing them in his
  • heart. He put on his hat and greatcoat in the cabinet, and selected his
  • umbrella from a corner. The familiarity of these acts, and the thought
  • that he was about them for the last time, betrayed him into a fit of
  • laughter which sounded unpleasantly in his own ears. He conceived a
  • reluctance to leave the cabinet, and turned instead to the window. The
  • sight of the lamps and the darkness recalled him to himself.
  • "Come, come, I must be a man," he thought, "and tear myself away."
  • At the corner of Box Court three men fell upon Prince Florizel, and he
  • was unceremoniously thrust into a carriage, which at once drove rapidly
  • away. There was already an occupant.
  • "Will your Highness pardon my zeal?" said a well-known voice.
  • The Prince threw himself upon the Colonel's neck in a passion of relief.
  • "How can I ever thank you?" he cried. "And how was this effected?"
  • Although he had been willing to march upon his doom, he was overjoyed to
  • yield to friendly violence, and return once more to life and hope.
  • "You can thank me effectually enough," replied the Colonel, "by avoiding
  • all such dangers in the future. And as for your second question, all has
  • been managed by the simplest means. I arranged this afternoon with a
  • celebrated detective. Secrecy has been promised and paid for. Your own
  • servants have been principally engaged in the affair. The house in Box
  • Court has been surrounded since nightfall, and this, which is one of
  • your own carriages, has been awaiting you for nearly an hour."
  • "And the miserable creature who was to have slain me--what of him?"
  • inquired the Prince.
  • "He was pinioned as he left the club," replied the Colonel, "and now
  • awaits your sentence at the Palace, where he will soon be joined by his
  • accomplices."
  • "Geraldine," said the Prince, "you have saved me against my explicit
  • orders, and you have done well. I owe you not only my life, but a
  • lesson; and I should be unworthy of my rank if I did not show myself
  • grateful to my teacher. Let it be yours to choose the manner."
  • There was a pause, during which the carriage continued to speed through
  • the streets, and the two men were each buried in his own reflections.
  • The silence was broken by Colonel Geraldine.
  • "Your Highness," said he, "has by this time a considerable body of
  • prisoners. There is at least one criminal among the number to whom
  • justice should be dealt. Our oath forbids us all recourse to law; and
  • discretion would forbid it equally if the oath were loosened. May I
  • inquire your Highness's intention?"
  • "It is decided," answered Florizel; "the President must fall in duel. It
  • only remains to choose his adversary."
  • "Your Highness has permitted me to name my own recompense," said the
  • Colonel. "Will he permit me to ask the appointment of my brother? It is
  • an honourable post, but I dare assure your Highness that the lad will
  • acquit himself with credit."
  • "You ask me an ungracious favour," said the Prince, "but I must refuse
  • you nothing."
  • The Colonel kissed his hand with the greatest affection; and at that
  • moment the carriage rolled under the archway of the Prince's splendid
  • residence.
  • An hour after, Florizel in his official robes, and covered with all the
  • orders of Bohemia, received the members of the Suicide Club.
  • "Foolish and wicked men," said he, "as many of you as have been driven
  • into this strait by the lack of fortune shall receive employment and
  • remuneration from my officers. Those who suffer under a sense of guilt
  • must have recourse to a higher and more generous Potentate than I. I
  • feel pity for all of you, deeper than you can imagine; to-morrow you
  • shall tell me your stories; and as you answer more frankly, I shall be
  • the more able to remedy your misfortunes. As for you," he added, turning
  • to the President, "I should only offend a person of your parts by any
  • offer of assistance; but I have instead a piece of diversion to propose
  • to you. Here," laying his hand on the shoulder of Colonel Geraldine's
  • young brother, "is an officer of mine who desires to make a little tour
  • upon the Continent; and I ask you, as a favour, to accompany him on
  • this excursion. Do you," he went on, changing his tone, "do you shoot
  • well with the pistol? Because you may have need of that accomplishment.
  • When two men go travelling together, it is best to be prepared for all.
  • Let me add that, if by any chance you should lose young Mr. Geraldine
  • upon the way, I shall always have another member of my household to
  • place at your disposal; and I am known, Mr. President, to have long
  • eyesight, and as long an arm."
  • With these words, said with much sternness, the Prince concluded his
  • address. Next morning the members of the club were suitably provided for
  • by his munificence, and the President set forth upon his travels, under
  • the supervision of Mr. Geraldine, and a pair of faithful and adroit
  • lackeys, well trained in the Prince's household. Not content with this,
  • discreet agents were put in possession of the house in Box Court, and
  • all letters or visitors for the Suicide Club or its officials were to be
  • examined by Prince Florizel in person.
  • _Here_ (says my Arabian author) _ends The Story of_ THE YOUNG MAN WITH
  • THE CREAM TARTS, _who is now a comfortable householder in Wigmore
  • Street, Cavendish Square. The number, for obvious reasons, I suppress.
  • Those who care to pursue the adventures of Prince Florizel and the
  • President of the Suicide Club, may read_
  • THE STORY OF THE PHYSICIAN AND THE SARATOGA TRUNK
  • Mr. Silas Q. Scuddamore was a young American of a simple and harmless
  • disposition, which was the more to his credit as he came from New
  • England--a quarter of the New World not precisely famous for those
  • qualities. Although he was exceedingly rich, he kept a note of all his
  • expenses in a little paper pocket-book; and he had chosen to study the
  • attractions of Paris from the seventh story of what is called a
  • furnished hotel in the Latin Quarter. There was a great deal of habit in
  • his penuriousness; and his virtue, which was very remarkable among his
  • associates, was principally founded upon diffidence and youth.
  • The next room to his was inhabited by a lady, very attractive in her air
  • and very elegant in toilette, whom, on his first arrival, he had taken
  • for a Countess. In course of time he had learned that she was known by
  • the name of Madame Zéphyrine, and that whatever station she occupied in
  • life it was not that of a person of title. Madame Zéphyrine, probably in
  • the hope of enchanting the young American, used to flaunt by him on the
  • stairs with a civil inclination, a word of course, and a knock-down look
  • out of her black eyes, and disappear in a rustle of silk, and with the
  • revelation of an admirable foot and ankle. But these advances, so far
  • from encouraging Mr. Scuddamore, plunged him into the depths of
  • depression and bashfulness. She had come to him several times for a
  • light, or to apologise for imaginary depredations of her poodle; but his
  • mouth was closed in the presence of so superior a being, his French
  • promptly left him, and he could only stare and stammer until she was
  • gone. The slenderness of their intercourse did not prevent him from
  • throwing out insinuations of a very glorious order when he was safely
  • alone with a few males.
  • The room on the other side of the American's--for there were three rooms
  • on a floor in the hotel--was tenanted by an old English physician of
  • rather doubtful reputation. Dr. Noel, for that was his name, had been
  • forced to leave London, where he enjoyed a large and increasing
  • practice; and it was hinted that the police had been the instigators of
  • this change of scene. At least he, who had made something of a figure in
  • earlier life, now dwelt in the Latin Quarter in great simplicity and
  • solitude, and devoted much of his time to study. Mr. Scuddamore had made
  • his acquaintance, and the pair would now and then dine together
  • frugally in a restaurant across the street.
  • Silas Q. Scuddamore had many little vices of the more respectable order,
  • and was not restrained by delicacy from indulging them in many rather
  • doubtful ways. Chief among his foibles stood curiosity. He was a born
  • gossip; and life, and especially those parts of it in which he had no
  • experience, interested him to the degree of passion. He was a pert,
  • invincible questioner, pushing his inquiries with equal pertinacity and
  • indiscretion; he had been observed, when he took a letter to the post,
  • to weigh it in his hand, to turn it over and over, and to study the
  • address with care; and when he found a flaw in the partition between his
  • room and Madame Zéphyrine's, instead of filling it up, he enlarged and
  • improved the opening, and made use of it as a spy-hole on his
  • neighbour's affairs.
  • One day, in the end of March, his curiosity growing as it was indulged,
  • he enlarged the hole a little further, so that he might command another
  • corner of the room. That evening, when he went as usual to inspect
  • Madame Zéphyrine's movements, he was astonished to find the aperture
  • obscured in an odd manner on the other side, and still more abashed when
  • the obstacle was suddenly withdrawn and a titter of laughter reached his
  • ears. Some of the plaster had evidently betrayed the secret of his
  • spy-hole, and his neighbour had been returning the compliment in kind.
  • Mr. Scuddamore was moved to a very acute feeling of annoyance; he
  • condemned Madame Zéphyrine unmercifully: he even blamed himself; but
  • when he found, next day, that she had taken no means to baulk him of his
  • favourite pastime, he continued to profit by her carelessness, and
  • gratify his idle curiosity.
  • That next day Madame Zéphyrine received a long visit from a tall,
  • loosely-built man of fifty or upwards, whom Silas had not hitherto seen.
  • His tweed suit and coloured shirt, no less than his shaggy
  • side-whiskers, identified him as a Britisher, and his dull grey eye
  • affected Silas with a sense of cold. He kept screwing his mouth from
  • side to side and round and round during the whole colloquy, which was
  • carried on in whispers. More than once it seemed to the young New
  • Englander as if their gestures indicated his own apartment; but the only
  • thing definite he could gather by the most scrupulous attention was this
  • remark, made by the Englishman in a somewhat higher key, as if in answer
  • to some reluctance or opposition--
  • "I have studied his taste to a nicety, and I tell you again and again
  • you are the only woman of the sort that I can lay my hands on."
  • In answer to this, Madame Zéphyrine sighed, and appeared by a gesture to
  • resign herself, like one yielding to unqualified authority.
  • That afternoon the observatory was finally blinded, a wardrobe having
  • been drawn in front of it upon the other side; and while Silas was still
  • lamenting over this misfortune, which he attributed to the Britisher's
  • malign suggestion, the _concierge_ brought him up a letter in a female
  • handwriting. It was conceived in French of no very rigorous orthography,
  • bore no signature, and in the most encouraging terms invited the young
  • American to be present in a certain part of the Bullier Ball at eleven
  • o'clock that night. Curiosity and timidity fought a long battle in his
  • heart; sometimes he was all virtue, sometimes all fire and daring; and
  • the result of it was that, long before ten, Mr. Silas Q. Scuddamore
  • presented himself in unimpeachable attire at the door of the Bullier
  • Ball Rooms, and paid his entry money with a sense of reckless devilry
  • that was not without its charm.
  • It was Carnival time, and the Ball was very full and noisy. The lights
  • and the crowd at first rather abashed our young adventurer, and then,
  • mounting to his brain with a sort of intoxication, put him in possession
  • of more than his own share of manhood. He felt ready to face the devil,
  • and strutted in the ball-room with the swagger of a cavalier. While he
  • was thus parading, he became aware of Madame Zéphyrine and her
  • Britisher in conference behind a pillar. The cat-like spirit of
  • eavesdropping overcame him at once. He stole nearer and nearer on the
  • couple from behind, until he was within earshot.
  • "That is the man," the Britisher was saying; "there--with the long blond
  • hair--speaking to a girl in green."
  • Silas identified a very handsome young fellow of small stature, who was
  • plainly the object of this designation.
  • "It is well," said Madame Zéphyrine. "I shall do my utmost. But,
  • remember, the best of us may fail in such a matter."
  • "Tut!" returned her companion; "I answer for the result. Have I not
  • chosen you from thirty? Go; but be wary of the Prince. I cannot think
  • what cursed accident has brought him here to-night. As if there were not
  • a dozen balls in Paris better worth his notice than this riot of
  • students and counter-jumpers! See him where he sits, more like a
  • reigning Emperor at home than a Prince upon his holidays!"
  • Silas was again lucky. He observed a person of rather a full build,
  • strikingly handsome, and of a very stately and courteous demeanour,
  • seated at table with another handsome young man, several years his
  • junior, who addressed him with conspicuous deference. The name of Prince
  • struck gratefully on Silas's Republican hearing, and the aspect of the
  • person to whom that name was applied exercised its usual charm upon his
  • mind. He left Madame Zéphyrine and her Englishman to take care of each
  • other, and threading his way through the assembly, approached the table
  • which the Prince and his confidant had honoured with their choice.
  • "I tell you, Geraldine," the former was saying, "the action is madness.
  • Yourself (I am glad to remember it) chose your brother for this perilous
  • service, and you are bound in duty to have a guard upon his conduct. He
  • has consented to delay so many days in Paris; that was already an
  • imprudence, considering the character of the man he has to deal with;
  • but now, when he is within eight-and-forty hours of his departure, when
  • he is within two or three days of the decisive trial, I ask you, is this
  • a place for him to spend his time? He should be in a gallery at
  • practice; he should be sleeping long hours and taking moderate exercise
  • on foot; he should be on a rigorous diet, without white wines or brandy.
  • Does the dog imagine we are all playing comedy? The thing is deadly
  • earnest, Geraldine."
  • "I know the lad too well to interfere," replied Colonel Geraldine, "and
  • well enough not to be alarmed. He is more cautious than you fancy, and
  • of an indomitable spirit. If it had been a woman I should not say so
  • much, but I trust the President to him and the two valets without an
  • instant's apprehension."
  • "I am gratified to hear you say so," replied the Prince; "but my mind is
  • not at rest. These servants are well-trained spies, and already has not
  • this miscreant succeeded three times in eluding their observation and
  • spending several hours on each in private, and most likely dangerous,
  • affairs? An amateur might have lost him by accident, but if Rudolph and
  • Jérome were thrown off the scent, it must have been done on purpose, and
  • by a man who had a cogent reason and exceptional resources."
  • "I believe the question is now one between my brother and myself,"
  • replied Geraldine, with a shade of offence in his tone.
  • "I permit it to be so, Colonel Geraldine," returned Prince Florizel.
  • "Perhaps, for that very reason, you should be all the more ready to
  • accept my counsels. But enough. That girl in yellow dances well."
  • And the talk veered into the ordinary topics of a Paris ball-room in the
  • Carnival.
  • Silas remembered where he was, and that the hour was already near at
  • hand when he ought to be upon the scene of his assignation. The more he
  • reflected the less he liked the prospect, and as at that moment an eddy
  • in the crowd began to draw him in the direction of the door, he
  • suffered it to carry him away without resistance. The eddy stranded him
  • in a corner under the gallery, where his ear was immediately struck with
  • the voice of Madame Zéphyrine. She was speaking in French with the young
  • man of the blond locks who had been pointed out by the strange Britisher
  • not half an hour before.
  • "I have a character at stake," she said, "or I would put no other
  • condition than my heart recommends. But you have only to say so much to
  • the porter, and he will let you go by without a word."
  • "But why this talk of debt?" objected her companion.
  • "Heavens!" said she, "do you think I do not understand my own hotel?"
  • And she went by, clinging affectionately to her companion's arm.
  • This put Silas in mind of his billet.
  • "Ten minutes hence," thought he, "and I may be walking with as beautiful
  • a woman as that, and even better dressed--perhaps a real lady, possibly
  • a woman of title."
  • And then he remembered the spelling, and was a little downcast.
  • "But it may have been written by her maid," he imagined.
  • The clock was only a few minutes from the hour, and this immediate
  • proximity set his heart beating at a curious and rather disagreeable
  • speed. He reflected with relief that he was in no way bound to put in an
  • appearance. Virtue and cowardice were together, and he made once more
  • for the door, but this time, of his own accord, and battling against the
  • stream of people which was now moving in a contrary direction. Perhaps
  • this prolonged resistance wearied him, or perhaps he was in that frame
  • of mind when merely to continue in the same determination for a certain
  • number of minutes produces a reaction and a different purpose.
  • Certainly, at least, he wheeled about for a third time, and did not
  • stop until he had found a place of concealment within a few yards of the
  • appointed place.
  • Here he went through an agony of spirit, in which he several times
  • prayed to God for help, for Silas had been devoutly educated. He had now
  • not the least inclination for the meeting; nothing kept him from flight
  • but a silly fear lest he should be thought unmanly; but this was so
  • powerful that it kept head against all other motives; and although it
  • could not decide him to advance, prevented him from definitely running
  • away. At last the clock indicated ten minutes past the hour. Young
  • Scuddamore's spirit began to rise; he peered round the corner and saw no
  • one at the place of meeting; doubtless his unknown correspondent had
  • wearied and gone away. He became as bold as he had formerly been timid.
  • It seemed to him that if he came at all to the appointment, however
  • late, he was clear from the charge of cowardice. Nay, now he began to
  • suspect a hoax, and actually complimented himself on his shrewdness in
  • having suspected and out-manoeuvred his mystifiers. So very idle a
  • thing is a boy's mind!
  • Armed with these reflections, he advanced boldly from his corner; but he
  • had not taken above a couple of steps before a hand was laid upon his
  • arm. He turned and beheld a lady cast in a very large mould and with
  • somewhat stately features, but bearing no mark of severity in her looks.
  • "I see that you are a very self-confident lady-killer," said she; "for
  • you make yourself expected. But I was determined to meet you. When a
  • woman has once so far forgotten herself as to make the first advance,
  • she has long ago left behind her all considerations of petty pride."
  • Silas was overwhelmed by the size and attractions of his correspondent
  • and the suddenness with which she had fallen upon him. But she soon set
  • him at his ease. She was very towardly and lenient in her behaviour; she
  • led him on to make pleasantries, and then applauded him to the echo; and
  • in a very short time, between blandishments and a liberal exhibition of
  • warm brandy, she had not only induced him to fancy himself in love, but
  • to declare his passion with the greatest vehemence.
  • "Alas!" she said; "I do not know whether I ought not to deplore this
  • moment, great as is the pleasure you give me by your words. Hitherto I
  • was alone to suffer; now, poor boy, there will be two. I am not my own
  • mistress. I dare not ask you to visit me at my own house, for I am
  • watched by jealous eyes. Let me see," she added; "I am older than you,
  • although so much weaker; and while I trust in your courage and
  • determination, I must employ my own knowledge of the world for our
  • mutual benefit. Where do you live?"
  • He told her that he lodged in a furnished hotel, and named the street
  • and number.
  • She seemed to reflect for some minutes, with an effort of mind.
  • "I see," she said at last. "You will be faithful and obedient, will you
  • not?"
  • Silas assured her eagerly of his fidelity.
  • "To-morrow night, then," she continued, with an encouraging smile, "you
  • must remain at home all the evening; and if any friends should visit
  • you, dismiss them at once on any pretext that most readily presents
  • itself. Your door is probably shut by ten?" she asked.
  • "By eleven," answered Silas.
  • "At a quarter past eleven," pursued the lady, "leave the house. Merely
  • cry for the door to be opened, and be sure you fall into no talk with
  • the porter, as that might ruin everything. Go straight to the corner
  • where the Luxembourg Gardens join the Boulevard; there you will find me
  • waiting you. I trust you to follow my advice from point to point: and
  • remember, if you fail me in only one particular, you will bring the
  • sharpest trouble on a woman whose only fault is to have seen and loved
  • you."
  • "I cannot see the use of all these instructions," said Silas.
  • "I believe you are already beginning to treat me as a master," she
  • cried, tapping him with her fan upon the arm. "Patience, patience! that
  • should come in time. A woman loves to be obeyed at first, although
  • afterwards she finds her pleasure in obeying. Do as I ask you, for
  • Heaven's sake, or I will answer for nothing. Indeed, now I think of it,"
  • she added, with a manner of one who has just seen further into a
  • difficulty, "I find a better plan of keeping importunate visitors away.
  • Tell the porter to admit no one for you, except a person who may come
  • that night to claim a debt; and speak with some feeling, as though you
  • feared the interview, so that he may take your words in earnest."
  • "I think you may trust me to protect myself against intruders," he said,
  • not without a little pique.
  • "That is how I should prefer the thing arranged," she answered coldly.
  • "I know you men; you think nothing of a woman's reputation."
  • Silas blushed and somewhat hung his head; for the scheme he had in view
  • had involved a little vain-glorying before his acquaintances.
  • "Above all," she added, "do not speak to the porter as you come out."
  • "And why?" said he. "Of all your instructions, that seems to me the
  • least important."
  • "You at first doubted the wisdom of some of the others, which you now
  • see to be very necessary," she replied. "Believe me, this also has its
  • uses; in time you will see them; and what am I to think of your
  • affection, if you refuse me such trifles at our first interview?"
  • Silas confounded himself in explanations and apologies; in the middle of
  • these she looked up at the clock and clapped her hands together with a
  • suppressed scream.
  • "Heavens!" she cried, "is it so late? I have not an instant to lose.
  • Alas, we poor women, what slaves we are! What have I not risked for you
  • already?"
  • And after repeating her directions, which she artfully combined with
  • caresses and the most abandoned looks, she bade him farewell and
  • disappeared among the crowd.
  • The whole of the next day Silas was filled with a sense of great
  • importance; he was now sure she was a countess; and when evening came he
  • minutely obeyed her orders and was at the corner of the Luxembourg
  • Gardens by the hour appointed. No one was there. He waited nearly half
  • an hour, looking in the face of every one who passed or loitered near
  • the spot; he even visited the neighbouring corners of the Boulevard and
  • made a complete circuit of the garden railings; but there was no
  • beautiful countess to throw herself into his arms. At last, and most
  • reluctantly, he began to retrace his steps towards his hotel. On the way
  • he remembered the words he had heard pass between Madame Zéphyrine and
  • the blond young man, and they gave him an indefinite uneasiness.
  • "It appears," he reflected, "that every one has to tell lies to our
  • porter."
  • He rang the bell, the door opened before him, and the porter in his
  • bed-clothes came to offer him a light.
  • "Has he gone?" inquired the porter.
  • "He? Whom do you mean?" asked Silas, somewhat sharply, for he was
  • irritated by his disappointment.
  • "I did not notice him go out," continued the porter, "but I trust you
  • paid him. We do not care, in this house, to have lodgers who cannot meet
  • their liabilities."
  • "What the devil do you mean?" demanded Silas, rudely. "I cannot
  • understand a word of this farrago."
  • "The short, blond young man who came for his debt," returned the other.
  • "Him it is I mean. Who else should it be, when I had your orders to
  • admit no one else?"
  • "Why, good God! of course he never came," retorted Silas.
  • "I believe what I believe," returned the porter, putting his tongue into
  • his cheek with a most roguish air.
  • "You are an insolent scoundrel," cried Silas, and, feeling that he had
  • made a ridiculous exhibition of asperity, and at the same time
  • bewildered by a dozen alarms, he turned and began to run upstairs.
  • "Do you not want a light, then?" cried the porter.
  • But Silas only hurried the faster, and did not pause until he had
  • reached the seventh landing and stood in front of his own door. There he
  • waited a moment to recover his breath, assailed by the worst
  • forebodings, and almost dreading to enter the room.
  • When at last he did so he was relieved to find it dark, and to all
  • appearance untenanted. He drew a long breath. Here he was, home again in
  • safety, and this should be his last folly as certainly as it had been
  • his first. The matches stood on a little table by the bed, and he began
  • to grope his way in that direction. As he moved, his apprehensions grew
  • upon him once more, and he was pleased, when his foot encountered an
  • obstacle, to find it nothing more alarming than a chair. At last he
  • touched curtains. From the position of the window, which was faintly
  • visible, he knew he must be at the foot of the bed, and had only to feel
  • his way along it in order to reach the table in question.
  • He lowered his hand, but what it touched was not simply a
  • counterpane--it was a counterpane with something underneath it like the
  • outline of a human leg. Silas withdrew his arm and stood a moment
  • petrified.
  • "What, what," he thought, "can this betoken?"
  • He listened intently, but there was no sound of breathing. Once more,
  • with a great effort, he reached out the end of his finger to the spot he
  • had already touched; but this time he leaped back half a yard, and stood
  • shivering and fixed with terror. There was something in his bed. What it
  • was he knew not, but there was something there.
  • It was some seconds before he could move. Then, guided by an instinct,
  • he fell straight upon the matches, and, keeping his back towards the
  • bed, lighted a candle. As soon as the flame had kindled, he turned
  • slowly round and looked for what he feared to see. Sure enough, there
  • was the worst of his imaginations realised. The coverlid was drawn
  • carefully up over the pillow, but it moulded the outline of a human body
  • lying motionless; and when he dashed forward and flung aside the sheets,
  • he beheld the blond young man whom he had seen in the Bullier Ball the
  • night before, his eyes open and without speculation, his face swollen
  • and blackened, and a thin stream of blood trickling from his nostrils.
  • Silas uttered a long, tremulous wail, dropped the candle and fell on his
  • knees beside the bed.
  • Silas was awakened from the stupor into which his terrible discovery had
  • plunged him, by a prolonged but discreet tapping at the door. It took
  • him some seconds to remember his position; and when he hastened to
  • prevent any one from entering it was already too late. Dr. Noel, in a
  • tall nightcap, carrying a lamp which lighted up his long white
  • countenance, sidling in his gait, and peering and cocking his head like
  • some sort of bird, pushed the door slowly open, and advanced into the
  • middle of the room.
  • "I thought I heard a cry," began the Doctor, "and fearing you might be
  • unwell I did not hesitate to offer this intrusion."
  • Silas, with a flushed face and a fearful beating heart, kept between the
  • Doctor and the bed; but he found no voice to answer.
  • "You are in the dark," pursued the Doctor; "and yet you have not even
  • begun to prepare for rest. You will not easily persuade me against my
  • own eyesight; and your face declares most eloquently that you require
  • either a friend or a physician--which is it to be? Let me feel your
  • pulse, for that is often a just reporter of the heart."
  • He advanced to Silas, who still retreated before him backwards, and
  • sought to take him by the wrist; but the strain on the young American's
  • nerves had become too great for endurance. He avoided the Doctor with a
  • febrile movement, and, throwing himself upon the floor, burst into a
  • flood of weeping.
  • As soon as Dr. Noel perceived the dead man in the bed his face
  • darkened; and hurrying back to the door, which he had left ajar, he
  • hastily closed and double-locked it.
  • "Up!" he cried, addressing Silas in strident tones; this is no time for
  • weeping. "What have you done? How came this body in your room? Speak
  • freely to one who may be helpful. Do you imagine I would ruin you? Do
  • you think this piece of dead flesh on your pillow can alter in any
  • degree the sympathy with which you have inspired me? Credulous youth,
  • the horror with which blind and unjust law regards an action never
  • attaches to the doer in the eyes of those who love him; and if I saw the
  • friend of my heart return to me out of seas of blood he would be in no
  • way changed in my affection. Raise yourself," he said; "good and ill are
  • a chimera; there is nought in life except destiny, and however you may
  • be circumstanced there is one at your side who will help you to the
  • last."
  • Thus encouraged, Silas gathered himself together, and in a broken voice,
  • and helped out by the Doctor's interrogations, contrived at last to put
  • him in possession of the facts. But the conversation between the Prince
  • and Geraldine he altogether omitted, as he had understood little of its
  • purport, and had no idea that it was in any way related to his own
  • misadventure.
  • "Alas!" cried Dr. Noel, "I am much abused, or you have fallen innocently
  • into the most dangerous hands in Europe. Poor boy, what a pit has been
  • dug for your simplicity! into what a deadly peril have your unwary feet
  • been conducted! This man," he said, "this Englishman, whom you twice
  • saw, and whom I suspect to be the soul of the contrivance, can you
  • describe him? Was he young or old? tall or short?"
  • But Silas, who, for all his curiosity, had not a seeing eye in his head,
  • was able to supply nothing but meagre generalities, which it was
  • impossible to recognise.
  • "I would have it a piece of education in all schools!" cried the Doctor
  • angrily. "Where is the use of eyesight and articulate speech if a man
  • cannot observe and recollect the features of his enemy? I, who know all
  • the gangs of Europe, might have identified him, and gained new weapons
  • for your defence. Cultivate this art in future, my poor boy; you may
  • find it of momentous service."
  • "The future!" repeated Silas. "What future is there left for me except
  • the gallows?"
  • "Youth is but a cowardly season," returned the Doctor; "and a man's own
  • troubles look blacker than they are. I am old, and yet I never despair."
  • "Can I tell such a story to the police?" demanded Silas.
  • "Assuredly not," replied the Doctor. "From what I see already of the
  • machination in which you have been involved, your case is desperate upon
  • that side; and for the narrow eye of the authorities you are infallibly
  • the guilty person. And remember that we only know a portion of the plot;
  • and the same infamous contrivers have doubtless arranged many other
  • circumstances which would be elicited by a police inquiry, and help to
  • fix the guilt more certainly upon your innocence."
  • "I am then lost, indeed!" cried Silas.
  • "I have not said so," answered Dr. Noel, "for I am a cautious man."
  • "But look at this!" objected Silas, pointing to the body. "Here is this
  • object in my bed: not to be explained, not to be disposed of, not to be
  • regarded without horror."
  • "Horror?" replied the Doctor. "No. When this sort of clock has run down,
  • it is no more to me than an ingenious piece of mechanism, to be
  • investigated with the bistoury. When blood is once cold and stagnant, it
  • is no longer human blood; when flesh is once dead, it is no longer that
  • flesh which we desire in our lovers and respect in our friends. The
  • grace, the attraction, the terror, have all gone from it with the
  • animating spirit. Accustom yourself to look upon it with composure; for
  • if my scheme is practicable you will have to live some days in constant
  • proximity to that which now so greatly horrifies you."
  • "Your scheme?" cried Silas. "What is that? Tell me speedily, Doctor;
  • for I have scarcely courage enough to continue to exist."
  • Without replying, Dr. Noel turned towards the bed, and proceeded to
  • examine the corpse.
  • "Quite dead," he murmured. "Yes, as I had supposed, the pockets empty.
  • Yes, and the name cut off the shirt. Their work has been done thoroughly
  • and well. Fortunately, he is of small stature."
  • Silas followed these words with an extreme anxiety. At last the Doctor,
  • his autopsy completed, took a chair and addressed the young American
  • with a smile.
  • "Since I came into your room," said he, "although my ears and my tongue
  • have been so busy, I have not suffered my eyes to remain idle. I noted a
  • little while ago that you have there, in the corner, one of those
  • monstrous constructions which your fellow-countrymen carry with them
  • into all quarters of the globe--in a word, a Saratoga trunk. Until this
  • moment I have never been able to conceive the utility of these
  • erections; but then I began to have a glimmer. Whether it was for
  • convenience in the slave-trade, or to obviate the results of too ready
  • an employment of the bowie-knife, I cannot bring myself to decide. But
  • one thing I see plainly--the object of such a box is to contain a human
  • body."
  • "Surely," cried Silas, "surely this is not a time for jesting."
  • "Although I may express myself with some degree of pleasantry," replied
  • the Doctor, "the purport of my words is entirely serious. And the first
  • thing we have to do, my young friend, is to empty your coffer of all
  • that it contains."
  • Silas, obeying the authority of Dr. Noel, put himself at his
  • disposition. The Saratoga trunk was soon gutted of its contents, which
  • made a considerable litter on the floor; and then--Silas taking the
  • heels and the Doctor supporting the shoulders--the body of the murdered
  • man was carried from the bed, and, after some difficulty, doubled up and
  • inserted whole into the empty box. With an effort on the part of both,
  • the lid was forced down upon this unusual baggage, and the trunk was
  • locked and corded by the Doctor's own hand, while Silas disposed of what
  • had been taken out between the closet and a chest of drawers.
  • "Now," said the Doctor, "the first step has been taken on the way to
  • your deliverance. To-morrow, or rather to-day, it must be your task to
  • allay the suspicions of your porter, paying him all that you owe; while
  • you may trust me to make the arrangements necessary to a safe
  • conclusion. Meantime, follow me to my room, where I shall give you a
  • safe and powerful opiate; for, whatever you do, you must have rest."
  • The next day was the longest in Silas's memory; it seemed as if it would
  • never be done. He denied himself to his friends, and sat in a corner
  • with his eyes fixed upon the Saratoga trunk in dismal contemplation. His
  • own former indiscretions were now returned upon him in kind; for the
  • observatory had been once more opened, and he was conscious of an almost
  • continual study from Madame Zéphyrine's apartment. So distressing did
  • this become that he was at last obliged to block up the spy-hole from
  • his own side; and when he was thus secured from observation he spent a
  • considerable portion of his time in contrite tears and prayer.
  • Late in the evening Dr. Noel entered the room carrying in his hand a
  • pair of sealed envelopes without address, one somewhat bulky, and the
  • other so slim as to seem without enclosure.
  • "Silas," he said, seating himself at the table, "the time has now come
  • for me to explain my plan for your salvation. To-morrow morning, at an
  • early hour, Prince Florizel of Bohemia returns to London, after having
  • diverted himself for a few days with the Parisian Carnival. It was my
  • fortune, a good while ago, to do Colonel Geraldine, his Master of the
  • Horse, one of those services, so common in my profession, which are
  • never forgotten upon either side. I have no need to explain to you the
  • nature of the obligation under which he was laid; suffice it to say
  • that I knew him ready to serve me in any practicable manner. Now, it was
  • necessary for you to gain London with your trunk unopened. To this the
  • Custom House seemed to oppose a fatal difficulty; but I bethought me
  • that the baggage of so considerable a person as the Prince is, as a
  • matter of courtesy, passed without examination by the officers of
  • Custom. I applied to Colonel Geraldine, and succeeded in obtaining a
  • favourable answer. To-morrow, if you go before six to the hotel where
  • the Prince lodges, your baggage will be passed over as a part of his,
  • and you yourself will make the journey as a member of his suite."
  • "It seems to me, as you speak, that I have already seen both the Prince
  • and Colonel Geraldine; I even overheard some of their conversation the
  • other evening at the Bullier Ball."
  • "It is probable enough; for the Prince loves to mix with all societies,"
  • replied the Doctor. "Once arrived in London," he pursued, "your task is
  • nearly ended. In this more bulky envelope I have given you a letter
  • which I dare not address; but in the other you will find the designation
  • of the house to which you must carry it along with your box, which will
  • there be taken from you and not trouble you any more."
  • "Alas!" said Silas, "I have every wish to believe you; but how is it
  • possible? You open up to me a bright prospect, but, I ask you, is my
  • mind capable of receiving so unlikely a solution? Be more generous, and
  • let me further understand your meaning."
  • The Doctor seemed painfully impressed.
  • "Boy," he answered, "you do not know how hard a thing you ask of me. But
  • be it so. I am now inured to humiliation; and it would be strange if I
  • refused you this, after having granted you so much. Know, then, that
  • although I now make so quiet an appearance--frugal, solitary, addicted
  • to study--when I was younger, my name was once a rallying-cry among the
  • most astute and dangerous spirits of London; and while I was outwardly
  • an object for respect and consideration, my true power resided in the
  • most secret, terrible, and criminal relations. It is to one of the
  • persons who then obeyed me that I now address myself to deliver you from
  • your burden. They were men of many different nations and dexterities,
  • all bound together by a formidable oath, and working to the same
  • purposes; the trade of the association was in murder; and I who speak to
  • you, innocent as I appear, was the chieftain of this redoubtable crew."
  • "What?" cried Silas. "A murderer? And one with whom murder was a trade?
  • Can I take your hand? Ought I so much as to accept your services? Dark
  • and criminal old man, would you make an accomplice of my youth and my
  • distress?"
  • The Doctor bitterly laughed.
  • "You are difficult to please, Mr. Scuddamore," said he; "but I now offer
  • you your choice of company between the murdered man and the murderer. If
  • your conscience is too nice to accept my aid, say so, and I will
  • immediately leave you. Thenceforward you can deal with your trunk and
  • its belongings as best suits your upright conscience."
  • "I own myself wrong," replied Silas. "I should have remembered how
  • generously you offered to shield me, even before I had convinced you of
  • my innocence, and I continue to listen to your counsels with gratitude."
  • "That is well," returned the Doctor; "and I perceive you are beginning
  • to learn some of the lessons of experience."
  • "At the same time," resumed the New Englander, "as you confess yourself
  • accustomed to this tragical business, and the people to whom you
  • recommend me are your own former associates and friends, could you not
  • yourself undertake the transport of the box, and rid me at once of its
  • detested presence?"
  • "Upon my word," replied the Doctor, "I admire you cordially. If you do
  • not think I have already meddled sufficiently in your concerns, believe
  • me, from my heart I think the contrary. Take or leave my services as I
  • offer them; and trouble me with no more words of gratitude, for I value
  • your consideration even more lightly than I do your intellect. A time
  • will come, if you should be spared to see a number of years in health of
  • mind, when you will think differently of all this, and blush for your
  • to-night's behaviour."
  • So saying, the Doctor arose from his chair, repeated his directions
  • briefly and clearly, and departed from the room without permitting Silas
  • any time to answer.
  • The next morning Silas presented himself at the hotel, where he was
  • politely received by Colonel Geraldine, and relieved, from that moment,
  • of all immediate alarm about his trunk and its grisly contents. The
  • journey passed over without much incident, although the young man was
  • horrified to overhear the sailors and railway porters complaining among
  • themselves about the unusual weight of the Prince's baggage. Silas
  • travelled in a carriage with the valets, for Prince Florizel chose to be
  • alone with his Master of the Horse. On board the steamer, however, Silas
  • attracted his Highness's attention by the melancholy of his air and
  • attitude as he stood gazing at the pile of baggage; for he was still
  • full of disquietude about the future.
  • "There is a young man," observed the Prince, "who must have some cause
  • for sorrow."
  • "That," replied Geraldine, "is the American for whom I obtained
  • permission to travel with your suite."
  • "You remind me that I have been remiss in courtesy," said Prince
  • Florizel, and advancing to Silas, he addressed him with the most
  • exquisite condescension in these words:
  • "I was charmed, young sir, to be able to gratify the desire you made
  • known to me through Colonel Geraldine. Remember, if you please, that I
  • shall be glad at any future time to lay you under a more serious
  • obligation."
  • And he then put some questions as to the political condition of America,
  • which Silas answered with sense and propriety.
  • "You are still a young man," said the Prince; "but I observe you to be
  • very serious for your years. Perhaps you allow your attention to be too
  • much occupied with grave studies. But, perhaps, on the other hand, I am
  • myself indiscreet and touch upon a painful subject."
  • "I have certainly cause to be the most miserable of men," said Silas;
  • "never has a more innocent person been more dismally abused."
  • "I will not ask you for your confidence," returned Prince Florizel. "But
  • do not forget that Colonel Geraldine's recommendation is an unfailing
  • passport; and that I am not only willing, but possibly more able than
  • many others, to do you a service."
  • Silas was delighted with the amiability of this great personage; but his
  • mind soon returned upon its gloomy preoccupations; for not even the
  • favour of a Prince to a Republican can discharge a brooding spirit of
  • its cares.
  • The train arrived at Charing Cross, where the officers of the Revenue
  • respected the baggage of Prince Florizel in the usual manner. The most
  • elegant equipages were in waiting; and Silas was driven, along with the
  • rest, to the Prince's residence. There Colonel Geraldine sought him out,
  • and expressed himself pleased to have been of any service to a friend of
  • the physician's, for whom he professed a great consideration.
  • "I hope," he added, "that you will find none of your porcelain injured.
  • Special orders were given along the line to deal tenderly with the
  • Prince's effects."
  • And then, directing the servants to place one of the carriages at the
  • young gentleman's disposal, and at once to charge the Saratoga trunk
  • upon the dickey, the Colonel shook hands and excused himself on account
  • of his occupations in the princely household.
  • Silas now broke the seal of the envelope containing the address, and
  • directed the stately footman to drive him to Box Court, opening off the
  • Strand. It seemed as if the place were not at all unknown to the man,
  • for he looked startled and begged a repetition of the order. It was
  • with a heart full of alarms that Silas mounted into the luxurious
  • vehicle, and was driven to his destination. The entrance to Box Court
  • was too narrow for the passage of a coach; it was a mere footway between
  • railings, with a post at either end. On one of these posts was seated a
  • man, who at once jumped down and exchanged a friendly sign with the
  • driver, while the footman opened the door and inquired of Silas whether
  • he should take down the Saratoga trunk, and to what number it should be
  • carried.
  • "If you please," said Silas. "To number three."
  • The footman and the man who had been sitting on the post, even with the
  • aid of Silas himself, had hard work to carry in the trunk; and before it
  • was deposited at the door of the house in question, the young American
  • was horrified to find a score of loiterers looking on. But he knocked
  • with as good a countenance as he could muster up, and presented the
  • other envelope to him who opened.
  • "He is not at home," said he, "but if you will leave your letter and
  • return to-morrow early, I shall be able to inform you whether and when
  • he can receive your visit. Would you like to leave your box?" he added.
  • "Dearly," cried Silas; and the next moment he repented his
  • precipitation, and declared, with equal emphasis, that he would rather
  • carry the box along with him to the hotel.
  • The crowd jeered at his indecision, and followed him to the carriage
  • with insulting remarks; and Silas, covered with shame and terror,
  • implored the servants to conduct him to some quiet and comfortable house
  • of entertainment in the immediate neighbourhood.
  • The Prince's equipage deposited Silas at the Craven Hotel in Craven
  • Street, and immediately drove away, leaving him alone with the servants
  • of the inn. The only vacant room, it appeared, was a little den up four
  • pairs of stairs, and looking towards the back. To this hermitage, with
  • infinite trouble and complaint, a pair of stout porters carried the
  • Saratoga trunk. It is needless to mention that Silas kept closely at
  • their heels throughout the ascent, and had his heart in his mouth at
  • every corner. A single false step, he reflected, and the box might go
  • over the banisters and land its fatal contents, plainly discovered, on
  • the pavement of the hall.
  • Arrived in the room, he sat down on the edge of his bed to recover from
  • the agony that he had just endured; but he had hardly taken his position
  • when he was recalled to a sense of his peril by the action of the boots,
  • who had knelt beside the trunk, and was proceeding officiously to undo
  • its elaborate fastenings.
  • "Let it be!" cried Silas. "I shall want nothing from it while I stay
  • here."
  • "You might have let it lie in the hall, then," growled the man; "a thing
  • as big and heavy as a church. What you have inside I cannot fancy. If it
  • is all money, you are a richer man than we."
  • "Money?" repeated Silas, in a sudden perturbation. "What do you mean by
  • money? I have no money, and you are speaking like a fool."
  • "All right, captain," retorted the boots with a wink. "There's nobody
  • will touch your lordship's money. I'm as safe as the bank," he added;
  • "but as the box is heavy, I shouldn't mind drinking something to your
  • lordship's health."
  • Silas pressed two Napoleons upon his acceptance, apologising, at the
  • same time, for being obliged to trouble him with foreign money, and
  • pleading his recent arrival for excuse. And the man, grumbling with even
  • greater fervour, and looking contemptuously from the money in his hand
  • to the Saratoga trunk, and back again from the one to the other, at last
  • consented to withdraw.
  • For nearly two days the dead body had been packed into Silas's box; and
  • as soon as he was alone the unfortunate New Englander nosed all the
  • cracks and openings with the most passionate attention. But the weather
  • was cool, and the trunk still managed to contain his shocking secret.
  • He took a chair beside it, and buried his face in his hands, and his
  • mind in the most profound reflection. If he were not speedily relieved,
  • no question but he must be speedily discovered. Alone in a strange city,
  • without friends or accomplices, if the Doctor's introduction failed him,
  • he was indubitably a lost New Englander. He reflected pathetically over
  • his ambitious designs for the future; he should not now become the hero
  • and spokesman of his native place of Bangor, Maine; he should not, as he
  • had fondly anticipated, move on from office to office, from honour to
  • honour; he might as well divest himself at once of all hope of being
  • acclaimed President of the United States, and leaving behind him a
  • statue, in the worst possible style of art, to adorn the Capitol at
  • Washington. Here he was, chained to a dead Englishman doubled up inside
  • a Saratoga trunk; whom he must get rid of, or perish from the rolls of
  • national glory!
  • I should be afraid to chronicle the language employed by this young man
  • to the Doctor, to the murdered man, to Madame Zéphyrine, to the boots of
  • the hotel, to the Prince's servants, and, in a word, to all who had been
  • ever so remotely connected with his horrible misfortune.
  • He slunk down to dinner about seven at night; but the yellow coffee-room
  • appalled him, the eyes of the other diners seemed to rest on his with
  • suspicion, and his mind remained upstairs with the Saratoga trunk. When
  • the waiter came to offer him cheese, his nerves were already so much on
  • edge that he leaped half-way out of his chair and upset the remainder of
  • a pint of ale upon the table-cloth.
  • The fellow offered to show him to the smoking-room when he had done; and
  • although he would have much preferred to return at once to his perilous
  • treasure, he had not the courage to refuse, and was shown downstairs to
  • the black, gas-lit cellar, which formed, and possibly still forms, the
  • divan of the Craven Hotel.
  • Two very sad betting men were playing billiards, attended by a moist,
  • consumptive marker; and for the moment Silas imagined that these were
  • the only occupants of the apartment. But at the next glance his eye
  • fell upon a person smoking in the farthest corner, with lowered eyes and
  • a most respectable and modest aspect. He knew at once that he had seen
  • the face before; and, in spite of the entire change of clothes,
  • recognised the man whom he had found seated on a post at the entrance to
  • Box Court, and who had helped him to carry the trunk to and from the
  • carriage. The New Englander simply turned and ran, nor did he pause
  • until he had locked and bolted himself into his bedroom.
  • There, all night long, a prey to the most terrible imaginations, he
  • watched beside the fatal boxful of dead flesh. The suggestion of the
  • boots that his trunk was full of gold inspired him with all manner of
  • new terrors, if he so much as dared to close an eye; and the presence in
  • the smoking-room, and under an obvious disguise, of the loiterer from
  • Box Court convinced him that he was once more the centre of obscure
  • machinations.
  • Midnight had sounded some time, when, impelled by uneasy suspicions,
  • Silas opened his bedroom door and peered into the passage. It was dimly
  • illuminated by a single jet of gas; and some distance off he perceived a
  • man sleeping on the floor in the costume of an hotel under-servant.
  • Silas drew near the man on tiptoe. He lay partly on his back, partly on
  • his side, and his right fore-arm concealed his face from recognition.
  • Suddenly, while the American was still bending over him, the sleeper
  • removed his arm and opened his eyes, and Silas found himself once more
  • face to face with the loiterer of Box Court.
  • "Good-night, sir," said the man pleasantly.
  • But Silas was too profoundly moved to find an answer, and regained his
  • room in silence.
  • Towards morning, worn out by apprehension, he fell asleep on his chair,
  • with his head forward on the trunk. In spite of so constrained an
  • attitude and such a grisly pillow, his slumber was sound and prolonged,
  • and he was only awakened at a late hour and by a sharp tapping at the
  • door.
  • He hurried to open, and found the boots without.
  • "You are the gentleman who called yesterday at Box Court?" he asked.
  • Silas, with a quaver, admitted that he had done so.
  • "Then this note is for you," added the servant, proffering a sealed
  • envelope.
  • Silas tore it open, and found inside the words: "Twelve o'clock."
  • He was punctual to the hour; the trunk was carried before him by several
  • stout servants; and he was himself ushered into a room, where a man sat
  • warming himself before the fire with his back towards the door. The
  • sound of so many persons entering and leaving, and the scraping of the
  • trunk as it was deposited upon the bare boards, were alike unable to
  • attract the notice of the occupant; and Silas stood waiting, in an agony
  • of fear, until he should deign to recognise his presence.
  • Perhaps five minutes had elapsed before the man turned leisurely about,
  • and disclosed the features of Prince Florizel of Bohemia.
  • "So, sir," he said, with great severity, "this is the manner in which
  • you abuse my politeness. You join yourself to persons of condition, I
  • perceive, for no other purpose than to escape the consequences of your
  • crimes; and I can readily understand your embarrassment when I addressed
  • myself to you yesterday."
  • "Indeed," cried Silas, "I am innocent of everything except misfortune."
  • And in a hurried voice, and with the greatest ingenuousness, he
  • recounted to the Prince the whole history of his calamity.
  • "I see I have been mistaken," said his Highness, when he had heard him
  • to an end. "You are no other than a victim, and since I am not to punish
  • you may be sure I shall do my utmost to help.--And now," he continued,
  • "to business. Open your box at once, and let me see what it contains."
  • Silas changed colour.
  • "I almost fear to look upon it," he exclaimed.
  • "Nay," replied the Prince, "have you not looked at it already? This is a
  • form of sentimentality to be resisted. The sight of a sick man, whom we
  • can still help, should appeal more directly to the feelings than that of
  • a dead man who is equally beyond help or harm, love or hatred. Nerve
  • yourself, Mr. Scuddamore,"--and then, seeing that Silas still hesitated,
  • "I do not desire to give another name to my request," he added.
  • The young American awoke as if out of a dream, and with a shiver of
  • repugnance addressed himself to loose the straps and open the lock of
  • the Saratoga trunk. The Prince stood by, watching with a composed
  • countenance and his hands behind his back. The body was quite stiff, and
  • it cost Silas a great effort, both moral and physical, to dislodge it
  • from its position, and discover the face.
  • Prince Florizel started back with an exclamation of painful surprise.
  • "Alas!" he cried, "you little know, Mr. Scuddamore, what a cruel gift
  • you have brought me. This is a young man of my own suite, the brother of
  • my trusted friend; and it was upon matters of my own service that he has
  • thus perished at the hands of violent and treacherous men. Poor
  • Geraldine," he went on, as if to himself, "in what words am I to tell
  • you of your brother's fate? How can I excuse myself in your eyes, or in
  • the eyes of God, for the presumptuous schemes that led him to this
  • bloody and unnatural death? Ah, Florizel! Florizel! when will you learn
  • the discretion that suits mortal life, and be no longer dazzled with the
  • image of power at your disposal? Power!" he cried; "who is more
  • powerless? I look upon this young man whom I have sacrificed, Mr.
  • Scuddamore, and feel how small a thing it is to be a Prince."
  • Silas was moved at the sight of his emotion. He tried to murmur some
  • consolatory words, and burst into tears. The Prince, touched by his
  • obvious intention, came up to him and took him by the hand.
  • "Command yourself," said he. "We have both much to learn, and we shall
  • both be better men for to-day's meeting."
  • Silas thanked him in silence with an affectionate look.
  • "Write me the address of Doctor Noel on this piece of paper," continued
  • the Prince, leading him towards the table; "and let me recommend you,
  • when you are again in Paris, to avoid the society of that dangerous man.
  • He has acted in this matter on a generous inspiration; that I must
  • believe; had he been privy to young Geraldine's death he would never
  • have despatched the body to the care of the actual criminal."
  • "The actual criminal!" repeated Silas in astonishment.
  • "Even so," returned the Prince. "This letter, which the disposition of
  • Almighty Providence has so strangely delivered into my hands, was
  • addressed to no less a person than the criminal himself, the infamous
  • President of the Suicide Club. Seek to pry no further in these perilous
  • affairs, but content yourself with your own miraculous escape, and leave
  • this house at once. I have pressing affairs, and must arrange at once
  • about this poor clay, which was so lately a gallant and handsome youth."
  • Silas took a grateful and submissive leave of Prince Florizel, but he
  • lingered in Box Court until he saw him depart in a splendid carriage on
  • a visit to Colonel Henderson of the police. Republican as he was, the
  • young American took off his hat with almost a sentiment of devotion to
  • the retreating carriage. And the same night he started by rail on his
  • return to Paris.
  • _Here_ (observes my Arabian author) _is the end of_ THE HISTORY OF THE
  • PHYSICIAN AND THE SARATOGA TRUNK. _Omitting some reflections on the
  • power of Providence, highly pertinent in the original, but little suited
  • to our Occidental taste, I shall only add that Mr. Scuddamore has
  • already begun to mount the ladder of political fame, and by last advices
  • was the Sheriff of his native town._
  • THE ADVENTURE OF THE HANSOM CABS
  • Lieutenant Brackenbury Rich had greatly distinguished himself in one of
  • the lesser Indian hill wars. He it was who took the chieftain prisoner
  • with his own hand; his gallantry was universally applauded; and when he
  • came home, prostrated by an ugly sabre-cut and a protracted
  • jungle-fever, society was prepared to welcome the Lieutenant as a
  • celebrity of minor lustre. But his was a character remarkable for
  • unaffected modesty; adventure was dear to his heart, but he cared little
  • for adulation; and he waited at foreign watering-places and in Algiers
  • until the fame of his exploits had run through its nine days' vitality
  • and begun to be forgotten. He arrived in London at last, in the early
  • season, with as little observation as he could desire; and as he was an
  • orphan and had none but distant relatives who lived in the provinces, it
  • was almost as a foreigner that he installed himself in the capital of
  • the country for which he had shed his blood.
  • On the day following his arrival he dined alone at a military club. He
  • shook hands with a few old comrades, and received their warm
  • congratulations; but as one and all had some engagement for the evening,
  • he found himself left entirely to his own resources. He was in dress,
  • for he had entertained the notion of visiting a theatre. But the great
  • city was new to him; he had gone from a provincial school to a military
  • college, and thence direct to the Eastern Empire; and he promised
  • himself a variety of delights in this world for exploration. Swinging
  • his cane, he took his way westward. It was a mild evening, already dark,
  • and now and then threatening rain. The succession of faces in the
  • lamplight stirred the Lieutenant's imagination; and it seemed to him as
  • if he could walk for ever in that stimulating city atmosphere and
  • surrounded by the mystery of four million private lives. He glanced at
  • the houses, and marvelled what was passing behind those warmly-lighted
  • windows; he looked into face after face, and saw them each intent upon
  • some unknown interest, criminal or kindly.
  • "They talk of war," he thought, "but this is the great battlefield of
  • mankind."
  • And then he began to wonder that he should walk so long in this
  • complicated scene, and not chance upon so much as the shadow of an
  • adventure for himself.
  • "All in good time," he reflected. "I am still a stranger, and perhaps
  • wear a strange air. But I must be drawn into the eddy before long."
  • The night was already well advanced when a plump of cold rain fell
  • suddenly out of the darkness. Brackenbury paused under some trees, and
  • as he did so he caught sight of a hansom cabman making him a sign that
  • he was disengaged. The circumstance fell in so happily to the occasion
  • that he at once raised his cane in answer, and had soon ensconced
  • himself in the London gondola.
  • "Where to, sir?" asked the driver.
  • "Where you please," said Brackenbury.
  • And immediately, at a pace of surprising swiftness, the hansom drove off
  • through the rain into a maze of villas. One villa was so like another,
  • each with its front garden, and there was so little to distinguish the
  • deserted lamp-lit streets and crescents through which the flying hansom
  • took its way, that Brackenbury soon lost all idea of direction. He would
  • have been tempted to believe that the cabman was amusing himself by
  • driving him round and round and in and out about a small quarter, but
  • there was something business-like in the speed which convinced him of
  • the contrary. The man had an object in view, he was hastening towards a
  • definite end; and Brackenbury was at once astonished at the fellow's
  • skill in picking a way through such a labyrinth, and a little concerned
  • to imagine what was the occasion of his hurry. He had heard tales of
  • strangers falling ill in London. Did the driver belong to some bloody
  • and treacherous association? and was he himself being whirled to a
  • murderous death?
  • The thought had scarcely presented itself, when the cab swung sharply
  • round a corner and pulled up before the garden gate of a villa in a long
  • and wide road. The house was brilliantly lighted up. Another hansom had
  • just driven away, and Brackenbury could see a gentleman being admitted
  • at the front door and received by several liveried servants. He was
  • surprised that the cabman should have stopped so immediately in front of
  • a house where a reception was being held; but he did not doubt it was
  • the result of accident, and sat placidly smoking where he was, until he
  • heard the trap thrown open over his head.
  • "Here we are, sir," said the driver.
  • "Here!" repeated Brackenbury. "Where?"
  • "You told me to take you where I pleased, sir," returned the man with a
  • chuckle, "and here we are."
  • It struck Brackenbury that the voice was wonderfully smooth and
  • courteous for a man in so inferior a position; he remembered the speed
  • at which he had been driven; and now it occurred to him that the hansom
  • was more luxuriously appointed than the common run of public
  • conveyances.
  • "I must ask you to explain," said he. "Do you mean to turn me out into
  • the rain? My good man, I suspect the choice is mine."
  • "The choice is certainly yours," replied the driver; "but when I tell
  • you all, I believe I know how a gentleman of your figure will decide.
  • There is a gentleman's party in this house. I do not know whether the
  • master be a stranger to London and without acquaintances of his own; or
  • whether he is a man of odd notions. But certainly I was hired to kidnap
  • single gentlemen in evening dress, as many as I pleased, but military
  • officers by preference. You have simply to go in and say that Mr. Morris
  • invited you."
  • "Are you Mr. Morris?" inquired the Lieutenant.
  • "Oh, no," replied the cabman. "Mr. Morris is the person of the house."
  • "It is not a common way of collecting guests," said Brackenbury: "but
  • an eccentric man might very well indulge the whim without any intention
  • to offend. And suppose that I refuse Mr. Morris's invitation," he went
  • on, "what then?"
  • "My orders are to drive you back where I took you from," replied the
  • man, "and set out to look for others up to midnight. Those who have no
  • fancy for such an adventure, Mr. Morris said, were not the guests for
  • him."
  • These words decided the Lieutenant on the spot.
  • "After all," he reflected, as he descended from the hansom, "I have not
  • had long to wait for my adventure."
  • He had hardly found footing on the side-walk, and was still feeling in
  • his pocket for the fare, when the cab swung about and drove off by the
  • way it came at the former break-neck velocity. Brackenbury shouted after
  • the man, who paid no heed, and continued to drive away; but the sound of
  • his voice was overheard in the house, the door was again thrown open,
  • emitting a flood of light upon the garden, and a servant ran down to
  • meet him holding an umbrella.
  • "The cabman has been paid," observed the servant in a very civil tone;
  • and he proceeded to escort Brackenbury along the path and up the steps.
  • In the hall several other attendants relieved him of his hat, cane, and
  • paletot, gave him a ticket with a number in return, and politely hurried
  • him up a stair adorned with tropical flowers, to the door of an
  • apartment on the first story. Here a grave butler inquired his name, and
  • announcing, "Lieutenant Brackenbury Rich," ushered him into the
  • drawing-room of the house.
  • A young man, slender and singularly handsome, came forward and greeted
  • him with an air at once courtly and affectionate. Hundreds of candles,
  • of the finest wax, lit up a room that was perfumed, like the staircase,
  • with a profusion of rare and beautiful flowering shrubs, A side-table
  • was loaded with tempting viands. Several servants went to and fro with
  • fruits and goblets of champagne. The company was perhaps sixteen in
  • number, all men, few beyond the prime of life, and, with hardly an
  • exception, of a dashing and capable exterior. They were divided into two
  • groups, one about a roulette-board, and the other surrounding a table at
  • which one of their number held a bank of baccarat.
  • "I see," thought Brackenbury, "I am in a private gambling saloon, and
  • the cabman was a tout."
  • His eye had embraced the details, and his mind formed the conclusion,
  • while his host was still holding him by the hand; and to him his looks
  • returned from this rapid survey. At a second view Mr. Morris surprised
  • him still more than on the first. The easy elegance of his manners, the
  • distinction, amiability, and courage that appeared upon his features,
  • fitted very ill with the Lieutenant's preconceptions on the subject of
  • the proprietor of a hell; and the tone of his conversation seemed to
  • mark him out for a man of position and merit. Brackenbury found he had
  • an instinctive liking for his entertainer; and though he chid himself
  • for the weakness, he was unable to resist a sort of friendly attraction
  • for Mr. Morris's person and character.
  • "I have heard of you, Lieutenant Rich," said Mr. Morris, lowering his
  • tone; "and believe me I am gratified to make your acquaintance. Your
  • looks accord with the reputation that has preceded you from India. And
  • if you will forget for a while the irregularity of your presentation in
  • my house, I shall feel it not only an honour, but a genuine pleasure
  • besides. A man who makes a mouthful of barbarian cavaliers," he added
  • with a laugh, "should not be appalled by a breach of etiquette, however
  • serious."
  • And he led him towards the sideboard and pressed him to partake of some
  • refreshment.
  • "Upon my word," the Lieutenant reflected, "this is one of the
  • pleasantest fellows and, I do not doubt, one of the most agreeable
  • societies in London."
  • He partook of some champagne, which he found excellent; and observing
  • that many of the company were already smoking, he lit one of his own
  • Manillas, and strolled up to the roulette-board, where he sometimes made
  • a stake and sometimes looked on smilingly on the fortune of others. It
  • was while he was thus idling that he became aware of a sharp scrutiny to
  • which the whole of the guests were subjected. Mr. Morris went here and
  • there, ostensibly busied on hospitable concerns; but he had ever a
  • shrewd glance at disposal; not a man of the party escaped his sudden,
  • searching looks; he took stock of the bearing of heavy losers, he valued
  • the amount of the stakes, he paused behind couples who were deep in
  • conversation; and, in a word, there was hardly a characteristic of any
  • one present but he seemed to catch and make a note of it. Brackenbury
  • began to wonder if this were indeed a gambling-hell: it had so much the
  • air of a private inquisition. He followed Mr. Morris in all his
  • movements; and although the man had a ready smile, he seemed to
  • perceive, as it were under a mask, a haggard, careworn, and preoccupied
  • spirit. The fellows around him laughed and made their game; but
  • Brackenbury had lost interest in the guests.
  • "This Morris," thought he, "is no idler in the room. Some deep purpose
  • inspires him; let it be mine to fathom it."
  • Now and then Mr. Morris would call one of his visitors aside; and after
  • a brief colloquy in an ante-room, he would return alone, and the
  • visitors in question reappeared no more. After a certain number of
  • repetitions, this performance excited Brackenbury's curiosity to a high
  • degree. He determined to be at the bottom of this minor mystery at once;
  • and strolling into the ante-room, found a deep window recess concealed
  • by curtains of the fashionable green. Here he hurriedly ensconced
  • himself; nor had he to wait long before the sound of steps and voices
  • drew near him from the principal apartment. Peering through the
  • division, he saw Mr. Morris escorting a fat and ruddy personage, with
  • somewhat the look of a commercial traveller, whom Brackenbury had
  • already remarked for his coarse laugh and under-bred behaviour at the
  • table. The pair halted immediately before the window, so that
  • Brackenbury lost not a word of the following discourse:--
  • "I beg you a thousand pardons!" began Mr. Morris, with the most
  • conciliatory manner; "and, if I appear rude, I am sure you will readily
  • forgive me. In a place so great as London accidents must continually
  • happen; and the best that we can hope is to remedy them with as small
  • delay as possible. I will not deny that I fear you have made a mistake
  • and honoured my poor house by inadvertence; for, to speak openly, I
  • cannot at all remember your appearance. Let me put the question without
  • unnecessary circumlocution--between gentlemen of honour a word will
  • suffice--Under whose roof do you suppose yourself to be?"
  • "That of Mr. Morris," replied the other, with a prodigious display of
  • confusion, which had been visibly growing upon him throughout the last
  • few words.
  • "Mr. John or Mr. James Morris?" inquired the host.
  • "I really cannot tell you," returned the unfortunate guest. "I am not
  • personally acquainted with the gentleman, any more than I am with
  • yourself."
  • "I see," said Mr. Morris. "There is another person of the same name
  • farther down the street; and I have no doubt the policeman will be able
  • to supply you with his number. Believe me, I felicitate myself on the
  • misunderstanding which has procured me the pleasure of your company for
  • so long; and let me express a hope that we may meet again upon a more
  • regular footing. Meantime, I would not for the world detain you longer
  • from your friends. John," he added, raising his voice, "will you see
  • that this gentleman finds his great-coat?"
  • And with the most agreeable air Mr. Morris escorted his visitor as far
  • as the ante-room door, where he left him under conduct of the butler. As
  • he passed the window, on his return to the drawing-room, Brackenbury
  • could hear him utter a profound sigh, as though his mind was loaded with
  • a great anxiety, and his nerves already fatigued with the task on which
  • he was engaged.
  • For perhaps an hour the hansoms kept arriving with such frequency that
  • Mr. Morris had to receive a new guest for every old one that he sent
  • away, and the company preserved its number undiminished. But towards the
  • end of that time the arrivals grew few and far between, and at length
  • ceased entirely, while the process of elimination was continued with
  • unimpaired activity. The drawing-room began to look empty: the baccarat
  • was discontinued for lack of a banker; more than one person said
  • good-night of his own accord, and was suffered to depart without
  • expostulation; and in the meanwhile Mr. Morris redoubled in agreeable
  • attentions to those who stayed behind. He went from group to group and
  • from person to person with looks of the readiest sympathy and the most
  • pertinent and pleasing talk; he was not so much like a host as like a
  • hostess, and there was a feminine coquetry and condescension in his
  • manner which charmed the hearts of all.
  • As the guests grew thinner, Lieutenant Rich strolled for a moment out of
  • the drawing-room into the hall in quest of fresher air. But he had no
  • sooner passed the threshold of the ante-chamber than he was brought to a
  • dead halt by a discovery of the most surprising nature. The flowering
  • shrubs had disappeared from the staircase; three large furniture-waggons
  • stood before the garden gate; the servants were busy dismantling the
  • house upon all sides; and some of them had already donned their
  • great-coats and were preparing to depart. It was like the end of a
  • country ball, where everything has been supplied by contract.
  • Brackenbury had indeed some matter for reflection. First, the guests,
  • who were no real guests, after all, had been dismissed; and now the
  • servants, who could hardly be genuine servants, were actively
  • dispersing.
  • "Was the whole establishment a sham?" he asked himself. "The mushroom of
  • a single night which should disappear before morning?"
  • Watching a favourable opportunity, Brackenbury dashed upstairs to the
  • higher regions of the house. It was as he had expected. He ran from room
  • to room, and saw Although the house had been painted and papered, it
  • was not only uninhabited at present, but plainly had never been
  • inhabited at all. The young officer remembered with astonishment its
  • specious, settled, and hospitable air on his arrival. It was only at a
  • prodigious cost that the imposture could have been carried out upon so
  • great a scale.
  • Who, then, was Mr. Morris? What was his intention in thus playing the
  • householder for a single night in the remote west of London? And why did
  • he collect his visitors at hazard from the streets?
  • Brackenbury remembered that he had already delayed too long, and
  • hastened to join the company. Many had left during his absence; and,
  • counting the Lieutenant and his host, there were not more than five
  • persons in the drawing-room--recently so thronged. Mr. Morris greeted
  • him, as he re-entered the apartment, with a smile, and immediately rose
  • to his feet.
  • "It is now time, gentlemen," said he, "to explain my purpose in decoying
  • you from your amusements. I trust you did not find the evening hang very
  • dully on your hands; but my object, I will confess it, was not to
  • entertain your leisure, but to help myself in an unfortunate necessity.
  • You are all gentlemen," he continued, "your appearance does you that
  • much justice, and I ask for no better security. Hence, I speak it
  • without concealment, I ask you to render me a dangerous and delicate
  • service; dangerous because you may run the hazard of your lives, and
  • delicate because I must ask an absolute discretion upon all that you
  • shall see or hear. From an utter stranger the request is almost
  • comically extravagant; I am well aware of this; and I would add at once,
  • if there be any one present who has heard enough, if there be one among
  • the party who recoils from a dangerous confidence and a piece of
  • Quixotic devotion to he knows not whom--here is my hand ready, and I
  • shall wish him good-night and God-speed with all the sincerity in the
  • world."
  • A very tall, black man, with a heavy stoop, immediately responded to
  • this appeal.
  • "I commend your frankness, sir," said he; "and, for my part, I go. I
  • make no reflections; but I cannot deny that you fill me with suspicious
  • thoughts. I go myself, as I say; and perhaps you will think I have no
  • right to add words to my example."
  • "On the contrary," replied Mr. Morris, "I am obliged to you for all you
  • say. It would be impossible to exaggerate the gravity of my proposal."
  • "Well, gentlemen, what do you say?" said the tall man, addressing the
  • others. "We have had our evening's frolic; shall we all go homeward
  • peaceably in a body? You will think well of my suggestion in the
  • morning, when you see the sun again in innocence and safety."
  • The speaker pronounced the last words with an intonation which added to
  • their force; and his face wore a singular expression, full of gravity
  • and significance. Another of the company rose hastily, and, with some
  • appearance of alarm, prepared to take his leave. There were only two who
  • held their ground, Brackenbury and an old red-nosed cavalry Major; but
  • these two preserved a nonchalant demeanour, and, beyond a look of
  • intelligence which they rapidly exchanged, appeared entirely foreign to
  • the discussion that had just been terminated.
  • Mr. Morris conducted the deserters as far as the door, which he closed
  • upon their heels; then he turned round, disclosing a countenance of
  • mingled relief and animation, and addressed the two officers as follows.
  • "I have chosen my men like Joshua in the Bible," said Mr. Morris, "and I
  • now believe I have the pick of London. Your appearance pleased my hansom
  • cabmen; then it delighted me; I have watched your behaviour in a strange
  • company, and under the most unusual circumstances: I have studied how
  • you played and how you bore your losses; lastly, I have put you to the
  • test of a staggering announcement, and you received it like an
  • invitation to dinner. It is not for nothing," he cried, "that I have
  • been for years the companion and the pupil of the bravest and wisest
  • potentate in Europe."
  • "At the affair of Bunderchang," observed the Major, "I asked for twelve
  • volunteers, and every trooper in the ranks replied to my appeal. But a
  • gaming party is not the same thing as a regiment under fire. You may be
  • pleased, I suppose, to have found two, and two who will not fail you at
  • a push. As for the pair who ran away, I count them among the most
  • pitiful hounds I ever met with.--Lieutenant Rich," he added, addressing
  • Brackenbury, "I have heard much of you of late; and I cannot doubt but
  • you have also heard of me. I am Major O'Rooke."
  • And the veteran tendered his hand, which was red and tremulous, to the
  • young Lieutenant.
  • "Who has not?" answered Brackenbury.
  • "When this little matter is settled," said Mr. Morris, "you will think I
  • have sufficiently rewarded you; for I could offer neither a more
  • valuable service than to make him acquainted with the other."
  • "And now," said Major O'Rooke, "is it a duel?"
  • "A duel after a fashion," replied Mr. Morris, "a duel with unknown and
  • dangerous enemies, and, as I gravely fear, a duel to the death. I must
  • ask you," he continued, "to call me Morris no longer; call me, if you
  • please, Hammersmith; my real name, as well as that of another person to
  • whom I hope to present you before long, you will gratify me by not
  • asking, and not seeking to discover for yourselves. Three days ago the
  • person of whom I speak disappeared suddenly from home; and, until this
  • morning, I received no hint of his situation. You will fancy my alarm
  • when I tell you that he is engaged upon a work of private justice. Bound
  • by an unhappy oath, too lightly sworn, he finds it necessary, without
  • the help of law, to rid the earth of an insidious and bloody villain.
  • Already two of our friends, and one of them my own born brother, have
  • perished in the enterprise. He himself, or I am much deceived, is taken
  • in the same fatal toils. But at least he still lives and still hopes,
  • as this billet sufficiently proves."
  • And the speaker, no other than Colonel Geraldine, proffered a letter,
  • thus conceived:--
  • "MAJOR HAMMERSMITH,--On Wednesday, at 3 A.M., you will be admitted by
  • the small door to the gardens of Rochester House, Regent's Park, by a
  • man who is entirely in my interest. I must request you not to fail me
  • by a second. Pray bring my case of swords, and, if you can find them,
  • one or two gentlemen of conduct and discretion to whom my person is
  • unknown. My name must not be used in this affair.
  • T. GODALL."
  • "From his wisdom alone, if he had no other title," pursued Colonel
  • Geraldine, when the others had each satisfied his curiosity, "my friend
  • is a man whose directions should implicitly be followed. I need not tell
  • you, therefore, that I have not so much as visited the neighbourhood of
  • Rochester House; and that I am still as wholly in the dark as either of
  • yourselves as to the nature of my friend's dilemma. I betook myself, as
  • soon as I had received this order, to a furnishing contractor, and, in a
  • few hours, the house in which we now are had assumed its late air of
  • festival. My scheme was at least original; and I am far from regretting
  • an action which has procured me the services of Major O'Rooke and
  • Lieutenant Brackenbury Rich. But the servants in the street will have a
  • strange awakening. The house which this evening was full of lights and
  • visitors they will find uninhabited and for sale to-morrow morning. Thus
  • even the most serious concerns," added the Colonel, "have a merry side."
  • "And let us add a merry ending," said Brackenbury.
  • The Colonel consulted his watch.
  • "It is now hard on two," he said. "We have an hour before us, and a
  • swift cab is at the door. Tell me if I may count upon your help."
  • "During a long life," replied Major O'Rooke, "I never took back my hand
  • from anything, nor so much as hedged a bet."
  • Brackenbury signified his readiness in the most becoming terms; and
  • after they had drunk a glass or two of wine, the Colonel gave each of
  • them a loaded revolver, and the three mounted into the cab and drove off
  • for the address in question.
  • Rochester House was a magnificent residence on the banks of the canal.
  • The large extent of the garden isolated it in an unusual degree from the
  • annoyances of neighbourhood. It seemed the _parc aux cerfs_ of some
  • great nobleman or millionaire. As far as could be seen from the street,
  • there was not a glimmer of light in any of the numerous windows of the
  • mansion; and the place had a look of neglect, as though the master had
  • been long from home.
  • The cab was discharged, and the three gentlemen were not long in
  • discovering the small door, which was a sort of postern in a lane
  • between two garden walls. It still wanted ten or fifteen minutes of the
  • appointed time; the rain fell heavily, and the adventurers sheltered
  • themselves below some pendent ivy, and spoke in low tones of the
  • approaching trial.
  • Suddenly Geraldine raised his finger to command silence, and all three
  • bent their hearing to the utmost. Through the continuous noise of the
  • rain, the steps and voices of two men became audible from the other side
  • of the wall; and, as they drew nearer, Brackenbury, whose sense of
  • hearing was remarkably acute, could even distinguish some fragments of
  • their talk.
  • "Is the grave dug?" asked one.
  • "It is," replied the other; "behind the laurel hedge. When the job is
  • done, we can cover it with a pile of stakes."
  • The first speaker laughed, and the sound of his merriment was shocking
  • to the listeners on the other side.
  • "In an hour from now," he said.
  • And by the sound of the steps it was obvious that the pair had
  • separated, and were proceeding in contrary directions.
  • Almost immediately after the postern door was cautiously opened, a white
  • face was protruded into the lane, and a hand was seen beckoning to the
  • watchers. In dead silence the three passed the door, which was
  • immediately locked behind them, and followed their guide through several
  • garden alleys to the kitchen entrance of the house. A single candle
  • burned in the great paved kitchen, which was destitute of the customary
  • furniture; and as the party proceeded to ascend from thence by a flight
  • of winding stairs, a prodigious noise of rats testified still more
  • plainly to the dilapidation of the house.
  • Their conductor preceded them, carrying the candle. He was a lean man,
  • much bent, but still agile; and he turned from time to time and
  • admonished silence and caution by his gestures. Colonel Geraldine
  • followed on his heels, the case of swords under one arm, and a pistol
  • ready in the other. Brackenbury's heart beat thickly. He perceived that
  • they were still in time; but he judged from the alacrity of the old man
  • that the hour of action must be near at hand; and the circumstances of
  • this adventure were so obscure and menacing, the place seemed so well
  • chosen for the darkest acts, that an older man than Brackenbury might
  • have been pardoned a measure of emotion as he closed the procession up
  • the winding stair.
  • At the top the guide threw open a door and ushered the three officers
  • before him into a small apartment, lighted by a smoky lamp and the glow
  • of a modest fire. At the chimney corner sat a man in the early prime of
  • life, and of a stout but courtly and commanding appearance. His attitude
  • and expression were those of the most unmoved composure; he was smoking
  • a cheroot with much enjoyment and deliberation, and on a table by his
  • elbow stood a long glass of some effervescing beverage which diffused an
  • agreeable odour through the room.
  • "Welcome," said he, extending his hand to Colonel Geraldine. "I knew I
  • might count on your exactitude."
  • "On my devotion," replied the Colonel, with a bow.
  • "Present me to your friends," continued the first; and, when that
  • ceremony had been performed, "I wish, gentlemen," he added, with the
  • most exquisite affability, "that I could offer you a more cheerful
  • programme; it is ungracious to inaugurate an acquaintance upon serious
  • affairs; but the compulsion of events is stronger than the obligations
  • of good-fellowship. I hope and believe you will be able to forgive me
  • this unpleasant evening; and for men of your stamp it will be enough to
  • know that you are conferring a considerable favour."
  • "Your Highness," said the Major, "must pardon my bluntness. I am unable
  • to hide what I know. For some time back I have suspected Major
  • Hammersmith, but Mr. Godall is unmistakable. To seek two men in London
  • unacquainted with Prince Florizel of Bohemia was to ask too much at
  • Fortune's hands."
  • "Prince Florizel!" cried Brackenbury in amazement.
  • And he gazed with the deepest interest on the features of the celebrated
  • personage before him.
  • "I shall not lament the loss of my incognito," remarked the Prince, "for
  • it enables me to thank you with the more authority. You would have done
  • as much for Mr. Godall, I feel sure, as for the Prince of Bohemia; but
  • the latter can perhaps do more for you. The gain is mine," he added,
  • with a courteous gesture.
  • And the next moment he was conversing with the two officers about the
  • Indian army and the native troops, a subject on which, as on all others,
  • he had a remarkable fund of information and the soundest views.
  • There was something so striking in this man's attitude at a moment of
  • deadly peril that Brackenbury was overcome with respectful admiration;
  • nor was he less sensible to the charm of his conversation or the
  • surprising amenity of his address. Every gesture, every intonation, was
  • not only noble in itself, but seemed to ennoble the fortunate mortal for
  • whom it was intended; and Brackenbury confessed to himself with
  • enthusiasm that this was a sovereign for whom a brave man might
  • thankfully lay down his life.
  • Many minutes had thus passed, when the person who had introduced them
  • into the house, and who had sat ever since in a corner, and with his
  • watch in his hand, arose and whispered a word into the Prince's ear.
  • "It is well, Dr. Noel," replied Florizel aloud; and then addressing the
  • others, "You will excuse me, gentlemen," he added, "if I have to leave
  • you in the dark. The moment now approaches."
  • Dr. Noel extinguished the lamp. A faint, grey light, premonitory of the
  • dawn, illuminated the window, but was not sufficient to illuminate the
  • room; and when the Prince rose to his feet, it was impossible to
  • distinguish his features or to make a guess at the nature of the emotion
  • which obviously affected him as he spoke. He moved towards the door, and
  • placed himself at one side of it in an attitude of the wariest
  • attention.
  • "You will have the kindness," he said, "to maintain the strictest
  • silence, and to conceal yourselves in the densest of the shadow."
  • The three officers and the physician hastened to obey, and for nearly
  • ten minutes the only sound in Rochester House was occasioned by the
  • excursions of the rats behind the woodwork. At the end of that period, a
  • loud creak of a hinge broke in with surprising distinctness on the
  • silence; and shortly after, the watchers could distinguish a slow and
  • cautious tread approaching up the kitchen stair. At every second step
  • the intruder seemed to pause and lend an ear, and during these
  • intervals, which seemed of an incalculable duration, a profound disquiet
  • possessed the spirit of the listeners. Dr. Noel, accustomed as he was to
  • dangerous emotions, suffered an almost pitiful physical prostration; his
  • breath whistled in his lungs, his teeth grated one upon another, and his
  • joints cracked aloud as he nervously shifted his position.
  • At last a hand was laid upon the door, and the bolt shot back with a
  • slight report. There followed another pause, during which Brackenbury
  • could see the Prince draw himself together noiselessly as if for some
  • unusual exertion. Then the door opened, letting in a little more of the
  • light of the morning; and the figure of a man appeared upon the
  • threshold and stood motionless. He was tall, and carried a knife in his
  • hand. Even in the twilight they could see his upper teeth bare and
  • glistening, for his mouth was open like that of a hound about to leap.
  • The man had evidently been over the head in water but a minute or two
  • before; and even while he stood there the drops kept falling from his
  • wet clothes and pattered on the floor.
  • The next moment he crossed the threshold. There was a leap, a stifled
  • cry, an instantaneous struggle; and before Colonel Geraldine could
  • spring to his aid, the Prince held the man, disarmed and helpless, by
  • the shoulders.
  • "Dr. Noel," he said, "you will be so good as to re-light the lamp."
  • And relinquishing the charge of his prisoner to Geraldine and
  • Brackenbury, he crossed the room and set his back against the
  • chimney-piece. As soon as the lamp had kindled the party beheld an
  • unaccustomed sternness on the Prince's features. It was no longer
  • Florizel, the careless gentleman; it was the Prince of Bohemia, justly
  • incensed and full of deadly purpose, who now raised his head and
  • addressed the captive President of the Suicide Club.
  • "President," he said, "you have laid your last snare, and your own feet
  • are taken in it. The day is beginning; it is your last morning. You have
  • just swum the Regent's Canal; it is your last bathe in this world. Your
  • old accomplice, Dr. Noel, so far from betraying me, has delivered you
  • into my hands for judgment. And the grave you had dug for me this
  • afternoon shall serve, in God's almighty providence, to hide your own
  • just doom from the curiosity of mankind. Kneel and pray, sir, if you
  • have a mind that way; for your time is short, and God is weary of your
  • iniquities."
  • The President made no answer either by word or sign; but continued to
  • hang his head and gaze sullenly on the floor, as though he were
  • conscious of the Prince's prolonged and unsparing regard.
  • "Gentlemen," continued Florizel, resuming the ordinary tone of his
  • conversation, "this is a fellow who has long eluded me, but whom, thanks
  • to Dr. Noel, I now have tightly by the heels. To tell the story of his
  • misdeeds would occupy more time than we can now afford; but if the canal
  • had contained nothing but the blood of his victims, I believe the wretch
  • would have been no drier than you see him. Even in an affair of this
  • sort I desire to preserve the forms of honour. But I make you the
  • judges, gentlemen--this is more an execution than a duel; and to give
  • the rogue his choice of weapons would be to push too far a point of
  • etiquette. I cannot afford to lose my life in such a business," he
  • continued, unlocking the case of swords; "and as a pistol-bullet travels
  • so often on the wings of chance, and skill and courage may fall by the
  • most trembling marksman, I have decided, and I feel sure you will
  • approve my determination, to put this question to the touch of swords."
  • When Brackenbury and Major O'Rooke, to whom these remarks were
  • particularly addressed, had each intimated his approval, "Quick, sir,"
  • added Prince Florizel to the President, "choose a blade and do not keep
  • me waiting; I have an impatience to be done with you for ever."
  • For the first time since he was captured and disarmed the President
  • raised his head, and it was plain that he began instantly to pluck up
  • courage.
  • "Is it to be stand up?" he asked eagerly, "and between you and me?"
  • "I mean so far to honour you," replied the Prince.
  • "Oh, come!" cried the President. "With a fair field, who knows how
  • things may happen? I must add that I consider it handsome behaviour on
  • your Highness's part; and if the worst comes to the worst I shall die by
  • one of the most gallant gentlemen in Europe."
  • And the President, liberated by those who had detained him, stepped up
  • to the table and began, with minute attention, to select a sword. He was
  • highly elated, and seemed to feel no doubt that he should issue
  • victorious from the contest. The spectators grew alarmed in the face of
  • so entire a confidence, and adjured Prince Florizel to reconsider his
  • intention.
  • "It is but a farce," he answered; "and I think I can promise you,
  • gentlemen, that it will not be long a-playing."
  • "Your Highness will be careful not to overreach," said Colonel
  • Geraldine.
  • "Geraldine," returned the Prince, "did you ever know me fail in a debt
  • of honour? I owe you this man's death, and you shall have it."
  • The President at last satisfied himself with one of the rapiers, and
  • signified his readiness by a gesture that was not devoid of a rude
  • nobility. The nearness of peril, and the sense of courage, even to this
  • obnoxious villain, lent an air of manhood and a certain grace.
  • The Prince helped himself at random to a sword.
  • "Colonel Geraldine and Doctor Noel," he said, "will have the goodness to
  • await me in this room. I wish no personal friend of mine to be involved
  • in this transaction. Major O'Rooke, you are a man of some years and a
  • settled reputation--let me recommend the President to your good graces.
  • Lieutenant Rich will be so good as lend me his attentions: a young man
  • cannot have too much experience in such affairs."
  • "Your Highness," replied Brackenbury, "it is an honour I shall prize
  • extremely."
  • "It is well," returned Prince Florizel; "I shall hope to stand your
  • friend in more important circumstances."
  • And so saying he led the way out of the apartment and down the kitchen
  • stairs.
  • The two men who were thus left alone threw open the window and leaned
  • out, straining every sense to catch an indication of the tragical events
  • that were about to follow. The rain was now over; day had almost come,
  • and the birds were piping in the shrubbery and on the forest-trees of
  • the garden. The Prince and his companions were visible for a moment as
  • they followed an alley between two flowering thickets; but at the first
  • corner a clump of foliage intervened, and they were again concealed from
  • view. This was all that the Colonel and the Physician had an opportunity
  • to see, and the garden was so vast, and the place of combat evidently so
  • remote from the house, that not even the noise of sword-play reached
  • their ears.
  • "He has taken him towards the grave," said Dr. Noel, with a shudder.
  • "God," cried the Colonel, "God defend the right!"
  • And they awaited the event in silence, the Doctor shaking with fear, the
  • Colonel in an agony of sweat. Many minutes must have elapsed, the day
  • was sensibly broader, and the birds were singing more heartily in the
  • garden before a sound of returning footsteps recalled their glances
  • towards the door. It was the Prince and the two Indian officers who
  • entered. God had defended the right.
  • "I am ashamed of my emotion," said Prince Florizel; "I feel it is a
  • weakness unworthy of my station, but the continued existence of that
  • hound of hell had begun to prey upon me like a disease, and his death
  • has more refreshed me than a night of slumber. Look, Geraldine," he
  • continued, throwing his sword upon the floor, "there is the blood of the
  • man who killed your brother. It should be a welcome sight. And yet," he
  • added, "see how strangely we men are made! my revenge is not yet five
  • minutes old, and already I am beginning to ask myself if even revenge be
  • attainable on this precarious stage of life. The ill he did, who can
  • undo it? The career in which he amassed a huge fortune (for the house
  • itself in which we stand belonged to him)--that career is now a part of
  • the destiny of mankind for ever; and I might weary myself making thrusts
  • in carte until the crack of judgment, and Geraldine's brother would be
  • none the less dead, and a thousand other innocent persons would be none
  • the less dishonoured and debauched! The existence of a man is so small a
  • thing to take, so mighty a thing to employ! Alas!" he cried, "is there
  • anything in life so disenchanting as attainment?"
  • "God's justice has been done," replied the Doctor. "So much I behold.
  • The lesson, your Highness, has been a cruel one for me; and I await my
  • own turn with deadly apprehension."
  • "What was I saying?" cried the Prince. "I have punished, and here is the
  • man beside us who can help me to undo. Ah, Dr. Noel! you and I have
  • before us many a day of hard and honourable toil; and perhaps, before we
  • have done, you may have more than redeemed your early errors."
  • "And in the meantime," said the Doctor, "let me go and bury my oldest
  • friend."
  • _And this_ (observes the erudite Arabian) _is the fortunate conclusion
  • of the tale. The Prince, it is superfluous to mention, forgot none of
  • those who served him in this great exploit; and to this day his
  • authority and influence help them forward in their public career, while
  • his condescending friendship adds a charm to their private life. To
  • collect_, continues my author, _all the strange events in which this
  • Prince has played the part of Providence were to fill the habitable
  • globe with books. But the stories which relate to the fortunes of_ THE
  • RAJAH'S DIAMOND _are of too entertaining a description, says he, to be
  • omitted. Following prudently in the footsteps of this Oriental, we shall
  • now begin the series to which he refers with the_ STORY OF THE BANDBOX.
  • THE RAJAH'S DIAMOND
  • STORY OF THE BANDBOX
  • Up to the age of sixteen, at a private school and afterwards at one of
  • those great institutions for which England is justly famous, Mr. Harry
  • Hartley had received the ordinary education of a gentleman. At that
  • period he manifested a remarkable distaste for study; and his only
  • surviving parent being both weak and ignorant, he was permitted
  • thenceforward to spend his time in the attainment of petty and purely
  • elegant accomplishments. Two years later, he was left an orphan and
  • almost a beggar. For all active and industrious pursuits, Harry was
  • unfitted alike by nature and training. He could sing romantic ditties,
  • and accompany himself with discretion on the piano; he was a graceful
  • although a timid cavalier; he had a pronounced taste for chess; and
  • nature had sent him into the world with one of the most engaging
  • exteriors that can well be fancied. Blond and pink, with dove's eyes and
  • a gentle smile, he had an air of agreeable tenderness and melancholy and
  • the most submissive and caressing manners. But when all is said, he was
  • not the man to lead armaments of war or direct the councils of a State.
  • A fortunate chance and some influence obtained for Harry, at the time of
  • his bereavement, the position of private secretary to Major-General Sir
  • Thomas Vandeleur, C.B. Sir Thomas was a man of sixty, loud-spoken,
  • boisterous, and domineering. For some reason, some service the nature of
  • which had been often whispered and repeatedly denied, the Rajah of
  • Kashgar had presented this officer with the sixth known diamond of the
  • world. The gift transformed General Vandeleur from a poor into a
  • wealthy man, from an obscure and unpopular soldier into one of the lions
  • of London society; the possessor of the Rajah's Diamond was welcome in
  • the most exclusive circles; and he had found a lady, young, beautiful,
  • and well-born, who was willing to call the diamond hers even at the
  • price of marriage with Sir Thomas Vandeleur. It was commonly said at the
  • time that, as like draws to like, one jewel had attracted another;
  • certainly Lady Vandeleur was not only a gem of the finest water in her
  • own person, but she showed herself to the world in a very costly
  • setting; and she was considered by many respectable authorities as one
  • among the three or four best-dressed women in England.
  • Harry's duty as secretary was not particularly onerous; but he had a
  • dislike for all prolonged work; it gave him pain to ink his fingers; and
  • the charms of Lady Vandeleur and her toilettes drew him often from the
  • library to the boudoir. He had the prettiest ways among women, could
  • talk fashions with enjoyment, and was never more happy than when
  • criticising a shade of ribbon or running on an errand to the milliner's.
  • In short, Sir Thomas's correspondence fell into pitiful arrears, and my
  • Lady had another lady's maid.
  • At last the General, who was one of the least patient of military
  • commanders, arose from his place in a violent access of passion, and
  • indicated to his secretary that he had no further need for his services,
  • with one of those explanatory gestures which are most rarely employed
  • between gentlemen. The door being unfortunately open, Mr. Hartley fell
  • downstairs head-foremost.
  • He arose somewhat hurt and very deeply aggrieved. The life in the
  • General's house precisely suited him; he moved, on a more or less
  • doubtful footing, in very genteel company, he did little, he ate of the
  • best, and he had a lukewarm satisfaction in the presence of Lady
  • Vandeleur, which, in his own heart, he dubbed by a more emphatic name.
  • Immediately after he had been outraged by the military foot, he hurried
  • to the boudoir and recounted his sorrows.
  • "You know very well, my dear Harry," replied Lady Vandeleur, for she
  • called him by name like a child or a domestic servant, "that you never
  • by any chance do what the General tells you. No more do I, you may say.
  • But that is different. A woman can earn her pardon for a good year of
  • disobedience by a single adroit submission; and, besides, no one is
  • married to his private secretary. I shall be sorry to lose you; but
  • since you cannot stay longer in a house where you have been insulted, I
  • shall wish you good-bye, and I promise you to make the General smart for
  • his behaviour."
  • Harry's countenance fell; tears came into his eyes, and he gazed on Lady
  • Vandeleur with a tender reproach.
  • "My Lady," said he, "what is an insult? I should think little indeed of
  • any one who could not forgive them by the score. But to leave one's
  • friends; to tear up the bonds of affection----"
  • He was unable to continue, for his emotion choked him, and he began to
  • weep.
  • Lady Vandeleur looked at him with a curious expression.
  • "This little fool," she thought, "imagines himself to be in love with
  • me. Why should he not become my servant instead of the General's? He is
  • good-natured, obliging, and understands dress; and besides, it will keep
  • him out of mischief. He is positively too pretty to be unattached."
  • That night she talked over the General, who was already somewhat ashamed
  • of his vivacity; and Harry was transferred to the feminine department,
  • where his life was little short of heavenly. He was always dressed with
  • uncommon nicety, wore delicate flowers in his button-hole, and could
  • entertain a visitor with tact and pleasantry. He took a pride in
  • servility to a beautiful woman; received Lady Vandeleur's commands as so
  • many marks of favour; and was pleased to exhibit himself before other
  • men, who derided and despised him, in his character of male lady's-maid
  • and man-milliner. Nor could he think enough of his existence from a
  • moral point of view. Wickedness seemed to him an essentially male
  • attribute, and to pass one's days with a delicate woman, and principally
  • occupied about trimmings, was to inhabit an enchanted isle among the
  • storms of life.
  • One fine morning he came into the drawing-room and began to arrange some
  • music on the top of the piano. Lady Vandeleur, at the other end of the
  • apartment, was speaking somewhat eagerly with her brother, Charlie
  • Pendragon, an elderly young man, much broken with dissipation, and very
  • lame of one foot. The private secretary, to whose entrance they paid no
  • regard, could not avoid overhearing a part of their conversation.
  • "To-day or never," said the lady. "Once and for all, it shall be done
  • to-day."
  • "To-day, if it must be," replied the brother, with a sigh. "But it is a
  • false step, a ruinous step, Clara; and we shall live to repent it
  • dismally."
  • Lady Vandeleur looked her brother steadily and somewhat strangely in the
  • face.
  • "You forget," she said; "the man must die at last."
  • "Upon my word, Clara," said Pendragon, "I believe you are the most
  • heartless rascal in England."
  • "You men," she returned, "are so coarsely built, that you can never
  • appreciate a shade of meaning. You are yourselves rapacious, violent,
  • immodest, careless of distinction; and yet the least thought for the
  • future shocks you in a woman. I have no patience with such stuff. You
  • would despise in a common banker the imbecility that you expect to find
  • in us."
  • "You are very likely right," replied her brother; "you were always
  • cleverer than I. And, anyway, you know my motto: The family before all."
  • "Yes, Charlie," she returned, taking his hand in hers, "I know your
  • motto better than you know it yourself. 'And Clara before the family!'
  • Is not that the second part of it? Indeed, you are the best of brothers,
  • and I love you dearly."
  • Mr. Pendragon got up, looking a little confused by these family
  • endearments.
  • "I had better not be seen," said he. "I understand my part to a miracle,
  • and I'll keep an eye on the Tame Cat."
  • "Do," she replied. "He is an abject creature, and might ruin all."
  • She kissed the tips of her fingers to him daintily; and the brother
  • withdrew by the boudoir and the back stair.
  • "Harry," said Lady Vandeleur turning towards the secretary as soon as
  • they were alone, "I have a commission for you this morning. But you
  • shall take a cab; I cannot have my secretary freckled."
  • She spoke the last words with emphasis and a look of half-motherly pride
  • that caused great contentment to poor Harry; and he professed himself
  • charmed to find an opportunity of serving her.
  • "It is another of our great secrets," she went on archly, "and no one
  • must know of it but my secretary and me. Sir Thomas would make the
  • saddest disturbance; and if you only knew how weary I am of these
  • scenes! O Harry, Harry, can you explain to me what makes you men so
  • violent and unjust? But, indeed, I know you cannot; you are the only man
  • in the world who knows nothing of these shameful passions; you are so
  • good, Harry, and so kind; you, at least, can be a woman's friend; and,
  • do you know? I think you make the others more ugly by comparison."
  • "It is you," said Harry gallantly, "who are so kind to me. You treat me
  • like----"
  • "Like a mother," interposed Lady Vandeleur; "I try to be a mother to
  • you. Or, at least," she corrected herself with a smile, "almost a
  • mother. I am afraid I am too young to be your mother really. Let us say
  • a friend--a dear friend."
  • She paused long enough to let her words take effect in Harry's
  • sentimental quarters, but not long enough to allow him a reply.
  • "But all this is beside our purpose," she resumed. "You will find a
  • bandbox in the left-hand side of the oak wardrobe; it is underneath the
  • pink slip that I wore on Wednesday with my Mechlin. You will take it
  • immediately to this address," and she gave him a paper, "but do not, on
  • any account, let it out of your hands until you have received a receipt
  • written by myself. Do you understand? Answer, if you please--answer!
  • This is extremely important, and I must ask you to pay some attention."
  • Harry pacified her by repeating her instructions perfectly; and she was
  • just going to tell him more when General Vandeleur flung into the
  • apartment, scarlet with anger, and holding a long and elaborate
  • milliner's bill in his hand.
  • "Will you look at this, madam?" cried he. "Will, you have the goodness
  • to look at this document? I know well enough you married me for my
  • money, and I hope I can make as great allowances as any other man in the
  • service; but, as sure as God made me, I mean to put a period to this
  • disreputable prodigality."
  • "Mr. Hartley," said Lady Vandeleur, "I think you understand what you
  • have to do. May I ask you to see to it at once?"
  • "Stop," said the General, addressing Harry, "one word before you go."
  • And then, turning again to Lady Vandeleur, "What is this precious
  • fellow's errand?" he demanded. "I trust him no further than I do
  • yourself, let me tell you. If he had as much as the rudiments of
  • honesty, he would scorn to stay in this house; and what he does for his
  • wages is a mystery to all the world. What is his errand, madam? and why
  • are you hurrying him away?"
  • "I supposed you had something to say to me in private," replied the
  • lady.
  • "You spoke about an errand," insisted the General. "Do not attempt to
  • deceive me in my present state of temper. You certainly spoke about an
  • errand."
  • "If you insist on making your servants privy to our humiliating
  • dissensions," replied Lady Vandeleur, "perhaps I had better ask Mr.
  • Hartley to sit down. No?" she continued; "then you may go, Mr. Hartley.
  • I trust you may remember all that you have heard in this room; it may be
  • useful to you."
  • Harry at once made his escape from the drawing-room; and as he ran
  • upstairs he could hear the General's voice upraised in declamation, and
  • the thin tones of Lady Vandeleur planting icy repartees at every
  • opening. How cordially he admired the wife! How skilfully she could
  • evade an awkward question! with what secure effrontery she repeated her
  • instructions under the very guns of the enemy! and on the other hand,
  • how he detested the husband!
  • There had been nothing unfamiliar in the morning's events, for he was
  • continually in the habit of serving Lady Vandeleur on secret missions,
  • principally connected with millinery. There was a skeleton in the house,
  • as he well knew. The bottomless extravagance and the unknown liabilities
  • of the wife had long since swallowed her own fortune, and threatened day
  • by day to engulf that of the husband. Once or twice in every year
  • exposure and ruin seemed imminent, and Harry kept trotting round to all
  • sorts of furnishers' shops, telling small fibs, and paying small
  • advances on the gross amount, until another term was tided over, and the
  • lady and her faithful secretary breathed again. For Harry, in a double
  • capacity, was heart and soul upon that side of the war; not only did he
  • adore Lady Vandeleur and fear and dislike her husband, but he naturally
  • sympathised with the love of finery, and his own single extravagance was
  • at the tailor's.
  • He found the bandbox where it had been described, arranged his toilette
  • with care, and left the house. The sun shone brightly; the distance he
  • had to travel was considerable, and he remembered with dismay that the
  • General's sudden irruption had prevented Lady Vandeleur from giving him
  • money for a cab. On this sultry day there was every chance that his
  • complexion would suffer severely; and to walk through so much of London
  • with a bandbox on his arm was a humiliation almost insupportable to a
  • youth of his character. He paused, and took counsel with himself. The
  • Vandeleurs lived in Eaton Place; his destination was near Notting Hill;
  • plainly, he might cross the Park by keeping well in the open and
  • avoiding populous alleys; and he thanked his stars when he reflected
  • that it was still comparatively early in the day.
  • Anxious to be rid of his incubus, he walked somewhat faster than his
  • ordinary, and he was already some way through Kensington Gardens when,
  • in a solitary spot among trees, he found himself confronted by the
  • General.
  • "I beg your pardon, Sir Thomas," observed Harry, politely falling on one
  • side; for the other stood directly in his path.
  • "Where are you going, sir?" asked the General.
  • "I am taking a little walk among the trees," replied the lad.
  • The General struck the bandbox with his cane.
  • "With that thing?" he cried; "you lie, sir, and you know you lie!"
  • "Indeed, Sir Thomas," returned Harry, "I am not accustomed to be
  • questioned in so high a key."
  • "You do not understand your position," said the General. "You are my
  • servant, and a servant of whom I have conceived the most serious
  • suspicions. How do I know but that your box is full of tea-spoons?"
  • "It contains a silk hat belonging to a friend," said Harry.
  • "Very well," replied General Vandeleur. "Then I want to see your
  • friend's silk hat. I have," he added grimly, "a singular curiosity for
  • hats; and I believe you know me to be somewhat positive."
  • "I beg your pardon, Sir Thomas; I am exceedingly grieved," Harry
  • apologised; "but indeed this is a private affair."
  • The General caught him roughly by the shoulder with one hand, while he
  • raised his cane in the most menacing manner with the other. Harry gave
  • himself up for lost; but at the same moment Heaven vouchsafed him an
  • unexpected defender in the person of Charlie Pendragon, who now strode
  • forward from behind the trees.
  • "Come, come, General, hold your hand," said he; "this is neither
  • courteous nor manly."
  • "Aha!" cried the General, wheeling round upon his new antagonist, "Mr.
  • Pendragon! And do you suppose, Mr. Pendragon, that because I have had
  • the misfortune to marry your sister, I shall suffer myself to be dogged
  • and thwarted by a discredited and bankrupt libertine like you? My
  • acquaintance with Lady Vandeleur, sir, has taken away all my appetite
  • for the other members of her family."
  • "And do you fancy, General Vandeleur," retorted Charlie, "that because
  • my sister has had the misfortune to marry you, she there and then
  • forfeited her rights and privileges as a lady? I own, sir, that by that
  • action she did as much as anybody could to derogate from her position;
  • but to me she is still a Pendragon. I make it my business to protect her
  • from ungentlemanly outrage, and if you were ten times her husband I
  • would not permit her liberty to be restrained, nor her private
  • messengers to be violently arrested."
  • "How is that, Mr. Hartley?" interrogated the General. "Mr. Pendragon is
  • of my opinion, it appears. He too suspects that Lady Vandeleur has
  • something to do with your friend's silk hat."
  • Charlie saw that he had committed an unpardonable blunder, which he
  • hastened to repair.
  • "How, sir?" he cried; "I suspect, do you say? I suspect nothing. Only
  • where I find strength abused and a man brutalising his inferiors, I take
  • the liberty to interfere."
  • As he said these words he made a sign to Harry, which the latter was too
  • dull or too much troubled to understand.
  • "In what way am I to construe your attitude, sir?" demanded Vandeleur.
  • "Why, sir, as you please," returned Pendragon.
  • The General once more raised his cane, and made a cut for Charlie's
  • head; but the latter, lame foot and all, evaded the blow with his
  • umbrella, ran in, and immediately closed with his formidable adversary.
  • "Run, Harry, run!" he cried; "run, you dolt!"
  • Harry stood petrified for a moment, watching the two men sway together
  • in this fierce embrace; then he turned and took to his heels. When he
  • cast a glance over his shoulder he saw the General prostrate under
  • Charlie's knee, but still making desperate efforts to reverse the
  • situation; and the Gardens seemed to have filled with people, who were
  • running from all directions towards the scene of fight. This spectacle
  • lent the secretary wings; and he did not relax his pace until he had
  • gained the Bayswater Road, and plunged at random into an unfrequented
  • by-street.
  • To see two gentlemen of his acquaintance thus brutally mauling each
  • other was deeply shocking to Harry. He desired to forget the sight; he
  • desired, above all, to put as great a distance as possible between
  • himself and General Vandeleur; and in his eagerness for this he forgot
  • everything about his destination, and hurried before him headlong and
  • trembling. When he remembered that Lady Vandeleur was the wife of one
  • and the sister of the other of these gladiators, his heart was touched
  • with sympathy for a woman so distressingly misplaced in life. Even his
  • own situation in the General's household looked hardly so pleasing as
  • usual in the light of these violent transactions.
  • He had walked some little distance, busied with these meditations,
  • before a slight collision with another passenger reminded him of the
  • bandbox on his arm.
  • "Heavens!" cried he, "where was my head? and whither have I wandered?"
  • Thereupon he consulted the envelope which Lady Vandeleur had given him.
  • The address was there, but without a name. Harry was simply directed to
  • ask for "the gentleman who expected a parcel from Lady Vandeleur," and
  • if he were not at home to await his return. The gentleman, added the
  • note, should present a receipt in the handwriting of the lady herself.
  • All this seemed mightily mysterious, and Harry was above all astonished
  • at the omission of the name and the formality of the receipt. He had
  • thought little of this last when he heard it dropped in conversation;
  • but reading it in cold blood, and taking it in connection with the other
  • strange particulars, he became convinced that he was engaged in perilous
  • affairs. For half a moment he had a doubt of Lady Vandeleur herself; for
  • he found these obscure proceedings somewhat unworthy of so high a lady,
  • and became more critical when her secrets were preserved against
  • himself. But her empire over his spirit was too complete, he dismissed
  • his suspicions, and blamed himself roundly for having so much as
  • entertained them.
  • In one thing, however, his duty and interest, his generosity and his
  • terrors, coincided--to get rid of the bandbox with the greatest possible
  • despatch.
  • He accosted the first policeman and courteously inquired his way. It
  • turned out that he was already not far from his destination, and a walk
  • of a few minutes brought him to a small house in a lane, freshly
  • painted, and kept with the most scrupulous attention. The knocker and
  • bell-pull were highly polished: flowering pot-herbs garnished the sills
  • of the different windows; and curtains of some rich material concealed
  • the interior from the eyes of curious passengers. The place had an air
  • of repose and secrecy; and Harry was so far caught with this spirit that
  • he knocked with more than usual discretion, and was more than usually
  • careful to remove all impurity from his boots.
  • A servant-maid of some personal attractions immediately opened the door,
  • and seemed to regard the secretary with no unkind eyes.
  • "This is a parcel from Lady Vandeleur," said Harry.
  • "I know," replied the maid, with a nod. "But the gentleman is from home.
  • Will you leave it with me?"
  • "I cannot," answered Harry. "I am directed not to part with it but upon
  • a certain condition, and I must ask you, I am afraid, to let me wait."
  • "Well," said she, "I suppose I may let you wait. I am lonely enough, I
  • can tell you, and you do not look as though you would eat a girl. But be
  • sure and do not ask the gentleman's name, for that I am not to tell
  • you."
  • "Do you say so?" cried Harry. "Why, how strange! But indeed for some
  • time back I walk among surprises. One question I think I may surely ask
  • without indiscretion: Is he the master of this house?"
  • "He is a lodger, and not eight days old at that," returned the maid.
  • "And now a question for a question: Do you know Lady Vandeleur?"
  • "I am her private secretary," replied Harry, with a glow of modest
  • pride.
  • "She is pretty, is she not?" pursued the servant.
  • "Oh, beautiful!" cried Harry; "wonderfully lovely, and not less good and
  • kind!"
  • "You look kind enough yourself," she retorted; "and I wager you are
  • worth a dozen Lady Vandeleurs."
  • Harry was properly scandalised.
  • "I!" he cried. "I am only a secretary!"
  • "Do you mean that for me?" said the girl. "Because I am only a
  • housemaid, if you please." And then, relenting at the sight of Harry's
  • obvious confusion, "I know you mean nothing of the sort," she added;
  • "and I like your looks; but I think nothing of your Lady Vandeleur. Oh,
  • these mistresses!" she cried. "To send out a real gentleman like
  • you--with a bandbox--in broad day!"
  • During this talk they had remained in their original positions--she on
  • the doorstep, he on the side-walk, bare-headed for the sake of coolness,
  • and with the bandbox on his arm. But upon this last speech Harry, who
  • was unable to support such point-blank compliments to his appearance,
  • nor the encouraging look with which they were accompanied, began to
  • change his attitude, and glance from left to right in perturbation. In
  • so doing he turned his face towards the lower end of the lane, and
  • there, to his indescribable dismay, his eyes encountered those of
  • General Vandeleur. The General, in a prodigious fluster of heat, hurry,
  • and indignation, had been scouring the streets in chase of his
  • brother-in-law; but so soon as he caught a glimpse of the delinquent
  • secretary, his purpose changed, his anger flowed into a new channel, and
  • he turned on his heel and came tearing up the lane with truculent
  • gestures and vociferations.
  • Harry made but one bolt of it into the house, driving the maid before
  • him; and the door was slammed in his pursuer's countenance.
  • "Is there a bar? Will it lock?" asked Harry, while a salvo on the
  • knocker made the house echo from wall to wall.
  • "Why, what is wrong with you?" asked the maid. "Is it this old
  • gentleman?"
  • "If he gets hold of me," whispered Harry, "I am as good as dead. He has
  • been pursuing me all day, carries a sword-stick, and is an Indian
  • military officer."
  • "These are fine manners," cried the maid. "And what, if you please, may
  • be his name?"
  • "It is the General, my master," answered Harry. "He is after this
  • bandbox."
  • "Did not I tell you?" cried the maid in triumph. "I told you I thought
  • worse than nothing of your Lady Vandeleur; and if you had an eye in your
  • head you might see what she is for yourself. An ungrateful minx, I will
  • be bound for that!"
  • The General renewed his attack upon the knocker, and his passion growing
  • with delay, began to kick and beat upon the panels of the door.
  • "It is lucky," observed the girl, "that I am alone in the house; your
  • General may hammer until he is weary, and there is none to open for him.
  • Follow me!"
  • So saying she led Harry into the kitchen, where she made him sit down,
  • and stood by him herself in an affectionate attitude, with a hand upon
  • his shoulder. The din at the door, so far from abating, continued to
  • increase in volume, and at each blow the unhappy secretary was shaken to
  • the heart.
  • "What is your name?" asked the girl.
  • "Harry Hartley," he replied.
  • "Mine," she went on, "is Prudence. Do you like it?"
  • "Very much," said Harry. "But hear for a moment how the General beats
  • upon the door. He will certainly break it in, and then, in Heaven's
  • name, what have I to look for but death?"
  • "You put yourself very much about with no occasion," answered Prudence.
  • "Let your General knock, he will do no more than blister his hands. Do
  • you think I would keep you here if I were not sure to save you? Oh, no,
  • I am a good friend to those that please me! and we have a back door upon
  • another lane. But," she added, checking him, for he had got upon his
  • feet immediately on this welcome news, "But I will not show where it is
  • unless you kiss me. Will you, Harry?"
  • "That I will," he cried, remembering his gallantry, "not for your back
  • door, but because you are good and pretty."
  • And he administered two or three cordial salutes, which were returned to
  • him in kind.
  • Then Prudence led him to the back gate, and put her hand upon the key.
  • "Will you come and see me?" she asked.
  • "I will indeed," said Harry. "Do not I owe you my life?"
  • "And now," she added, opening the door, "run as hard as you can, for I
  • shall let in the General."
  • Harry scarcely required this advice; fear had him by the forelock; and
  • he addressed himself diligently to flight. A few steps, and he believed
  • he would escape from his trials, and return to Lady Vandeleur in honour
  • and safety. But these few steps had not been taken before he heard a
  • man's voice hailing him by name with many execrations, and, looking over
  • his shoulder, he beheld Charlie Pendragon waving him with both arms to
  • return. The shock of this new incident was so sudden and profound, and
  • Harry was already worked into so high a state of nervous tension, that
  • he could think of nothing better than to accelerate his pace and
  • continue running. He should certainly have remembered the scene in
  • Kensington Gardens; he should certainly have concluded that, where the
  • General was his enemy, Charlie Pendragon could be no other than a
  • friend. But such was the fever and perturbation of his mind that he was
  • struck by none of these considerations, and only continued to run the
  • faster up the lane.
  • Charlie, by the sound of his voice and the vile terms that he hurled
  • after the secretary, was obviously beside himself with rage. He, too,
  • ran his very best; but, try as he might, the physical advantages were
  • not upon his side, and his outcries and the fall of his lame foot on the
  • macadam began to fall farther and farther into the wake.
  • Harry's hopes began once more to arise. The lane was both steep and
  • narrow, but it was exceedingly solitary, bordered on either hand by
  • garden walls, overhung with foliage; and, for as far as the fugitive
  • could see in front of him, there was neither a creature moving nor an
  • open door. Providence, weary of persecution, was now offering him an
  • open field for his escape.
  • Alas! as he came abreast of a garden door under a tuft of chestnuts, it
  • was suddenly drawn back, and he could see inside, upon a garden path,
  • the figure of a butcher's boy with his tray upon his arm. He had hardly
  • recognised the fact before he was some steps beyond upon the other side.
  • But the fellow had had time to observe him; he was evidently much
  • surprised to see a gentleman go by at so unusual a pace; and he came out
  • into the lane and began to call after Harry with shouts of ironical
  • encouragement.
  • His appearance gave a new idea to Charlie Pendragon, who, although he
  • was now sadly out of breath, once more upraised his voice.
  • "Stop, thief!" he cried.
  • And immediately the butcher's boy had taken up the cry and joined in the
  • pursuit.
  • This was a bitter moment for the hunted secretary. It is true that his
  • terror enabled him once more to improve his pace, and gain with every
  • step on his pursuers; but he was well aware that he was near the end of
  • his resources, and should he meet any one coming the other way, his
  • predicament in the narrow lane would be desperate indeed.
  • "I must find a place of concealment," he thought, "and that within the
  • next few seconds, or all is over with me in this world."
  • Scarcely had the thought crossed his mind than the lane took a sudden
  • turning, and he found himself hidden from his enemies. There are
  • circumstances in which even the least energetic of mankind learn to
  • behave with vigour and decision, and the most cautious forget their
  • prudence and embrace foolhardy resolutions. This was one of those
  • occasions for Harry Hartley; and those who knew him best would have been
  • the most astonished at the lad's audacity. He stopped dead, flung the
  • bandbox over a garden wall, and leaping upward with incredible agility,
  • and seizing the cope-stone with his hands, he tumbled headlong after it
  • into the garden.
  • He came to himself a moment afterwards, seated in a border of small
  • rose-bushes. His hands and knees were cut and bleeding, for the wall had
  • been protected against such an escalade by a liberal provision of old
  • bottles; and he was conscious of a general dislocation and a painful
  • swimming in the head. Facing him across the garden, which was in
  • admirable order, and set with flowers of the most delicious perfume, he
  • beheld the back of a house. It was of considerable extent, and plainly
  • habitable; but, in odd contrast to the grounds, it was crazy, ill-kept,
  • and of a mean appearance. On all other sides the circuit of the garden
  • wall appeared unbroken.
  • He took in these features of the scene with mechanical glances, but his
  • mind was still unable to piece together or draw a rational conclusion
  • from what he saw. And when he heard footsteps advancing on the gravel,
  • although he turned his eyes in that direction, it was with no thought
  • either for defence or flight.
  • The new-comer was a large, coarse, and very sordid personage, in
  • gardening clothes, and with a watering-pot in his left hand. One less
  • confused would have been affected with some alarm at the sight of this
  • man's huge proportions and black and lowering eyes. But Harry was too
  • gravely shaken by his fall to be so much as terrified; and if he was
  • unable to divert his glances from the gardener, he remained absolutely
  • passive, and suffered him to draw near, to take him by the shoulder, and
  • to plant him roughly on his feet, without a motion of resistance.
  • For a moment the two stared into each other's eyes, Harry fascinated,
  • the man filled with wrath and a cruel, sneering humour.
  • "Who are you?" he demanded at last. "Who are you to come flying over my
  • wall and break my _Gloire de Dijons_? What is your name?" he added,
  • shaking him; "and what may be your business here?"
  • Harry could not as much as proffer a word in explanation.
  • But just at that moment Pendragon and the butcher's boy went clumping
  • past, and the sound of their feet and their hoarse cries echoed loudly
  • in the narrow lane. The gardener had received his answer; and he looked
  • down into Harry's face with an obnoxious smile.
  • "A thief!" he said. "Upon my word, and a very good thing you must make
  • of it; for I see you dressed like a gentleman from top to toe. Are you
  • not ashamed to go about the world in such a trim, with honest folk, I
  • daresay, glad to buy your cast-off finery second-hand? Speak up, you
  • dog," the man went on; "you can understand English, I suppose; and I
  • mean to have a bit of talk with you before I march you to the station."
  • "Indeed, sir," said Harry, "this is all a dreadful misconception; and if
  • you will go with me to Sir Thomas Vandeleur's in Eaton Place, I can
  • promise that all will be made plain. The most upright person, as I now
  • perceive, can be led into suspicious positions."
  • "My little man," replied the gardener, "I will go with you no farther
  • than the station-house in the next street. The inspector, no doubt, will
  • be glad to take a stroll with you as far as Eaton Place, and have a bit
  • of afternoon tea with your great acquaintances. Or would you prefer to
  • go direct to the Home Secretary? Sir Thomas Vandeleur, indeed! Perhaps
  • you think I don't know a gentleman when I see one, from a common
  • run-the-hedge like you? Clothes or no clothes, I can read you like a
  • book. Here is a shirt that maybe cost as much as my Sunday hat; and that
  • coat, I take it, has never seen the inside of Rag-fair, and then your
  • boots----"
  • The man, whose eyes had fallen upon the ground, stopped short in his
  • insulting commentary, and remained for a moment looking intently upon
  • something at his feet. When he spoke his voice was strangely altered.
  • "What, in God's name," said he, "is all this?"
  • Harry, following the direction of the man's eyes, beheld a spectacle
  • that struck him dumb with terror and amazement. In his fall he had
  • descended vertically upon the bandbox, and burst it open from end to
  • end; thence a great treasure of diamonds had poured forth, and now lay
  • abroad, part trodden in the soil, part scattered on the surface in regal
  • and glittering profusion. There was a magnificent coronet which he had
  • often admired on Lady Vandeleur; there were rings and brooches,
  • ear-drops and bracelets, and even unset brilliants rolling here and
  • there among the rose-bushes like drops of morning dew. A princely fortune
  • lay between the two men upon the ground--a fortune in the most inviting,
  • solid, and durable form, capable of being carried in an apron, beautiful
  • in itself, and scattering the sunlight in a million rainbow flashes.
  • "Good God!" said Harry, "I am lost!"
  • His mind racked backwards into the past with the incalculable velocity
  • of thought, and he began to comprehend his day's adventures, to conceive
  • them as a whole, and to recognise the sad imbroglio in which his own
  • character and fortunes had become involved. He looked round him as if
  • for help, but he was alone in the garden, with his scattered diamonds
  • and his redoubtable interlocutor; and when he gave ear, there was no
  • sound but the rustle of the leaves and the hurried pulsation of his
  • heart. It was little wonder if the young man felt himself deserted by
  • his spirits, and with a broken voice repeated his last ejaculation--
  • "I am lost!"
  • The gardener peered in all directions with an air of guilt; but there
  • was no face at any of the windows, and he seemed to breathe again.
  • "Pick up a heart," he said, "you fool! The worst of it is done. Why
  • could you not say at first there was enough for two? Two?" he repeated,
  • "ay, and for two hundred! But come away from here, where we may be
  • observed; and, for the love of wisdom, straighten out your hat and brush
  • your clothes. You could not travel two steps the figure of fun you look
  • just now."
  • While Harry mechanically adopted these suggestions, the gardener,
  • getting upon his knees, hastily drew together the scattered jewels and
  • returned them to the bandbox. The touch of these costly crystals sent a
  • shiver of emotion through the man's stalwart frame; his face was
  • transfigured, and his eyes shone with concupiscence; indeed, it seemed
  • as if he luxuriously prolonged his occupation, and dallied with every
  • diamond that he handled. At last, however, it was done; and concealing
  • the bandbox in his smock, the gardener beckoned to Harry and preceded
  • him in the direction of the house.
  • Near the door they were met by a young man, evidently in holy orders,
  • dark and strikingly handsome, with a look of mingled weakness and
  • resolution, and very neatly attired after the manner of his caste. The
  • gardener was plainly annoyed by this encounter; but he put as good a
  • face upon it as he could, and accosted the clergyman with an obsequious
  • and smiling air.
  • "Here is a fine afternoon, Mr. Rolles," said he: "a fine afternoon, as
  • sure as God made it! And here is a young friend of mine who had a fancy
  • to look at my roses. I took the liberty to bring him in, for I thought
  • none of the lodgers would object."
  • "Speaking for myself," replied the Reverend Mr. Rolles, "I do not; nor
  • do I fancy any of the rest of us would be more difficult upon so small a
  • matter. The garden is your own, Mr. Raeburn; we must none of us forget
  • that; and because you give us liberty to walk there we should be indeed
  • ungracious if we so far presumed upon your politeness as to interfere
  • with the convenience of your friends. But, on second thoughts," he
  • added, "I believe that this gentleman and I have met before. Mr.
  • Hartley, I think. I regret to observe that you have had a fall."
  • And he offered his hand.
  • A sort of maiden dignity, and a desire to delay as long as possible the
  • necessity for explanation, moved Harry to refuse this chance of help,
  • and to deny his own identity. He chose the tender mercies of the
  • gardener, who was at least unknown to him, rather than the curiosity and
  • perhaps the doubts of an acquaintance.
  • "I fear there is some mistake," said he. "My name is Thomlinson and I am
  • a friend of Mr. Raeburn's."
  • "Indeed?" said Mr. Rolles. "The likeness is amazing."
  • Mr. Raeburn, who had been upon thorns throughout this colloquy, now felt
  • it high time to bring it to a period.
  • "I wish you a pleasant saunter, sir," said he.
  • And with that he dragged Harry after him into the house, and then into a
  • chamber on the garden. His first care was to draw down the blind, for
  • Mr. Rolles still remained where they had left him, in an attitude of
  • perplexity and thought. Then he emptied the broken bandbox on the table,
  • and stood before the treasure, thus fully displayed, with an expression
  • of rapturous greed, and rubbing his hands upon his thighs. For Harry,
  • the sight of the man's face under the influence of this base emotion
  • added another pang to those he was already suffering. It seemed
  • incredible that, from his life of pure and delicate trifling, he should
  • be plunged in a breath among sordid and criminal relations. He could
  • reproach his conscience with no sinful act; and yet he was now suffering
  • the punishment of sin in its most acute and cruel forms--the dread of
  • punishment, the suspicions of the good, and the companionship and
  • contamination of vile and brutal natures. He felt he could lay his life
  • down with gladness to escape from the room and the society of Mr.
  • Raeburn.
  • "And now," said the latter, after he had separated the jewels into two
  • nearly equal parts, and drawn one of them nearer to himself; "and now,"
  • said he, "everything in this world has to be paid for, and some things
  • sweetly. You must know, Mr. Hartley, if such be your name, that I am a
  • man of a very easy temper, and good-nature has been my stumbling-block
  • from first to last. I could pocket the whole of these pretty pebbles, if
  • I chose, and I should like to see you dare to say a word; but I think I
  • must have taken a liking to you; for I declare I have not the heart to
  • shave you so close. So, do you see, in pure kind feeling, I propose that
  • we divide; and these," indicating the two heaps, "are the proportions
  • that seem to me just and friendly. Do you see any objection, Mr.
  • Hartley, may I ask? I am not the man to stick upon a brooch."
  • "But, sir," cried Harry, "what you propose to me is impossible. The
  • jewels are not mine, and I cannot share what is another's, no matter
  • with whom, nor in what proportions."
  • "They are not yours, are they not?" returned Raeburn. "And you could not
  • share them with anybody, couldn't you? Well, now, that is what I call a
  • pity; for here am I obliged to take you to the station. The
  • police--think of that," he continued; "think of the disgrace for your
  • respectable parents; think," he went on, taking Harry by the wrist;
  • "think of the Colonies and the Day of Judgment."
  • "I cannot help it," wailed Harry. "It is not my fault. You will not come
  • with me to Eaton Place."
  • "No," replied the man; "I will not, that is certain. And I mean to
  • divide these playthings with you here."
  • And so saying he applied a sudden and severe torsion to the lad's wrist.
  • Harry could not suppress a scream, and the perspiration burst forth upon
  • his face. Perhaps pain and terror quickened his intelligence, but
  • certainly at that moment the whole business flashed across him in
  • another light; and he saw that there was nothing for it but to accede to
  • the ruffian's proposal, and trust to find the house and force him to
  • disgorge, under more favourable circumstances, and when he himself was
  • clear from all suspicion.
  • "I agree," he said.
  • "There is a lamb," sneered the gardener. "I thought you would recognise
  • your interests at last. This bandbox," he continued, "I shall burn with
  • my rubbish; it is a thing that curious folk might recognise; and as for
  • you, scrape up your gaieties and put them in your pocket."
  • Harry proceeded to obey, Raeburn watching him, and every now and again,
  • his greed rekindled by some bright scintillation, abstracting another
  • jewel from the secretary's share, and adding it to his own.
  • When this was finished, both proceeded to the front door, which Raeburn
  • cautiously opened to observe the street. This was apparently clear of
  • passengers; for he suddenly seized Harry by the nape of the neck, and
  • holding his face downward so that he could see nothing but the roadway
  • and the door steps of the houses, pushed him violently before him down
  • one street and up another for the space of perhaps a minute and a half.
  • Harry had counted three corners before the bully relaxed his grasp, and
  • crying, "Now be off with you!" sent the lad flying head-foremost with a
  • well-directed and athletic kick.
  • When Harry gathered himself up, half-stunned and bleeding freely at the
  • nose, Mr. Raeburn had entirely disappeared. For the first time, anger
  • and pain so completely overcame the lad's spirits that he burst into a
  • fit of tears and remained sobbing in the middle of the road.
  • After he had thus somewhat assuaged his emotion, he began to look about
  • him and read the names of the streets at whose intersection he had been
  • deserted by the gardener. He was still in an unfrequented portion of
  • West London, among villas and large gardens; but he could see some
  • persons at a window who had evidently witnessed his misfortune; and
  • almost immediately after a servant came running from the house and
  • offered him a glass of water. At the same time, a dirty rogue, who had
  • been slouching somewhere in the neighbourhood, drew near him from the
  • other side.
  • "Poor fellow," said the maid, "how vilely you have been handled, to be
  • sure! Why, your knees are all cut, and your clothes ruined! Do you know
  • the wretch who used you so?"
  • "That I do!" cried Harry, who was somewhat refreshed by the water; "and
  • shall run him home in spite of his precautions. He shall pay dearly for
  • this day's work, I promise you."
  • "You had better come into the house and have yourself washed and
  • brushed," continued the maid. "My mistress will make you welcome, never
  • fear. And see, I will pick up your hat. Why, love of mercy!" she
  • screamed, "if you have not dropped diamonds all over the street!"
  • Such was the case; a good half of what remained to him after the
  • depredations of Mr. Raeburn had been shaken out of his pockets by the
  • summersault, and once more lay glittering on the ground. He blessed his
  • fortune that the maid had been so quick of eye; "there is nothing so bad
  • but it might be worse," thought he; and the recovery of these few seemed
  • to him almost as great an affair as the loss of all the rest. But, alas!
  • as he stooped to pick up his treasures, the loiterer made a rapid
  • onslaught, overset both Harry and the maid with a movement of his arms,
  • swept up a double-handful of the diamonds, and made off along the street
  • with an amazing swiftness.
  • Harry, as soon as he could get upon his feet, gave chase to the
  • miscreant with many cries, but the latter was too fleet of foot, and
  • probably too well acquainted with the locality; for turn where the
  • pursuer would he could find no traces of the fugitive.
  • In the deepest despondency, Harry revisited the scene of his mishap,
  • where the maid, who was still waiting, very honestly returned him his
  • hat and the remainder of the fallen diamonds. Harry thanked her from his
  • heart, and being now in no humour for economy, made his way to the
  • nearest cabstand and set off for Eaton Place by coach.
  • The house, on his arrival, seemed in some confusion, as if a catastrophe
  • had happened in the family; and the servants clustered together in the
  • hall, and were unable, or perhaps not altogether anxious, to suppress
  • their merriment at the tatterdemalion figure of the secretary. He passed
  • them with as good an air of dignity as he could assume, and made
  • directly for the boudoir. When he opened the door an astonishing and
  • even menacing spectacle presented itself to his eyes; for he beheld the
  • General and his wife and, of all people, Charlie Pendragon, closeted
  • together and speaking with earnestness and gravity on some important
  • subject. Harry saw at once that there was little left for him to
  • explain--plenary confession had plainly been made to the General of the
  • intended fraud upon his pocket, and the unfortunate miscarriage of the
  • scheme; and they had all made common cause against a common danger.
  • "Thank Heaven!" cried Lady Vandeleur, "here he is! The bandbox,
  • Harry--the bandbox!"
  • But Harry stood before them silent and downcast.
  • "Speak!" she cried. "Speak! Where is the bandbox?"
  • And the men, with threatening gestures, repeated the demand.
  • Harry drew a handful of jewels from his pocket. He was very white.
  • "This is all that remains," said he. "I declare before Heaven it was
  • through no fault of mine; and if you will have patience, although some
  • are lost, I am afraid, for ever, others, I am sure, may be still
  • recovered."
  • "Alas!" cried Lady Vandeleur, "all our diamonds are gone, and I owe
  • ninety thousand pounds for dress!"
  • "Madam," said the General, "you might have paved the gutter with your
  • own trash; you might have made debts to fifty times the sum you mention;
  • you might have robbed me of my mother's coronet and ring; and Nature
  • might have still so far prevailed that I could have forgiven you at
  • last. But, madam, you have taken the Rajah's Diamond--the Eye of Light,
  • as the Orientals poetically termed it--the Pride of Kashgar! You have
  • taken from me the Rajah's Diamond," he cried, raising his hands, "and
  • all, madam, all is at an end between us!"
  • "Believe me, General Vandeleur," she replied, "that is one of the most
  • agreeable speeches that ever I heard from your lips; and since we are to
  • be ruined, I could almost welcome the change, if it delivers me from
  • you. You have told me often enough that I married you for your money;
  • let me tell you now that I always bitterly repented the bargain; and if
  • you were still marriageable, and had a diamond bigger than your head, I
  • should counsel even my maid against a union so uninviting and
  • disastrous.--As for you, Mr. Hartley," she continued, turning on the
  • secretary, "you have sufficiently exhibited your valuable qualities in
  • this house; we are now persuaded that you equally lack manhood, sense,
  • and self-respect; and I can see only one course open for you--to
  • withdraw instanter, and, if possible, return no more. For your wages you
  • may rank as a creditor in my late husband's bankruptcy."
  • Harry had scarcely comprehended this insulting address before the
  • General was down upon him with another.
  • "And in the meantime," said that personage, "follow me before the
  • nearest Inspector of Police. You may impose upon a simple-minded
  • soldier, sir, but the eye of the law will read your disreputable secret.
  • If I must spend my old age in poverty through your underhand intriguing
  • with my wife, I mean at least that you shall not remain unpunished for
  • your pains; and God, sir, will deny me a very considerable satisfaction
  • if you do not pick oakum from now until your dying day."
  • With that, the General dragged Harry from the apartment, and hurried him
  • down-stairs and along the street to the police-station of the district.
  • _Here_ (says my Arabian author) _ended this deplorable business of the
  • bandbox. But to the unfortunate secretary the whole affair was the
  • beginning of a new and manlier life. The police were easily persuaded of
  • his innocence; and, after he had given what help he could in the
  • subsequent investigations, he was even complimented by one of the chiefs
  • of the detective department on the probity and simplicity of his
  • behaviour. Several persons interested themselves in one so unfortunate;
  • and soon after he inherited a sum of money from a maiden aunt in
  • Worcestershire. With this he married Prudence, and set sail for Bendigo,
  • or, according to another account, for Trincomalee, exceedingly content,
  • and with the best of prospects._
  • STORY OF THE YOUNG MAN IN HOLY ORDERS
  • The Reverend Mr. Simon Rolles had distinguished himself in the Moral
  • Sciences, and was more than usually proficient in the study of Divinity.
  • His essay "On the Christian Doctrine of the Social Obligations" obtained
  • for him, at the moment of its production, a certain celebrity in the
  • University of Oxford; and it was understood in clerical and learned
  • circles that young Mr. Rolles had in contemplation a considerable
  • work--a folio, it was said--on the authority of the Fathers of the
  • Church. These attainments, these ambitious designs, however, were far
  • from helping him to any preferment; and he was still in quest of his
  • first curacy when a chance ramble in that part of London, the peaceful
  • and rich aspect of the garden, a desire for solitude and study, and the
  • cheapness of the lodging, led him to take up his abode with Mr. Raeburn,
  • the nurseryman of Stockdove Lane.
  • It was his habit every afternoon, after he had worked seven or eight
  • hours on St. Ambrose or St. Chrysostom, to walk for a while in
  • meditation among the roses. And this was usually one of the most
  • productive moments of his day. But even a sincere appetite for thought,
  • and the excitement of grave problems awaiting solution, are not always
  • sufficient to preserve the mind of the philosopher against the petty
  • shocks and contacts of the world. And when Mr. Rolles found General
  • Vandeleur's secretary, ragged and bleeding, in the company of his
  • landlord; when he saw both change colour and seek to avoid his
  • questions; and, above all, when the former denied his own identity with
  • the most unmoved assurance, he speedily forgot the Saints and Fathers in
  • the vulgar interest of curiosity.
  • "I cannot be mistaken," thought he. "That is Mr. Hartley beyond a doubt.
  • How comes he in such a pickle? why does he deny his name? and what can
  • be his business with that black-looking ruffian, my landlord?"
  • As he was thus reflecting, another peculiar circumstance attracted his
  • attention. The face of Mr. Raeburn appeared at a low window next the
  • door; and, as chance directed, his eyes met those of Mr. Rolles. The
  • nurseryman seemed disconcerted, and even alarmed; and immediately after
  • the blind of the apartment was pulled sharply down.
  • "This may all be very well," reflected Mr. Rolles; "it may be all
  • excellently well; but I confess freely that I do not think so.
  • Suspicious, underhand, untruthful, fearful of observation--I believe
  • upon my soul," he thought, "the pair are plotting some disgraceful
  • action."
  • The detective that there is in all of us awoke and became clamant in the
  • bosom of Mr. Rolles; and with a brisk, eager step, that bore no
  • resemblance to his usual gait, he proceeded to make the circuit of the
  • garden. When he came to the scene of Harry's escalade, his eye was at
  • once arrested by a broken rose-bush and marks of trampling on the mould.
  • He looked up, and saw scratches on the brick, and a rag of trouser
  • floating from a broken bottle. This, then, was the mode of entrance
  • chosen by Mr. Raeburn's particular friend! It was thus that General
  • Vandeleur's secretary came to admire a flower-garden! The young
  • clergyman whistled softly to himself as he stooped to examine the
  • ground. He could make out where Harry had landed from his perilous leap;
  • he recognised the flat foot of Mr. Raeburn where it had sunk deeply in
  • the soil as he pulled up the secretary by the collar; nay, on a closer
  • inspection, he seemed to distinguish the marks of groping fingers, as
  • though something had been spilt abroad and eagerly collected.
  • "Upon my word," he thought, "the thing grows vastly interesting."
  • And just then he caught sight of something almost entirely buried in the
  • earth. In an instant he had disinterred a dainty morocco case,
  • ornamented and clasped in gilt. It had been trodden heavily underfoot,
  • and thus escaped the hurried search of Mr. Raeburn. Mr. Rolles opened
  • the case, and drew a long breath of almost horrified astonishment; for
  • there lay before him, in a cradle of green velvet, a diamond of
  • prodigious magnitude and of the finest water. It was of the bigness of a
  • duck's egg; beautifully shaped, and without a flaw; and as the sun shone
  • upon it, it gave forth a lustre like that of electricity, and seemed to
  • burn in his hand with a thousand internal fires.
  • He knew little of precious stones; but the Rajah's Diamond was a wonder
  • that explained itself; a village child, if he found it, would run
  • screaming for the nearest cottage; and a savage would prostrate himself
  • in adoration before so imposing a fetich. The beauty of the stone
  • flattered the young clergyman's eyes; the thought of its incalculable
  • value overpowered his intellect. He knew that what he held in his hand
  • was worth more than many years' purchase of an archiepiscopal see; that
  • it would build cathedrals more stately than Ely or Cologne; that he who
  • possessed it was set free for ever from the primal curse, and might
  • follow his own inclinations without concern or hurry, without let or
  • hindrance. And as he suddenly turned it, the rays leaped forth again
  • with renewed brilliancy, and seemed to pierce his very heart.
  • Decisive actions are often taken in a moment and without any conscious
  • deliverance from the rational parts of man. So it was now with Mr.
  • Rolles. He glanced hurriedly round; beheld, like Mr. Raeburn before him,
  • nothing but the sunlit flower-garden, the tall tree-tops, and the house
  • with blinded windows; and in a trice he had shut the case, thrust it
  • into his pocket, and was hastening to his study with the speed of guilt.
  • The Reverend Simon Rolles had stolen the Rajah's Diamond.
  • Early in the afternoon the police arrived with Harry Hartley. The
  • nurseryman, who was beside himself with terror, readily discovered his
  • hoard; and the jewels were identified and inventoried in the presence of
  • the secretary. As for Mr. Rolles, he showed himself in a most obliging
  • temper, communicated what he knew with freedom, and professed regret
  • that he could do no more to help the officers in their duty.
  • "Still," he added, "I suppose your business is nearly at an end."
  • "By no means," replied the man from Scotland Yard; and he narrated the
  • second robbery of which Harry had been the immediate victim, and gave
  • the young clergyman a description of the more important jewels that were
  • still not found, dilating particularly on the Rajah's Diamond.
  • "It must be worth a fortune," observed Mr. Rolles.
  • "Ten fortunes--twenty fortunes," cried the officer.
  • "The more it is worth," remarked Simon shrewdly, "the more difficult it
  • must be to sell. Such a thing has a physiognomy not to be disguised, and
  • I should fancy a man might as easily negotiate St. Paul's Cathedral."
  • "Oh, truly!" said the officer; "but if the thief be a man of any
  • intelligence, he will cut it into three or four, and there will be still
  • enough to make him rich."
  • "Thank you," said the clergyman. "You cannot imagine how much your
  • conversation interests me."
  • Whereupon the functionary admitted that they knew many strange things in
  • his profession, and immediately after took his leave.
  • Mr. Rolles regained his apartment. It seemed smaller and barer than
  • usual; the materials for his great work had never presented so little
  • interest; and he looked upon his library with the eye of scorn. He took
  • down, volume by volume, several Fathers of the Church, and glanced them
  • through; but they contained nothing to his purpose.
  • "These old gentlemen," thought he, "are no doubt very valuable writers,
  • but they seem to me conspicuously ignorant of life. Here am I, with
  • learning enough to be a Bishop, and I positively do not know how to
  • dispose of a stolen diamond. I glean a hint from a common policeman,
  • and, with all my folios, I cannot so much as put it into execution. This
  • inspires me with very low ideas of University training."
  • Herewith he kicked over his book-shelf and, putting on his hat, hastened
  • from the house to the club of which he was a member. In such a place of
  • mundane resort he hoped to find some man of good counsel and a shrewd
  • experience in life. In the reading-room he saw many of the country
  • clergy and an Archdeacon; there were three journalists and a writer upon
  • the Higher Metaphysic, playing pool; and at dinner only the raff of
  • ordinary club frequenters showed their commonplace and obliterated
  • countenances. None of these, thought Mr. Rolles, would know more on
  • dangerous topics than he knew himself; none of them were fit to give him
  • guidance in his present strait. At length, in the smoking-room, up many
  • weary stairs, he hit upon a gentleman of somewhat portly build and
  • dressed with conspicuous plainness. He was smoking a cigar and reading
  • the _Fortnightly_ _Review_; his face was singularly free from all sign
  • of preoccupation or fatigue; and there was something in his air which
  • seemed to invite confidence and to expect submission. The more the young
  • clergyman scrutinised his features, the more he was convinced that he
  • had fallen on one capable of giving pertinent advice.
  • "Sir," said he, "you will excuse my abruptness; but I judge you from
  • your appearance to be pre-eminently a man of the world."
  • "I have indeed considerable claims to that distinction," replied the
  • stranger, laying aside his magazine with a look of mingled amusement and
  • surprise.
  • "I, sir," continued the curate, "am a recluse, a student, a creature of
  • ink-bottles and patristic folios. A recent event has brought my folly
  • vividly before my eyes, and I desire to instruct myself in life. By
  • life," he added, "I do not mean Thackeray's novels; but the crimes and
  • secret possibilities of our society, and the principles of wise conduct
  • among exceptional events. I am a patient reader; can the thing be learnt
  • in books?"
  • "You put me in a difficulty," said the stranger. "I confess I have no
  • great notion of the use of books, except to amuse a railway journey;
  • although, I believe, there are some very exact treatises on astronomy,
  • the use of the globes, agriculture, and the art of making paper-flowers.
  • Upon the less apparent provinces of life I fear you will find nothing
  • truthful. Yet stay," he added, "have you read Gaboriau?"
  • Mr. Rolles admitted that he had never even heard the name.
  • "You may gather some notions from Gaboriau," resumed the stranger. "He
  • is at least suggestive; and as he is an author much studied by Prince
  • Bismarck, you will, at the worst, lose your time in good society."
  • "Sir," said the curate, "I am infinitely obliged by your politeness."
  • "You have already more than repaid me," returned the other.
  • "How?" inquired Simon.
  • "By the novelty of your request," replied the gentleman; and with a
  • polite gesture, as though to ask permission, he resumed the study of the
  • _Fortnightly Review_.
  • On his way home Mr. Rolles purchased a work on precious stones and
  • several of Gaboriau's novels. These last he eagerly skimmed until an
  • advanced hour in the morning; but although they introduced him to many
  • new ideas, he could nowhere discover what to do with a stolen diamond.
  • He was annoyed, moreover, to find the information scattered amongst
  • romantic story-telling, instead of soberly set forth after the manner of
  • a manual; and he concluded that, even if the writer had thought much
  • upon these subjects, he was totally lacking in educational method. For
  • the character and attainments of Lecoq, however, he was unable to
  • contain his admiration.
  • "He was truly a great creature," ruminated Mr. Rolles. "He knew the
  • world as I know Paley's Evidences. There was nothing that he could not
  • carry to a termination with his own hand, and against the largest odds.
  • Heavens!" he broke out suddenly, "is not this the lesson? Must I not
  • learn to cut diamonds for myself?"
  • It seemed to him as if he had sailed at once out of his perplexities; he
  • remembered that he knew a jeweller, one B. Macculloch, in Edinburgh, who
  • would be glad to put him in the way of the necessary training; a few
  • months, perhaps a few years, of sordid toil, and he would be
  • sufficiently expert to divide and sufficiently cunning to dispose with
  • advantage of the Rajah's Diamond. That done, he might return to pursue
  • his researches at leisure, a wealthy and luxurious student, envied and
  • respected by all. Golden visions attended him through his slumber, and
  • he awoke refreshed and light-hearted with the morning sun.
  • Mr. Raeburn's house was on that day to be closed by the police, and this
  • afforded a pretext for his departure. He cheerfully prepared his
  • baggage, transported it to King's Cross, where he left it in the
  • cloak-room, and returned to the club to while away the afternoon and
  • dine.
  • "If you dine here to-day, Rolles," observed an acquaintance, "you may
  • see two of the most remarkable men in England--Prince Florizel of
  • Bohemia, and old Jack Vandeleur."
  • "I have heard of the Prince," replied Mr. Rolles; "and General Vandeleur
  • I have even met in society."
  • "General Vandeleur is an ass!" returned the other. "This is his brother
  • John, the biggest adventurer, the best judge of precious stones, and one
  • of the most acute diplomatists in Europe. Have you never heard of his
  • duel with the Duc de Val d'Orge? of his exploits and atrocities when he
  • was Dictator of Paraguay? of his dexterity in recovering Sir Samuel
  • Levi's jewellery? nor of his services in the Indian Mutiny--services by
  • which the Government profited, but which the Government dared not
  • recognise? You make me wonder what we mean by fame, or even by infamy;
  • for Jack Vandeleur has prodigious claims to both. Run down-stairs," he
  • continued, "take a table near them, and keep your ears open. You will
  • hear some strange talk, or I am much misled."
  • "But how shall I know them?" inquired the clergyman.
  • "Know them!" cried his friend; "why, the Prince is the finest gentleman
  • in Europe, the only living creature who looks like a king; and as for
  • Jack Vandeleur, if you can imagine Ulysses at seventy years of age, and
  • with a sabre-cut across his face, you have the man before you! Know
  • them, indeed! Why, you could pick either of them out of a Derby day!"
  • Rolles eagerly hurried to the dining-room. It was as his friend had
  • asserted; it was impossible to mistake the pair in question. Old John
  • Vandeleur was of a remarkable force of body, and obviously broken to the
  • most difficult exercises. He had neither the carriage of a swordsman,
  • nor of a sailor, nor yet of one much inured to the saddle; but something
  • made up of all these, and the result and expression of many different
  • habits and dexterities. His features were bold and aquiline; his
  • expression arrogant and predatory; his whole appearance that of a swift,
  • violent, unscrupulous man of action; and his copious white hair and the
  • deep sabre-cut that traversed his nose and temple added a note of
  • savagery to a head already remarkable and menacing in itself.
  • In his companion, the Prince of Bohemia, Mr. Rolles was astonished to
  • recognise the gentleman who had recommended him the study of Gaboriau.
  • Doubtless Prince Florizel, who rarely visited the club, of which, as of
  • most others, he was an honorary member, had been waiting for John
  • Vandeleur when Simon accosted him on the previous evening.
  • The other diners had modestly retired into the angles of the room, and
  • left the distinguished pair in a certain isolation, but the young
  • clergyman was unrestrained by any sentiment of awe, and, marching boldly
  • up, took his place at the nearest table.
  • The conversation was, indeed, new to the student's ears. The ex-Dictator
  • of Paraguay stated many extraordinary experiences in different quarters
  • of the world; and the Prince supplied a commentary which, to a man of
  • thought, was even more interesting than the events themselves. Two forms
  • of experience were thus brought together and laid before the young
  • clergyman; and he did not know which to admire the most--the desperate
  • actor or the skilled expert in life; the man who spoke boldly of his own
  • deeds and perils, or the man who seemed, like a god, to know all things
  • and to have suffered nothing. The manner of each aptly fitted with his
  • part in the discourse. The Dictator indulged in brutalities alike of
  • speech and gesture; his hand opened and shut and fell roughly on the
  • table; and his voice was loud and heady. The Prince, on the other hand,
  • seemed the very type of urbane docility and quiet; the least movement,
  • the least inflection, had with him a weightier significance than all the
  • shouts and pantomime of his companion; and if ever, as must frequently
  • have been the case, he described some experience personal to himself, it
  • was so aptly dissimulated as to pass unnoticed with the rest.
  • At length the talk wandered on to the late robberies and the Rajah's
  • Diamond.
  • "That diamond would be better in the sea," observed Prince Florizel.
  • "As a Vandeleur," replied the Dictator, "your Highness may imagine my
  • dissent."
  • "I speak on grounds of public policy," pursued the Prince. "Jewels so
  • valuable should be reserved for the collection of a Prince or the
  • treasury of a great nation. To hand them about among the common sort of
  • men is to set a price on Virtue's head; and if the Rajah of Kashgar--a
  • Prince, I understand, of great enlightenment--desired vengeance upon the
  • men of Europe, he could hardly have gone more efficaciously about his
  • purpose than by sending us this apple of discord. There is no honesty
  • too robust for such a trial. I myself, who have many duties and many
  • privileges of my own--I myself, Mr. Vandeleur, could scarce handle the
  • intoxicating crystal and be safe. As for you, who are a diamond-hunter
  • by taste and profession, I do not believe there is a crime in the
  • calendar you would not perpetrate--I do not believe you have a friend in
  • the world whom you would not eagerly betray--I do not know if you have a
  • family, but if you have I declare you would sacrifice your children--and
  • all this for what? Not to be richer, nor to have more comforts or more
  • respect, but simply to call this diamond yours for a year or two until
  • you die, and now and again to open a safe and look at it as one looks at
  • a picture."
  • "It is true," replied Vandeleur. "I have hunted most things, from men
  • and women down to mosquitoes; I have dived for coral; I have followed
  • both whales and tigers; and a diamond is the tallest quarry of the lot.
  • It has beauty and worth; it alone can properly reward the ardours of the
  • chase. At this moment, as your Highness may fancy, I am upon the trail;
  • I have a sure knack, a wide experience; I know every stone of price in
  • my brother's collection as a shepherd knows his sheep; and I wish I may
  • die if I do not recover them every one."
  • "Sir Thomas Vandeleur will have great cause to thank you," said the
  • Prince.
  • "I am not so sure," returned the Dictator, with a laugh. "One of the
  • Vandeleurs will. Thomas or John--Peter or Paul--we are all apostles."
  • "I did not catch your observation," said the Prince, with some disgust.
  • And at the same moment the waiter informed Mr. Vandeleur that his cab
  • was at the door.
  • Mr. Rolles glanced at the clock, and saw that he also must be moving;
  • and the coincidence struck him sharply and unpleasantly, for he desired
  • to see no more of the diamond-hunter.
  • Much study having somewhat shaken the young man's nerves, he was in the
  • habit of travelling in the most luxurious manner; and for the present
  • journey he had taken a sofa in the sleeping carriage.
  • "You will be very comfortable," said the guard; "there is no one in your
  • compartment, and only one old gentleman in the other end."
  • It was close upon the hour, and the tickets were being examined, when
  • Mr. Rolles beheld this other fellow-passenger ushered by several porters
  • into his place; certainly, there was not another man in the world whom
  • he would not have preferred--for it was old John Vandeleur, the
  • ex-Dictator.
  • The sleeping carriages on the Great Northern line were divided into
  • three compartments--one at each end for travellers, and one in the
  • centre fitted with the conveniences of a lavatory. A door running in
  • grooves separated each of the others from the lavatory; but as there
  • were neither bolts nor locks, the whole suite was practically common
  • ground.
  • When Mr. Rolles had studied his position, he perceived himself without
  • defence. If the Dictator chose to pay him a visit in the course of the
  • night, he could do no less than receive it; he had no means of
  • fortification, and lay open to attack as if he had been lying in the
  • fields. This situation caused him some agony of mind. He recalled with
  • alarm the boastful statements of his fellow-traveller across the
  • dining-table, and the professions of immorality which he had heard him
  • offering to the disgusted Prince. Some persons, he remembered to have
  • read, are endowed with a singular quickness of perception for the
  • neighbourhood of precious metals; through walls and even at considerable
  • distances they are said to divine the presence of gold. Might it not be
  • the same with diamonds? he wondered; and if so, who was more likely to
  • enjoy this transcendental sense than the person who gloried in the
  • appellation of the Diamond Hunter? From such a man he recognised that he
  • had everything to fear, and longed eagerly for the arrival of the day.
  • In the meantime he neglected no precaution, concealed his diamond in the
  • most internal pocket of a system of great-coats, and devoutly
  • recommended himself to the care of Providence.
  • The train pursued its usual even and rapid course; and nearly half the
  • journey had been accomplished before slumber began to triumph over
  • uneasiness in the breast of Mr. Rolles. For some time he resisted its
  • influence; but it grew upon him more and more, and a little before York
  • he was fain to stretch himself upon one of the couches and suffer his
  • eyes to close; and almost at the same instant consciousness deserted the
  • young clergyman. His last thought was of his terrifying neighbour.
  • When he awoke it was still pitch dark, except for the flicker of the
  • veiled lamp; and the continual roaring and oscillation testified to the
  • unrelaxed velocity of the train. He sat upright in a panic, for he had
  • been tormented by the most uneasy dreams; it was some seconds before he
  • recovered his self-command; and even after he had resumed a recumbent
  • attitude sleep continued to flee him, and he lay awake with his brain in
  • a state of violent agitation, and his eyes fixed upon the lavatory door.
  • He pulled his clerical felt hat over his brow still further to shield
  • him from the light; and he adopted the usual expedients, such as
  • counting a thousand or banishing thought, by which experienced invalids
  • are accustomed to woo the approach of sleep. In the case of Mr. Rolles
  • they proved one and all vain; he was harassed by a dozen different
  • anxieties--the old man in the other end of the carriage haunted him in
  • the most alarming shapes; and in whatever attitude he chose to lie, the
  • diamond in his pocket occasioned him a sensible physical distress. It
  • burned, it was too large; it bruised his ribs; and there were
  • infinitesimal fractions of a second in which he had half a mind to throw
  • it from the window.
  • While he was thus lying, a strange incident took place.
  • The sliding-door into the lavatory stirred a little, and then a little
  • more, and was finally drawn back for the space of about twenty inches.
  • The lamp in the lavatory was unshaded, and in the lighted aperture thus
  • disclosed Mr. Rolles could see the head of Mr. Vandeleur in an attitude
  • of deep attention. He was conscious that the gaze of the Dictator rested
  • intently on his own face; and the instinct of self-preservation moved
  • him to hold his breath, to refrain from the least movement, and, keeping
  • his eyes lowered, to watch his visitor from underneath the lashes. After
  • about a moment, the head was withdrawn and the door of the lavatory
  • replaced.
  • The Dictator had not come to attack, but to observe; his action was not
  • that of a man threatening another, but that of a man who was himself
  • threatened; if Mr. Rolles was afraid of him, it appeared that he, in his
  • turn, was not quite easy on the score of Mr. Rolles. He had come, it
  • would seem, to make sure that his only fellow-traveller was asleep; and,
  • when satisfied on that point, he had at once withdrawn.
  • The clergyman leaped to his feet. The extreme of terror had given place
  • to a reaction of foolhardy daring. He reflected that the rattle of the
  • flying train concealed all other sounds, and determined, come what
  • might, to return the visit he had just received. Divesting himself of
  • his cloak, which might have interfered with the freedom of his action,
  • he entered the lavatory and paused to listen. As he had expected, there
  • was nothing to be heard above the roar of the train's progress; and
  • laying his hand on the door at the farther side, he proceeded cautiously
  • to draw it back for about six inches. Then he stopped, and could not
  • contain an ejaculation of surprise.
  • John Vandeleur wore a fur travelling-cap with lappets to protect his
  • ears; and this may have combined with the sound of the express to keep
  • him in ignorance of what was going forward. It is certain, at least,
  • that he did not raise his head, but continued without interruption to
  • pursue his strange employment. Between his feet stood an open hat-box;
  • in one hand he held the sleeve of his sealskin greatcoat; in the other a
  • formidable knife, with which he had just slit up the lining of the
  • sleeve. Mr. Rolles had read of persons carrying money in a belt; and as
  • he had no acquaintance with any but cricket-belts, he had never been
  • able rightly to conceive how this was managed. But here was a stranger
  • thing before his eyes; for John Vandeleur, it appeared, carried diamonds
  • in the lining of his sleeve; and even as the young clergyman gazed, he
  • could see one glittering brilliant drop after another into the hat-box.
  • He stood riveted to the spot, following this unusual business with his
  • eyes. The diamonds were, for the most part, small, and not easily
  • distinguishable either in shape or fire. Suddenly the Dictator appeared
  • to find a difficulty; he employed both hands and stooped over his task;
  • but it was not until after considerable manoeuvring that he extricated
  • a large tiara of diamonds from the lining, and held it up for some
  • seconds' examination before he placed it with the others in the hat-box.
  • The tiara was a ray of light to Mr. Rolles; he immediately recognised
  • it for a part of the treasure stolen from Harry Hartley by the loiterer.
  • There was no room for mistake; it was exactly as the detective had
  • described it; there were the ruby stars, with a great emerald in the
  • centre; there were the interlacing crescents; and there were the
  • pear-shaped pendants, each a single stone, which gave a special value to
  • Lady Vandeleur's tiara.
  • Mr. Rolles was hugely relieved. The Dictator was as deeply in the affair
  • as he was; neither could tell tales upon the other. In the first glow of
  • happiness, the clergyman suffered a deep sigh to escape him; and as his
  • bosom had become choked and his throat dry during his previous suspense,
  • the sigh was followed by a cough.
  • Mr. Vandeleur looked up; his face contracted with the blackest and most
  • deadly passion; his eyes opened widely, and his under jaw dropped in an
  • astonishment that was upon the brink of fury. By an instinctive movement
  • he had covered the hat-box with the coat. For half a minute the two men
  • stared upon each other in silence. It was not a long interval, but it
  • sufficed for Mr. Rolles; he was one of those who think swiftly on
  • dangerous occasions; he decided on a course of action of a singularly
  • daring nature; and although he felt he was setting his life upon the
  • hazard, he was the first to break silence.
  • "I beg your pardon," said he.
  • The Dictator shivered slightly, and when he spoke his voice was hoarse.
  • "What do you want here?" he asked.
  • "I take a particular interest in diamonds," replied Mr. Rolles, with an
  • air of perfect self-possession. "Two connoisseurs should be acquainted.
  • I have here a trifle of my own which may perhaps serve for an
  • introduction."
  • And so saying, he quietly took the case from his pocket, showed the
  • Rajah's Diamond to the Dictator for an instant, and replaced it in
  • security.
  • "It was once your brother's," he added.
  • John Vandeleur continued to regard him with a look of almost painful
  • amazement; but he neither spoke nor moved.
  • "I was pleased to observe," resumed the young man, "that we have gems
  • from the same collection."
  • The Dictator's surprise overpowered him.
  • "I beg your pardon," he said; "I begin to perceive that I am growing
  • old! I am positively not prepared for little incidents like this. But
  • set my mind at rest upon one point: do my eyes deceive me, or are you
  • indeed a parson?"
  • "I am in holy orders," answered Mr. Rolles.
  • "Well," cried the other, "as long as I live I will never hear another
  • word against the cloth!"
  • "You flatter me," said Mr. Rolles.
  • "Pardon me," replied Vandeleur; "pardon me, young man. You are no
  • coward, but it still remains to be seen whether you are not the worst of
  • fools. Perhaps," he continued, leaning back upon his seat, "perhaps you
  • would oblige me with a few particulars. I must suppose you had some
  • object in the stupefying impudence of your proceedings, and I confess I
  • have a curiosity to know it."
  • "It is very simple," replied the clergyman; "it proceeds from my great
  • inexperience of life."
  • "I shall be glad to be persuaded," answered Vandeleur.
  • Whereupon Mr. Rolles told him the whole story of his connection with the
  • Rajah's Diamond, from the time he found it in Raeburn's garden to the
  • time when he left London in the Flying Scotchman. He added a brief
  • sketch of his feelings and thoughts during the journey, and concluded in
  • these words:--
  • "When I recognised the tiara I knew we were in the same attitude towards
  • Society, and this inspired me with a hope, which I trust you will not
  • say was ill-founded, that you might become in some sense my partner in
  • the difficulties and, of course, the profits of my situation. To one of
  • your special knowledge and obviously great experience the negotiation of
  • the diamond would give but little trouble, while to me it was a matter
  • of impossibility. On the other part, I judged that I might lose nearly
  • as much by cutting the diamond, and that not improbably with an
  • unskilful hand, as might enable me to pay you with proper generosity for
  • your assistance. The subject was a delicate one to broach; and perhaps I
  • fell short in delicacy. But I must ask you to remember that for me the
  • situation was a new one, and I was entirely unacquainted with the
  • etiquette in use. I believe without vanity that I could have married or
  • baptised you in a very acceptable manner; but every man has his own
  • aptitudes, and this sort of bargain was not among the lists of my
  • accomplishments."
  • "I do not wish to flatter you," replied Vandeleur; "but upon my word,
  • you have an unusual disposition for a life of crime. You have more
  • accomplishments than you imagine; and though I have encountered a number
  • of rogues in different quarters of the world, I never met with one so
  • unblushing as yourself. Cheer up, Mr. Rolles, you are in the right
  • profession at last! As for helping you, you may command me as you will.
  • I have only a day's business in Edinburgh on a little matter for my
  • brother; and once that is concluded, I return to Paris, where I usually
  • reside. If you please, you may accompany me thither. And before the end
  • of a month I believe I shall have brought your little business to a
  • satisfactory conclusion."
  • _At this point, contrary to all the canons of his art, our Arabian
  • Author breaks off the_ STORY OF THE YOUNG MAN IN HOLY ORDERS. _I regret
  • and condemn such practices; but I must follow my original, and refer the
  • reader for the conclusion of Mr. Rolles' adventures to the next number
  • of the cycle._
  • THE STORY OF THE HOUSE WITH THE GREEN BLINDS
  • Francis Scrymgeour, a clerk in the Bank of Scotland at Edinburgh, had
  • attained the age of twenty-five in a sphere of quiet, creditable, and
  • domestic life. His mother died while he was young; but his father, a man
  • of sense and probity, had given him an excellent education at school,
  • and brought him up at home to orderly and frugal habits. Francis, who
  • was of a docile and affectionate disposition, profited by these
  • advantages with zeal, and devoted himself heart and soul to his
  • employment. A walk upon Saturday afternoon, an occasional dinner with
  • members of his family, and a yearly tour of a fortnight in the Highlands
  • or even on the continent of Europe were his principal distractions, and
  • he grew rapidly in favour with his superiors, and enjoyed already a
  • salary of nearly two hundred pounds a year, with the prospect of an
  • ultimate advance to almost double that amount. Few young men were more
  • contented, few more willing and laborious, than Francis Scrymgeour.
  • Sometimes at night, when he had read the daily paper, he would play upon
  • the flute to amuse his father, for whose qualities he entertained a
  • great respect.
  • One day he received a note from a well-known firm of Writers to the
  • Signet, requesting the favour of an immediate interview with him. The
  • letter was marked "Private and Confidential," and had been addressed to
  • him at the bank, instead of at home--two unusual circumstances which
  • made him obey the summons with the more alacrity. The senior member of
  • the firm, a man of much austerity of manner, made him gravely welcome,
  • requested him to take a seat, and proceeded to explain the matter in
  • hand in the picked expressions of a veteran man of business. A person,
  • who must remain nameless, but of whom the lawyer had every reason to
  • think well--a man, in short, of some station in the country,--desired to
  • make Francis an annual allowance of five hundred pounds. The capital was
  • to be placed under the control of the lawyer's firm and two trustees who
  • must also remain anonymous. There were conditions annexed to this
  • liberality, but he was of opinion that his new client would find nothing
  • either excessive or dishonourable in the terms; and he repeated these
  • two words with emphasis, as though he desired to commit himself to
  • nothing more.
  • Francis asked their nature.
  • "The conditions," said the Writer to the Signet, "are, as I have twice
  • remarked, neither dishonourable nor excessive. At the same time I cannot
  • conceal from you that they are most unusual. Indeed, the whole case is
  • very much out of our way; and I should certainly have refused it had it
  • not been for the reputation of the gentleman who entrusted it to my
  • care, and, let me add, Mr. Scrymgeour, the interest I have been led to
  • take in yourself by many complimentary and, I have no doubt,
  • well-deserved reports."
  • Francis entreated him to be more specific.
  • "You cannot picture my uneasiness as to these conditions," he said.
  • "They are two," replied the lawyer, "only two; and the sum, as you will
  • remember, is five hundred a year--and unburdened, I forgot to add,
  • unburdened."
  • And the lawyer raised his eyebrows at him with solemn gusto.
  • "The first," he resumed, "is of remarkable simplicity. You must be in
  • Paris by the afternoon of Sunday, the 15th; there you will find, at the
  • box-office of the Comédie Française a ticket for admission taken in your
  • name and waiting you. You are requested to sit out the whole performance
  • in the seat provided, and that is all."
  • "I should certainly have preferred a week-day," replied Francis. "But,
  • after all, once in a way--"
  • "And in Paris, my dear sir," added the lawyer soothingly. "I believe I
  • am something of a precisian myself, but upon such a consideration, and
  • in Paris, I should not hesitate an instant."
  • And the pair laughed pleasantly together.
  • "The other is of more importance," continued the Writer to the Signet.
  • "It regards your marriage. My client, taking a deep interest in your
  • welfare, desires to advise you absolutely in the choice of a wife.
  • Absolutely, you understand," he repeated.
  • "Let us be more explicit, if you please," returned Francis. "Am I to
  • marry any one, maid or widow, black or white, whom this invisible
  • person chooses to propose?"
  • "I was to assure you that suitability of age and position should be a
  • principle with your benefactor," replied the lawyer. "As to race, I
  • confess the difficulty had not occurred to me, and I failed to inquire;
  • but if you like I will make a note of it at once, and advise you on the
  • earliest opportunity."
  • "Sir," said Francis, "it remains to be seen whether this whole affair is
  • not a most unworthy fraud. The circumstances are inexplicable--I had
  • almost said incredible; and until I see a little more daylight, and some
  • plausible motive, I confess I should be very sorry to put a hand to the
  • transaction. I appeal to you in this difficulty for information. I must
  • learn what is at the bottom of it all. If you do not know, cannot guess,
  • or are not at liberty to tell me, I shall take my hat and go back to my
  • bank as I came."
  • "I do not know," answered the lawyer, "but I have an excellent guess.
  • Your father, and no one else, is at the root of this apparently
  • unnatural business."
  • "My father!" cried Francis, in extreme disdain. "Worthy man, I know
  • every thought of his mind, every penny of his fortune!"
  • "You misinterpret my words," said the lawyer. "I do not refer to Mr.
  • Scrymgeour, senior; for he is not your father. When he and his wife came
  • to Edinburgh, you were already nearly one year old, and you had not yet
  • been three months in their care. The secret has been well kept; but such
  • is the fact. Your father is unknown, and I say again that I believe him
  • to be the original of the offers I am charged at present to transmit to
  • you."
  • It would be impossible to exaggerate the astonishment of Francis
  • Scrymgeour at this unexpected information. He pled this confusion to the
  • lawyer.
  • "Sir," said he, "after a piece of news so startling, you must grant me
  • some hours for thought. You shall know this evening what conclusion I
  • have reached."
  • The lawyer commended his prudence; and Francis, excusing himself upon
  • some pretext at the bank, took a long walk into the country, and fully
  • considered the different steps and aspects of the case. A pleasant sense
  • of his own importance rendered him the more deliberate: but the issue
  • was from the first not doubtful. His whole carnal man leaned
  • irresistibly towards the five hundred a year, and the strange conditions
  • with which it was burdened; he discovered in his heart an invincible
  • repugnance to the name of Scrymgeour, which he had never hitherto
  • disliked; he began to despise the narrow and unromantic interests of his
  • former life; and when once his mind was fairly made up, he walked with a
  • new feeling of strength and freedom, and nourished himself with the
  • gayest anticipations.
  • He said but a word to the lawyer, and immediately received a cheque for
  • two quarters' arrears; for the allowance was ante-dated from the first
  • of January. With this in his pocket, he walked home. The flat in
  • Scotland Street looked mean in his eyes; his nostrils, for the first
  • time, rebelled against the odour of broth; and he observed little
  • defects of manner in his adoptive father which filled him with surprise,
  • and almost with disgust. The next day, he determined, should see him on
  • his way to Paris.
  • In that city, where he arrived long before the appointed date, he put up
  • at a modest hotel frequented by English and Italians, and devoted
  • himself to improvement in the French tongue. For this purpose he had a
  • master twice a week, entered into conversation with loiterers in the
  • Champs Elysées, and nightly frequented the theatre. He had his whole
  • toilette fashionably renewed; and was shaved and had his hair dressed
  • every morning by a barber in a neighbouring street. This gave him
  • something of a foreign air, and seemed to wipe off the reproach of his
  • past years.
  • At length, on the Saturday afternoon, he betook himself to the
  • box-office of the theatre in the Rue Richelieu. No sooner had he
  • mentioned his name than the clerk produced the order in an envelope of
  • which the address was scarcely dry.
  • "It has been taken this moment," said the clerk.
  • "Indeed!" said Francis. "May I ask what the gentleman was like?"
  • "Your friend is easy to describe," replied the official. "He is old and
  • strong and beautiful, with white hair and a sabre-cut across his face.
  • You cannot fail to recognise so marked a person."
  • "No, indeed," returned Francis; "and I thank you for your politeness."
  • "He cannot yet be far distant," added the clerk. "If you make haste you
  • might still overtake him."
  • Francis did not wait to be twice told; he ran precipitately from the
  • theatre into the middle of the street and looked in all directions. More
  • than one white-haired man was within sight; but though he overtook each
  • of them in succession, all wanted the sabre-cut. For nearly half an hour
  • he tried one street after another in the neighbourhood, until at length,
  • recognising the folly of continued search, he started on a walk to
  • compose his agitated feelings; for this proximity of an encounter with
  • him to whom he could not doubt he owed the day had profoundly moved the
  • young man.
  • It chanced that his way lay up the Rue Drouot and thence up the Rue des
  • Martyrs; and chance, in this case, served him better than all the
  • forethought in the world. For on the outer boulevard he saw two men in
  • earnest colloquy upon a seat. One was dark, young, and handsome,
  • secularly dressed, but with an indelible clerical stamp; the other
  • answered in every particular to the description given him by the clerk.
  • Francis felt his heart beat high in his bosom; he knew he was now about
  • to hear the voice of his father; and making a wide circuit, he
  • noiselessly took his place behind the couple in question, who were too
  • much interested in their talk to observe much else. As Francis had
  • expected, the conversation was conducted in the English language.
  • "Your suspicions begin to annoy me, Rolles," said the older man. "I tell
  • you I am doing my utmost; a man cannot lay his hand on millions in a
  • moment. Have I not taken you up, a mere stranger, out of pure good-will?
  • Are you not living largely on my bounty?"
  • "On your advances, Mr. Vandeleur," corrected the other.
  • "Advances, if you choose; and interest instead of good-will, if you
  • prefer it," returned Vandeleur angrily. "I am not here to pick
  • expressions. Business is business; and your business, let me remind you,
  • is too muddy for such airs. Trust me, or leave me alone and find someone
  • else; but let us have an end, for God's sake, of your jeremiads."
  • "I am beginning to learn the world," replied the other, "and I see that
  • you have every reason to play me false, and not one to deal honestly. I
  • am not here to pick expressions either; you wish the diamond for
  • yourself; you know you do--you dare not deny it. Have you not already
  • forged my name, and searched my lodging in my absence? I understand the
  • cause of your delays; you are lying in wait; you are the diamond-hunter,
  • forsooth; and sooner or later, by fair means or foul, you'll lay your
  • hands upon it. I tell you, it must stop; push me much further and I
  • promise you a surprise."
  • "It does not become you to use threats," returned Vandeleur. "Two can
  • play at that. My brother is here in Paris; the police are on the alert;
  • and if you persist in wearying me with your caterwauling, I will arrange
  • a little astonishment for you, Mr. Rolles. But mine shall be once and
  • for all. Do you understand, or would you prefer me to tell it you in
  • Hebrew? There is an end to all things, and you have come to the end of
  • my patience. Tuesday, at seven; not a day, not an hour sooner, not the
  • least part of a second, if it were to save your life. And if you do not
  • choose to wait, you may go to the bottomless pit for me, and welcome."
  • And so saying, the Dictator arose from the bench, and marched off in the
  • direction of Montmartre, shaking his head and swinging his cane with a
  • most furious air; while his companion remained where he was, in an
  • attitude of great dejection.
  • Francis was at the pitch of surprise and horror; his sentiments had been
  • shocked to the last degree; the hopeful tenderness with which he had
  • taken his place upon the bench was transformed into repulsion and
  • despair; old Mr. Scrymgeour, he reflected, was a far more kindly and
  • creditable parent than this dangerous and violent intriguer; but he
  • retained his presence of mind, and suffered not a moment to elapse
  • before he was on the trail of the Dictator.
  • That gentleman's fury carried him forward at a brisk pace, and he was so
  • completely occupied in his angry thoughts that he never so much as cast
  • a look behind him till he reached his own door.
  • His house stood high up in the Rue Lepic, commanding a view of all
  • Paris, and enjoying the pure air of the heights. It was two stories
  • high, with green blinds and shutters; and all the windows looking on the
  • street were hermetically closed. Tops of trees showed over the high
  • garden wall, and the wall was protected by _chevaux-de-frise_. The
  • Dictator paused a moment while he searched his pocket for a key; and
  • then, opening a gate, disappeared within the enclosure.
  • Francis looked about him; the neighbourhood was very lonely, the house
  • isolated in its garden. It seemed as if his observation must here come
  • to an abrupt end. A second glance, however, showed him a tall house next
  • door presenting a gable to the garden, and in this gable a single
  • window. He passed to the front and saw a ticket offering unfurnished
  • lodgings by the month; and, on inquiry, the room which commanded the
  • Dictator's garden proved to be one of those to let. Francis did not
  • hesitate a moment; he took the room, paid an advance upon the rent, and
  • returned to his hotel to seek his baggage.
  • The old man with the sabre-cut might or might not be his father; he
  • might or he might not be upon the true scent; but he was certainly on
  • the edge of an exciting mystery, and he promised himself that he would
  • not relax his observation until he had got to the bottom of the secret.
  • From the window of his new apartment Francis Scrymgeour commanded a
  • complete view into the garden of the house with the green blinds.
  • Immediately below him a very comely chestnut with wide boughs sheltered
  • a pair of rustic tables where people might dine in the height of summer.
  • On all sides save one a dense vegetation concealed the soil; but there,
  • between the tables and the house, he saw a patch of gravel walk leading
  • from the verandah to the garden gate. Studying the place from between
  • the boards of the Venetian shutters, which he durst not open for fear of
  • attracting attention, Francis observed but little to indicate the
  • manners of the inhabitants, and that little argued no more than a close
  • reserve and a taste for solitude. The garden was conventual, the house
  • had the air of a prison. The green blinds were all drawn down upon the
  • outside; the door into the verandah was closed; the garden, as far as he
  • could see it, was left entirely to itself in the evening sunshine. A
  • modest curl of smoke from a single chimney alone testified to the
  • presence of living people.
  • In order that he might not be entirely idle, and to give a certain
  • colour to his way of life, Francis had purchased Euclid's Geometry in
  • French, which he set himself to copy and translate on the top of his
  • portmanteau and seated on the floor against the wall; for he was equally
  • without chair or table. From time to time he would rise and cast a
  • glance into the enclosure of the house with the green blinds; but the
  • windows remained obstinately closed and the garden empty.
  • Only late in the evening did anything occur to reward his continued
  • attention. Between nine and ten the sharp tinkle of a bell aroused him
  • from a fit of dozing; and he sprang to his observatory in time to hear
  • an important noise of locks being opened and bars removed, and to see
  • Mr. Vandeleur, carrying a lantern and clothed in a flowing robe of
  • black velvet with a skull-cap to match, issue from under the verandah
  • and proceed leisurely towards the garden gate. The sound of bolts and
  • bars was then repeated; and a moment after, Francis perceived the
  • Dictator escorting into the house, in the mobile light of the lantern,
  • an individual of the lowest and most despicable appearance.
  • Half an hour afterwards the visitor was reconducted to the street; and
  • Mr. Vandeleur, setting his light upon one of the rustic tables, finished
  • a cigar with great deliberation under the foliage of the chestnut.
  • Francis, peering through a clear space among the leaves, was able to
  • follow his gestures as he threw away the ash or enjoyed a copious
  • inhalation; and beheld a cloud upon the old man's brow and a forcible
  • action of the lips, which testified to some deep and probably painful
  • train of thought. The cigar was already almost at an end, when the voice
  • of a young girl was heard suddenly crying the hour from the interior of
  • the house.
  • "In a moment," replied John Vandeleur.
  • And, with that, he threw away the stump, and, taking up the lantern,
  • sailed away under the verandah for the night. As soon as the door was
  • closed, absolute darkness fell upon the house; Francis might try his
  • eyesight as much as he pleased, he could not detect so much as a single
  • chink of light below a blind; and he concluded, with great good sense,
  • that the bed-chambers were all upon the other side.
  • Early the next morning (for he was early awake after an uncomfortable
  • night upon the floor) he saw cause to adopt a different explanation. The
  • blinds rose, one after another, by means of a spring in the interior,
  • and disclosed steel shutters such as we see on the front of shops; these
  • in their turn were rolled up by a similar contrivance; and for the space
  • of about an hour the chambers were left open to the morning air. At the
  • end of that time Mr. Vandeleur, with his own hand, once more closed the
  • shutters and replaced the blinds from within.
  • While Francis was still marvelling at these precautions, the door
  • opened and a young girl came forth to look about her in the garden. It
  • was not two minutes before she re-entered the house, but even in that
  • short time he saw enough to convince him that she possessed the most
  • unusual attractions. His curiosity was not only highly excited by this
  • incident, but his spirits were improved to a still more notable degree.
  • The alarming manners and more than equivocal life of his father ceased
  • from that moment to prey upon his mind; from that moment he embraced his
  • new family with ardour; and whether the young lady should prove his
  • sister or his wife, he felt convinced she was an angel in disguise. So
  • much was this the case that he was seized with a sudden horror when he
  • reflected how little he really knew, and how possible it was that he had
  • followed the wrong person when he followed Mr. Vandeleur.
  • The porter, whom he consulted, could afford him little information; but,
  • such as it was, it had a mysterious and questionable sound. The person
  • next door was an English gentleman of extraordinary wealth, and
  • proportionately eccentric in his tastes and habits. He possessed great
  • collections, which he kept in the house beside him; and it was to
  • protect these that he had fitted the place with steel shutters,
  • elaborate fastenings, and _chevaux-de-frise_ along the garden wall. He
  • lived much alone, in spite of some strange visitors, with whom, it
  • seemed, he had business to transact; and there was no one else in the
  • house, except Mademoiselle and an old woman servant.
  • "Is Mademoiselle his daughter?" inquired Francis.
  • "Certainly," replied the porter. "Mademoiselle is the daughter of the
  • house; and strange it is to see how she is made to work. For all his
  • riches, it is she who goes to market; and every day in the week you may
  • see her going by with a basket on her arm."
  • "And the collections?" asked the other.
  • "Sir," said the man, "they are immensely valuable. More I cannot tell
  • you. Since M. de Vandeleur's arrival no one in the quarter has so much
  • as passed the door."
  • "Suppose not," returned Francis, "you must surely have some notion what
  • these famous galleries contain. Is it pictures, silks, statues, jewels,
  • or what?"
  • "My faith, sir," said the fellow, with a shrug, "it might be carrots,
  • and still I could not tell you. How should I know? The house is kept
  • like a garrison, as you perceive."
  • And then as Francis was returning disappointed to his room, the porter
  • called him back.
  • "I have just remembered, sir," said he. "M. de Vandeleur has been in all
  • parts of the world, and I once heard the old woman declare that he had
  • brought many diamonds back with him. If that be the truth, there must be
  • a fine show behind those shutters."
  • By an early hour on Sunday Francis was in his place at the theatre. The
  • seat which had been taken for him was only two or three numbers from the
  • left-hand side, and directly opposite one of the lower boxes. As the
  • seat had been specially chosen there was doubtless something to be
  • learned from its position; and he judged by an instinct that the box
  • upon his right was, in some way or other, to be connected with the drama
  • in which he ignorantly played a part. Indeed, it was so situated that
  • its occupants could safely observe him from beginning to end of the
  • piece, if they were so minded; while, profiting by the depth, they could
  • screen themselves sufficiently well from any counter-examination on his
  • side. He promised himself not to leave it for a moment out of sight; and
  • whilst he scanned the rest of the theatre, or made a show of attending
  • to the business of the stage, he always kept a corner of an eye upon the
  • empty box.
  • The second act had been some time in progress, and was even drawing
  • towards a close, when the door opened and two persons entered and
  • ensconced themselves in the darkest of the shade. Francis could hardly
  • control his emotion. It was Mr. Vandeleur and his daughter. The blood
  • came and went in his arteries and veins with stunning activity; his ears
  • sang; his head turned. He dared not look lest he should awake
  • suspicion; his play-bill, which he kept reading from end to end and over
  • and over again, turned from white to red before his eyes; and when he
  • cast a glance upon the stage, it seemed incalculably far away, and he
  • found the voices and gestures of the actors to the last degree
  • impertinent and absurd.
  • From time to time he risked a momentary look in the direction which
  • principally interested him; and once at least he felt certain that his
  • eyes encountered those of the young girl. A shock passed over his body,
  • and he saw all the colours of the rainbow. What would he not have given
  • to overhear what passed between the Vandeleurs? What would he not have
  • given for the courage to take up his opera-glass and steadily inspect
  • their attitude and expression? There, for aught he knew, his whole life
  • was being decided--and he not able to interfere, not able even to follow
  • the debate, but condemned to sit and suffer where he was, in impotent
  • anxiety.
  • At last the act came to an end. The curtain fell, and the people around
  • him began to leave their places for the interval. It was only natural
  • that he should follow their example; and if he did so, it was not only
  • natural but necessary that he should pass immediately in front of the
  • box in question. Summoning all his courage, but keeping his eyes
  • lowered, Francis drew near the spot. His progress was slow, for the old
  • gentleman before him moved with incredible deliberation, wheezing as he
  • went. What was he to do? Should he address the Vandeleurs by name as he
  • went by? Should he take the flower from his button-hole and throw it
  • into the box? Should he raise his face and direct one long and
  • affectionate look upon the lady who was either his sister or his
  • betrothed? As he found himself thus struggling among so many
  • alternatives, he had a vision of his old equable existence in the bank,
  • and was assailed by a thought of regret for the past.
  • By this time he had arrived directly opposite the box; and although he
  • was still undetermined what to do or whether to do anything, he turned
  • his head and lifted his eyes. No sooner had he done so than he uttered a
  • cry of disappointment and remained rooted to the spot. The box was
  • empty. During his slow advance Mr. Vandeleur and his daughter had
  • quietly slipped away.
  • A polite person in his rear reminded him that he was stopping the path;
  • and he moved on again with mechanical footsteps, and suffered the crowd
  • to carry him unresisting out of the theatre. Once in the street, the
  • pressure ceasing, he came to a halt, and the cool night air speedily
  • restored him to the possession of his faculties. He was surprised to
  • find that his head ached violently, and that he remembered not one word
  • of the two acts which he had witnessed. As the excitement wore away, it
  • was succeeded by an overmastering appetite for sleep, and he hailed a
  • cab and drove to his lodging in a state of extreme exhaustion and some
  • disgust of life.
  • Next morning he lay in wait for Miss Vandeleur on her road to market,
  • and by eight o'clock beheld her stepping down a lane. She was simply,
  • and even poorly, attired; but in the carriage of her head and body there
  • was something flexible and noble that would have lent distinction to the
  • meanest toilette. Even her basket, so aptly did she carry it, became her
  • like an ornament. It seemed to Francis, as he slipped into a doorway,
  • that the sunshine followed and the shadows fled before her as she
  • walked; and he was conscious, for the first time, of a bird singing in a
  • cage above the lane.
  • He suffered her to pass the doorway, and then, coming forth once more,
  • addressed her by name from behind.
  • "Miss Vandeleur," said he.
  • She turned and, when she saw who he was, became deadly pale.
  • "Pardon me," he continued; "Heaven knows I had no will to startle you;
  • and, indeed, there should be nothing startling in the presence of one
  • who wishes you so well as I do. And, believe me, I am acting rather from
  • necessity than choice. We have many things in common, and I am sadly in
  • the dark. There is much that I should be doing, and my hands are tied. I
  • do not know even what to feel, nor who are my friends and enemies."
  • She found her voice with an effort.
  • "I do not know who you are," she said.
  • "Ah, yes! Miss Vandeleur, you do," returned Francis; "better than I do
  • myself. Indeed, it is on that, above all, that I seek light. Tell me
  • what you know," he pleaded. "Tell me who I am, who you are, and how our
  • destinies are intermixed. Give me a little help with my life, Miss
  • Vandeleur--only a word or two to guide me, only the name of my father,
  • if you will--and I shall be grateful and content."
  • "I will not attempt to deceive you," she replied. "I know who you are,
  • but I am not at liberty to say."
  • "Tell me, at least, that you have forgiven my presumption, and I shall
  • wait with all the patience I have," he said. "If I am not to know, I
  • must do without. It is cruel, but I can bear more upon a push. Only do
  • not add to my troubles the thought that I have made an enemy of you."
  • "You did only what was natural," she said, "and I have nothing to
  • forgive you. Farewell."
  • "Is it to be _farewell_?" he asked.
  • "Nay, that I do not know myself," she answered. "Farewell for the
  • present, if you like."
  • And with these words she was gone.
  • Francis returned to his lodging in a state of considerable commotion of
  • mind. He made the most trifling progress with his Euclid for that
  • forenoon, and was more often at the window than at his improvised
  • writing-table. But beyond seeing the return of Miss Vandeleur, and the
  • meeting between her and her father, who was smoking a Trichinopoli cigar
  • in the verandah, there was nothing notable in the neighbourhood of the
  • house with the green blinds before the time of the mid-day meal. The
  • young man hastily allayed his appetite in a neighbouring restaurant, and
  • returned with the speed of unallayed curiosity to the house in the Rue
  • Lepic. A mounted servant was leading a saddle-horse to and fro before
  • the garden wall; and the porter of Francis's lodging was smoking a pipe
  • against the door-post, absorbed in contemplation of the livery and the
  • steeds.
  • "Look!" he cried to the young man, "what fine cattle! what an elegant
  • costume! They belong to the brother of M. de Vandeleur, who is now
  • within upon a visit. He is a great man, a general, in your country; and
  • you doubtless know him well by reputation."
  • "I confess," returned Francis, "that I have never heard of General
  • Vandeleur before. We have many officers of that grade, and my pursuits
  • have been exclusively civil."
  • "It is he," replied the porter, "who lost the great diamond of the
  • Indies. Of that at least you must have read often in the papers."
  • As soon as Francis could disengage himself from the porter he ran
  • upstairs and hurried to the window. Immediately below the clear space in
  • the chestnut leaves, the two gentlemen were seated in conversation over
  • a cigar. The General, a red, military-looking man, offered some traces
  • of a family resemblance to his brother; he had something of the same
  • features, something, although very little, of the same free and powerful
  • carriage; but he was older, smaller, and more common in air; his
  • likeness was that of a caricature, and he seemed altogether a poor and
  • debile being by the side of the Dictator.
  • They spoke in tones so low, leaning over the table with every appearance
  • of interest, that Francis could catch no more than a word or two on an
  • occasion. For as little as he heard, he was convinced that the
  • conversation turned upon himself and his own career; several times the
  • name of Scrymgeour reached his ear, for it was easy to distinguish and
  • still more frequently he fancied he could distinguish the name Francis.
  • At length the General, as if in a hot anger, broke forth into several
  • violent exclamations.
  • "Francis Vandeleur!" he cried, accentuating the last word. "Francis
  • Vandeleur, I tell you."
  • The Dictator made a movement of his whole body, half affirmative, half
  • contemptuous, but his answer was inaudible to the young man.
  • Was he the Francis Vandeleur in question? he wondered. Were they
  • discussing the name under which he was to be married? Or was the whole
  • affair a dream and a delusion of his own conceit and self-absorption?
  • After another interval of inaudible talk, dissension seemed again to
  • rise between the couple underneath the chestnut, and again the General
  • raised his voice angrily so as to be audible to Francis.
  • "My wife?" he cried. "I have done with my wife for good. I will not hear
  • her name. I am sick of her very name."
  • And he swore aloud and beat the table with his fist.
  • The Dictator appeared, by his gestures, to pacify him after a paternal
  • fashion; and a little after he conducted him to the garden gate. The
  • pair shook hands affectionately enough; but as soon as the door had
  • closed behind his visitor, John Vandeleur fell into a fit of laughter
  • which sounded unkindly and even devilish in the ears of Francis
  • Scrymgeour.
  • So another day had passed, and little more learnt. But the young man
  • remembered that the morrow was Tuesday, and promised himself some
  • curious discoveries; all might be well, or all might be ill; he was
  • sure, at least, to glean some curious information, and perhaps, by good
  • luck, get at the heart of the mystery which surrounded his father and
  • his family.
  • As the hour of the dinner drew near many preparations were made in the
  • garden of the house with the green blinds. That table, which was partly
  • visible to Francis through the chestnut leaves, was destined to serve as
  • a sideboard, and carried relays of plates and the materials for salad:
  • the other, which was almost entirely concealed, had been set apart for
  • the diners, and Francis could catch glimpses of white cloth and silver
  • plate.
  • Mr. Rolles arrived, punctual to the minute; he looked like a man upon
  • his guard, and spoke low and sparingly. The Dictator, on the other hand,
  • appeared to enjoy an unusual flow of spirits; his laugh, which was
  • youthful and pleasant to hear, sounded frequently from the garden; by
  • the modulation and the changes of his voice it was obvious that he told
  • many droll stories and imitated the accents of a variety of different
  • nations; and before he and the young clergyman had finished their
  • vermouth all feeling of distrust was at an end, and they were talking
  • together like a pair of school companions.
  • At length Miss Vandeleur made her appearance, carrying the soup-tureen.
  • Mr. Rolles ran to offer her assistance, which she laughingly refused;
  • and there was an interchange of pleasantries among the trio which seemed
  • to have reference to this primitive manner of waiting by one of the
  • company.
  • "One is more at one's ease," Mr. Vandeleur was heard to declare.
  • Next moment they were all three in their places, and Francis could see
  • as little as he could hear of what passed. But the dinner seemed to go
  • merrily; there was a perpetual babble of voices and sound of knives and
  • forks below the chestnut; and Francis, who had no more than a roll to
  • gnaw, was affected with envy by the comfort and deliberation of the
  • meal. The party lingered over one dish after another, and then over a
  • delicate dessert, with a bottle of cold wine, carefully uncorked by the
  • hand of the Dictator himself. As it began to grow dark a lamp was set
  • upon the table and a couple of candles on the sideboard; for the night
  • was perfectly pure, starry, and windless. Light overflowed besides from
  • the door and window in the verandah, so that the garden was fairly
  • illuminated and the leaves twinkled in the darkness.
  • For perhaps the tenth time Miss Vandeleur entered the house; and on
  • this occasion she returned with the coffee-tray, which she placed upon
  • the sideboard. At the same moment her father rose from his seat.
  • "The coffee is my province," Francis heard him say.
  • And the next moment he saw his supposed father standing by the sideboard
  • in the light of the candles.
  • Talking over his shoulder all the while, Mr. Vandeleur poured out two
  • cups of the brown stimulant, and then, by a rapid act of
  • prestidigitation, emptied the contents of a tiny phial into the smaller
  • of the two. The thing was so swiftly done that even Francis, who looked
  • straight into his face, had hardly time to perceive the movement before
  • it was completed. And next instant, and still laughing, Mr. Vandeleur
  • had turned again towards the table with a cup in either hand.
  • "Ere we have done with this," said he, "we may expect our famous
  • Hebrew."
  • It would be impossible to depict the confusion and distress of Francis
  • Scrymgeour. He saw foul play going forward before his eyes, and he felt
  • bound to interfere, but knew not how. It might be a mere pleasantry, and
  • then how should he look if he were to offer an unnecessary warning? Or
  • again, if it were serious, the criminal might be his own father, and
  • then how should he not lament if he were to bring ruin on the author of
  • his days? For the first time he became conscious of his own position as
  • a spy. To wait inactive at such a juncture and with such a conflict of
  • sentiments in his bosom was to suffer the most acute torture; he clung
  • to the bars of the shutters, his heart beat fast and with irregularity,
  • and he felt a strong sweat break forth upon his body.
  • Several minutes passed.
  • He seemed to perceive the conversation die away and grow less and less
  • in vivacity and volume; but still no sign of any alarming or even
  • notable event.
  • Suddenly the ring of a glass breaking was followed by a faint and dull
  • sound, as of a person who should have fallen forward with his head upon
  • the table. At the same moment a piercing scream rose from the garden.
  • "What have you done?" cried Miss Vandeleur. "He is dead!"
  • The Dictator replied in a violent whisper, so strong and sibilant that
  • every word was audible to the watcher at the window.
  • "Silence!" said Mr. Vandeleur; "the man is as well as I am. Take him by
  • the heels whilst I carry him by the shoulders."
  • Francis heard Miss Vandeleur break forth into a passion of tears.
  • "Do you hear what I say?" resumed the Dictator, in the same tones. "Or
  • do you wish to quarrel with me? I give you your choice, Miss Vandeleur."
  • There was another pause, and the Dictator spoke again.
  • "Take that man by the heels," he said. "I must have him brought into the
  • house. If I were a little younger, I could help myself against the
  • world. But now that years and dangers are upon me, and my hands are
  • weakened, I must turn to you for aid."
  • "It is a crime," replied the girl.
  • "I am your father," said Mr. Vandeleur.
  • This appeal seemed to produce its effect. A scuffling noise followed
  • upon the gravel, a chair was overset, and then Francis saw the father
  • and daughter stagger across the walk and disappear under the verandah,
  • bearing the inanimate body of Mr. Rolles embraced about the knees and
  • shoulders. The young clergyman was limp and pallid, and his head rolled
  • upon his shoulders at every step.
  • Was he alive or dead? Francis, in spite of the Dictator's declaration,
  • inclined to the latter view. A great crime had been committed; a great
  • calamity had fallen upon the inhabitants of the house with the green
  • blinds. To his surprise, Francis found all horror for the deed swallowed
  • up in sorrow for a girl and an old man whom he judged to be in the
  • height of peril. A tide of generous feeling swept into his heart; he,
  • too, would help his father against man and mankind, against fate and
  • justice; and casting open the shutters he closed his eyes and threw
  • himself with outstretched arms into the foliage of the chestnut.
  • Branch after branch slipped from his grasp or broke under his weight;
  • then he caught a stalwart bough under his armpit, and hung suspended for
  • a second; and then he let himself drop and fell heavily against the
  • table. A cry of alarm from the house warned him that his entrance had
  • not been effected unobserved. He recovered himself with a stagger, and
  • in three bounds crossed the intervening space and stood before the door
  • in the verandah.
  • In a small apartment, carpeted with matting and surrounded by glazed
  • cabinets full of rare and costly curios, Mr. Vandeleur was stooping over
  • the body of Mr. Rolles. He raised himself as Francis entered, and there
  • was an instantaneous passage of hands. It was the business of a second;
  • as fast as an eye can wink the thing was done; the young man had not the
  • time to be sure, but it seemed to him as if the Dictator had taken
  • something from the curate's breast, looked at it for the least fraction
  • of time as it lay in his hand, and then suddenly and swiftly passed it
  • to his daughter.
  • All this was over while Francis had still one foot upon the threshold,
  • and the other raised in air. The next instant he was on his knees to Mr.
  • Vandeleur.
  • "Father!" he cried. "Let me too help you. I will do what you wish and
  • ask no questions; I will obey you with my life; treat me as a son, and
  • you will find I have a son's devotion."
  • A deplorable explosion of oaths was the Dictator's first reply.
  • "Son and father?" he cried. "Father and son? What d----d unnatural
  • comedy is all this? How do you come in my garden? What do you want? And
  • who, in God's name, are you?"
  • Francis, with a stunned and shamefaced aspect, got upon his feet again,
  • and stood in silence.
  • Then a light seemed to break upon Mr. Vandeleur, and he laughed aloud.
  • "I see," cried he. "It is the Scrymgeour. Very well, Mr. Scrymgeour. Let
  • me tell you in a few words how you stand. You have entered my private
  • residence by force, or perhaps by fraud, but certainly with no
  • encouragement from me; and you come at a moment of some annoyance, a
  • guest having fainted at my table, to besiege me with your protestations.
  • You are no son of mine. You are my brother's bastard by a fishwife, if
  • you want to know. I regard you with an indifference closely bordering on
  • aversion; and from what I now see of your conduct, I judge your mind to
  • be exactly suitable to your exterior. I recommend you these mortifying
  • reflections for your leisure; and, in the meantime, let me beseech you
  • to rid us of your presence. If I were not occupied," added the Dictator,
  • with a terrifying oath, "I should give you the unholiest drubbing ere
  • you went!"
  • Francis listened in profound humiliation. He would have fled had it been
  • possible; but as he had no means of leaving the residence into which he
  • had so unfortunately penetrated, he could do no more than stand
  • foolishly where he was.
  • It was Miss Vandeleur who broke the silence.
  • "Father," she said, "you speak in anger. Mr. Scrymgeour may have been
  • mistaken, but he meant well and kindly."
  • "Thank you for speaking," returned the Dictator. "You remind me of some
  • other observations which I hold it a point of honour to make to Mr.
  • Scrymgeour. My brother," he continued, addressing the young man, "has
  • been foolish enough to give you an allowance; he was foolish enough and
  • presumptuous enough to propose a match between you and this young lady.
  • You were exhibited to her two nights ago; and I rejoice to tell you that
  • she rejected the idea with disgust. Let me add that I have considerable
  • influence with your father; and it shall not be my fault if you are not
  • beggared of your allowance and sent back to your scrivening ere the week
  • be out."
  • The tones of the old man's voice were, if possible, more wounding than
  • his language; Francis felt himself exposed to the most cruel, blighting,
  • and unbearable contempt; his head turned, and he covered his face with
  • his hands, uttering at the same time a tearless sob of agony. But Miss
  • Vandeleur once again interfered in his behalf.
  • "Mr Scrymgeour," she said, speaking in clear and even tones, "you must
  • not be concerned at my father's harsh expressions. I felt no disgust for
  • you; on the contrary, I asked an opportunity to make your better
  • acquaintance. As for what has passed to-night, believe me it has filled
  • my mind with both pity and esteem."
  • Just then Mr. Rolles made a convulsive movement with his arm, which
  • convinced Francis that he was only drugged, and was beginning to throw
  • off the influence of the opiate. Mr. Vandeleur stooped over him and
  • examined his face for an instant.
  • "Come, come!" cried he, raising his head. "Let there be an end of this.
  • And since you are so pleased with his conduct, Miss Vandeleur, take a
  • candle and show the bastard out."
  • The young lady hastened to obey.
  • "Thank you," said Francis, as soon as he was alone with her in the
  • garden. "I thank you from my soul. This has been the bitterest evening
  • of my life, but it will have always one pleasant recollection."
  • "I spoke as I felt," she replied, "and in justice to you. It made my
  • heart sorry that you should be so unkindly used."
  • By this time they had reached the garden gate; and Miss Vandeleur,
  • having set the candle on the ground, was already unfastening the bolts.
  • "One word more," said Francis. "This is not for the last time--I shall
  • see you again, shall I not?"
  • "Alas!" she answered. "You have heard my father. What can I do but
  • obey?"
  • "Tell me at least that it is not with your consent," returned Francis;
  • "tell me that you have no wish to see the last of me."
  • "Indeed," replied she, "I have none. You seem to me both brave and
  • honest."
  • "Then," said Francis, "give me a keepsake."
  • She paused for a moment, with her hand upon the key; for the various
  • bars and bolts were all undone, and there was nothing left but to open
  • the lock.
  • "If I agree," she said, "will you promise to do as I tell you from point
  • to point?"
  • "Can you ask?" replied Francis. "I would do so willingly on your bare
  • word."
  • She turned the key and threw open the door.
  • "Be it so," said she. "You do not know what you ask, but be it so.
  • Whatever you hear," she continued, "whatever happens, do not return to
  • this house; hurry fast until you reach the lighted and populous quarters
  • of the city; even there be upon your guard. You are in a greater danger
  • than you fancy. Promise me you will not so much as look at my keepsake
  • until you are in a place of safety."
  • "I promise," replied Francis.
  • She put something loosely wrapped in a handkerchief into the young man's
  • hand; and at the same time, with more strength than he could have
  • anticipated, she pushed him into the street.
  • "Now, run!" she cried.
  • He heard the door close behind him, and the noise of the bolts being
  • replaced.
  • "My faith," said he, "since I have promised!"
  • And he took to his heels down the lane that leads into the Rue Ravignan.
  • He was not fifty paces from the house with the green blinds when the
  • most diabolical outcry suddenly arose out of the stillness of the night.
  • Mechanically he stood still; another passenger followed his example; in
  • the neighbouring floors he saw people crowding to the windows; a
  • conflagration could not have produced more disturbance in this empty
  • quarter. And yet it seemed to be all the work of a single man, roaring
  • between grief and rage, like a lioness robbed of her whelps; and Francis
  • was surprised and alarmed to hear his own name shouted with English
  • imprecations to the wind.
  • His first movement was to return to the house; his second, as he
  • remembered Miss Vandeleur's advice, to continue his flight with greater
  • expedition than before; and he was in the act of turning to put his
  • thought in action, when the Dictator, bare-headed, bawling aloud, his
  • white hair blowing about his head, shot past him like a ball out of the
  • cannon's mouth, and went careering down the street.
  • "That was a close shave," thought Francis to himself. "What he wants
  • with me, and why he should be so disturbed, I cannot think; but he is
  • plainly not good company for the moment, and I cannot do better than
  • follow Miss Vandeleur's advice."
  • So saying, he turned to retrace his steps, thinking to double and
  • descend by the Rue Lepic itself while his pursuer should continue to
  • follow after him on the other line of street. The plan was ill-devised:
  • as a matter of fact, he should have taken his seat in the nearest café,
  • and waited there until the first heat of the pursuit was over. But
  • besides that Francis had no experience and little natural aptitude for
  • the small war of private life, he was so unconscious of any evil on his
  • part, that he saw nothing to fear beyond a disagreeable interview. And
  • to disagreeable interviews he felt he had already served his
  • apprenticeship that evening; nor could he suppose that Miss Vandeleur
  • had left anything unsaid. Indeed, the young man was sore both in body
  • and mind--the one was all bruised, the other was full of smarting
  • arrows; and he owned to himself that Mr. Vandeleur was master of a very
  • deadly tongue.
  • The thought of his bruises reminded him that he had not only come
  • without a hat, but that his clothes had considerably suffered in his
  • descent through the chestnut. At the first magazine he purchased a cheap
  • wideawake, and had the disorder of his toilet summarily repaired. The
  • keepsake, still rolled in the handkerchief, he thrust in the meantime
  • into his trousers pocket.
  • Not many steps beyond the shop he was conscious of a sudden shock, a
  • hand upon his throat, an infuriated face close to his own, and an open
  • mouth bawling curses in his ear. The Dictator, having found no trace of
  • his quarry, was returning by the other way. Francis was a stalwart young
  • fellow; but he was no match for his adversary, whether in strength or
  • skill; and after a few ineffectual struggles he resigned himself
  • entirely to his captor.
  • "What do you want with me?" said he.
  • "We will talk of that at home," returned the Dictator grimly.
  • And he continued to march the young man up hill in the direction of the
  • house with the green blinds.
  • But Francis, although he no longer struggled, was only waiting an
  • opportunity to make a bold push for freedom. With a sudden jerk he left
  • the collar of his coat in the hands of Mr. Vandeleur, and once more made
  • off at his best speed in the direction of the Boulevards.
  • The tables were now turned. If the Dictator was the stronger, Francis,
  • in the top of his youth, was the more fleet of foot, and he had soon
  • effected his escape among the crowds. Relieved for a moment, but with a
  • growing sentiment of alarm and wonder in his mind, he walked briskly
  • until he debouched upon the Place de l'Opéra lit up like day with
  • electric lamps.
  • "This, at least," thought he, "should satisfy Miss Vandeleur."
  • And turning to his right along the Boulevards, he entered the Café
  • Américain and ordered some beer. It was both late and early for the
  • majority of the frequenters of the establishment. Only two or three
  • persons, all men, were dotted here and there at separate tables in the
  • hall; and Francis was too much occupied by his own thoughts to observe
  • their presence.
  • He drew the handkerchief from his pocket. The object wrapped in it
  • proved to be a morocco case, clasped and ornamented in gilt, which
  • opened by means of a spring, and disclosed to the horrified young man a
  • diamond of monstrous bigness and extraordinary brilliancy. The
  • circumstance was so inexplicable, the value of the stone was plainly so
  • enormous, that Francis sat staring into the open casket without
  • movement, without conscious thought, like a man stricken suddenly with
  • idiocy.
  • A hand was laid upon his shoulder, lightly but firmly, and a quiet
  • voice, which yet had in it the ring of command, uttered these words in
  • his ear--
  • "Close the casket, and compose your face."
  • Looking up, he beheld a man, still young, of an urbane and tranquil
  • presence, and dressed with rich simplicity. This personage had risen
  • from a neighbouring table, and, bringing his glass with him, had taken a
  • seat beside Francis.
  • "Close the casket," repeated the stranger, "and put it quietly back into
  • your pocket, where I feel persuaded it should never have been. Try, if
  • you please, to throw off your bewildered air, and act as though I were
  • one of your acquaintances whom you had met by chance. So! Touch glasses
  • with me. That is better. I fear, sir, you must be an amateur."
  • And the stranger pronounced these last words with a smile of peculiar
  • meaning, leaned back in his seat and enjoyed a deep inhalation of
  • tobacco.
  • "For God's sake," said Francis, "tell me who you are and what this
  • means! Why I should obey your most unusual suggestions I am sure I know
  • not; but the truth is, I have fallen this evening into so many
  • perplexing adventures, and all I meet conduct themselves so strangely,
  • that I think I must either have gone mad or wandered into another
  • planet. Your face inspires me with confidence; you seem wise, good, and
  • experienced; tell me, for heaven's sake, why you accost me in so odd a
  • fashion."
  • "All in due time," replied the stranger. "But I have the first hand, and
  • you must begin by telling me how the Rajah's Diamond is in your
  • possession."
  • "The Rajah's Diamond!" echoed Francis.
  • "I would not speak so loud, if I were you," returned the other. "But
  • most certainly you have the Rajah's Diamond in your pocket. I have seen
  • and handled it a score of times in Sir Thomas Vandeleur's collection."
  • "Sir Thomas Vandeleur! The General! My father!" cried Francis.
  • "Your father?" repeated the stranger. "I was not aware the General had
  • any family."
  • "I am illegitimate, sir," replied Francis, with a flush.
  • The other bowed with gravity. It was a respectful bow, as of a man
  • silently apologising to his equal; and Francis felt relieved and
  • comforted, he scarce knew why. The society of this person did him good;
  • he seemed to touch firm ground; a strong feeling of respect grew up in
  • his bosom, and mechanically he removed his wideawake as though in the
  • presence of a superior.
  • "I perceive," said the stranger, "that your adventures have not at all
  • been peaceful. Your collar is torn, your face is scratched, you have a
  • cut upon your temple; you will, perhaps, pardon my curiosity when I ask
  • you to explain how you come by these injuries, and how you happen to
  • have stolen property to an enormous value in your pocket."
  • "I must differ from you!" returned Francis hotly. "I possess no stolen
  • property. And if you refer to the diamond, it was given to me not an
  • hour ago by Miss Vandeleur in the Rue Lepic."
  • "By Miss Vandeleur in the Rue Lepic!" repeated the other. "You interest
  • me more than you suppose. Pray continue."
  • "Heavens!" cried Francis.
  • His memory had made a sudden bound. He had seen Mr. Vandeleur take an
  • article from the breast of his drugged visitor, and that article, he was
  • now persuaded, was a morocco case.
  • "You have a light?" inquired the stranger.
  • "Listen," replied Francis. "I know not who you are, but I believe you to
  • be worthy of confidence and helpful; I find myself in strange waters; I
  • must have counsel and support, and since you invite me I shall tell you
  • all."
  • And he briefly recounted his experience since the day when he was
  • summoned from the bank by his lawyer.
  • "Yours is indeed a remarkable history," said the stranger, after the
  • young man had made an end of his narrative; "and your position is full
  • of difficulty and peril. Many would counsel you to seek out your father,
  • and give the diamond to him; but I have other views.--Waiter!" he cried.
  • The waiter drew near.
  • "Will you ask the manager to speak with me a moment?" said he; and
  • Francis observed once more, both in his tone and manner, the evidence of
  • a habit of command.
  • The waiter withdrew, and returned in a moment with the manager, who
  • bowed with obsequious respect.
  • "What," said he, "can I do to serve you?"
  • "Have the goodness," replied the stranger, indicating Francis, "to tell
  • this gentleman my name."
  • "You have the honour, sir," said the functionary, addressing young
  • Scrymgeour, "to occupy the same table with His Highness Prince Florizel
  • of Bohemia."
  • Francis rose with precipitation, and made a grateful reverence to the
  • Prince, who bade him resume his seat.
  • "I thank you," said Florizel, once more addressing the functionary; "I
  • am sorry to have deranged you for so small a matter."
  • And he dismissed him with a movement of his hand.
  • "And now," added the Prince, turning to Francis, "give me the diamond."
  • Without a word the casket was handed over.
  • "You have done right," said Florizel; "your sentiments have properly
  • inspired you, and you will live to be grateful for the misfortunes of
  • to-night. A man, Mr. Scrymgeour, may fall into a thousand perplexities,
  • but if his heart be upright and his intelligence unclouded, he will
  • issue from them all without dishonour. Let your mind be at rest; your
  • affairs are in my hand; and with the aid of Heaven I am strong enough to
  • bring them to a good end. Follow me, if you please, to my carriage."
  • So saying the Prince arose, and, having left a piece of gold for the
  • waiter, conducted the young man from the café and along the Boulevard to
  • where an unpretentious brougham and a couple of servants out of livery
  • awaited his arrival.
  • "This carriage," said he, "is at your disposal; collect your baggage as
  • rapidly as you can make it convenient, and my servants will conduct you
  • to a villa in the neighbourhood of Paris where you can wait in some
  • degree of comfort until I have had time to arrange your situation. You
  • will find there a pleasant garden, a library of good authors, a cook, a
  • cellar, and some good cigars, which I recommend to your attention.
  • Jérome," he added, turning to one of the servants, "you have heard what
  • I say; I leave Mr. Scrymgeour in your charge; you will, I know, be
  • careful of my friend."
  • Francis uttered some broken phrases of gratitude.
  • "It will be time enough to thank me," said the Prince, "when you are
  • acknowledged by your father and married to Miss Vandeleur."
  • And with that the Prince turned away and strolled leisurely in the
  • direction of Montmartre. He hailed the first passing cab, gave an
  • address, and a quarter of an hour afterwards, having discharged the
  • driver some distance lower, he was knocking at Mr. Vandeleur's garden
  • gate.
  • It was opened with singular precautions by the Dictator in person.
  • "Who are you?" he demanded.
  • "You must pardon me this late visit, Mr. Vandeleur," replied the Prince.
  • "Your Highness is always welcome," returned Mr. Vandeleur, stepping
  • back.
  • The Prince profited by the open space, and without waiting for his host
  • walked right into the house and opened the door of the _salon_. Two
  • people were seated there; one was Miss Vandeleur, who bore the marks of
  • weeping about her eyes, and was still shaken from time to time by a sob;
  • in the other the Prince recognised the young man who had consulted him
  • on literary matters about a month before, in a club smoking-room.
  • "Good-evening, Miss Vandeleur," said Florizel; "you look fatigued. Mr.
  • Rolles, I believe? I hope you have profited by the study of Gaboriau,
  • Mr. Rolles."
  • But the young clergyman's temper was too much embittered for speech; and
  • he contented himself with bowing stiffly, and continued to gnaw his lip.
  • "To what good wind," said Mr. Vandeleur, following his guest, "am I to
  • attribute the honour of your Highness's presence?"
  • "I am come on business," returned the Prince; "on business with you; as
  • soon as that is settled I shall request Mr. Rolles to accompany me for a
  • walk.--Mr. Rolles," he added, with severity, "let me remind you that I
  • have not yet sat down."
  • The clergyman sprang to his feet with an apology; whereupon the Prince
  • took an arm-chair beside the table, handed his hat to Mr. Vandeleur, his
  • cane to Mr. Rolles, and, leaving them standing and thus menially
  • employed upon his service, spoke as follows:--
  • "I have come here, as I said, upon business; but, had I come looking for
  • pleasure, I could not have been more displeased with my reception nor
  • more dissatisfied with my company. You, sir," addressing Mr. Rolles,
  • "you have treated your superior in station with discourtesy; you,
  • Vandeleur, receive me with a smile, but you know right well that your
  • hands are not yet cleansed from misconduct.--I do not desire to be
  • interrupted, sir," he added imperiously; "I am here to speak, and not to
  • listen; and I have to ask you to hear me with respect, and to obey
  • punctiliously. At the earliest possible date your daughter shall be
  • married at the Embassy to my friend, Francis Scrymgeour, your brother's
  • acknowledged son. You will oblige me by offering not less than ten
  • thousand pounds dowry. For yourself, I will indicate to you in writing a
  • mission of some importance in Siam which I destine to your care. And
  • now, sir, you will answer me in two words whether or not you agree to
  • these conditions."
  • "Your Highness will pardon me," said Mr. Vandeleur, "and permit me, with
  • all respect, to submit to him two queries?"
  • "The permission is granted," replied the Prince.
  • "Your Highness," resumed the Dictator, "has called Mr. Scrymgeour his
  • friend. Believe me, had I known he was thus honoured, I should have
  • treated him with proportional respect."
  • "You interrogate adroitly," said the Prince; "but it will not serve your
  • turn. You have my commands; if I had never seen that gentleman before
  • to-night, it would not render them less absolute."
  • "Your Highness interprets my meaning with his usual subtlety," returned
  • Vandeleur. "Once more: I have, unfortunately, put the police upon the
  • track of Mr. Scrymgeour on a charge of theft; am I to withdraw or to
  • uphold the accusation?"
  • "You will please yourself," replied Florizel. "The question is one
  • between your conscience and the laws of this land. Give me my hat; and
  • you, Mr. Rolles, give me my cane and follow me. Miss Vandeleur, I wish
  • you good-evening. I judge," he added to Vandeleur, "that your silence
  • means unqualified assent."
  • "If I can do no better," replied the old man, "I shall submit; but I
  • warn you openly it shall not be without a struggle."
  • "You are old," said the Prince; "but years are disgraceful to the
  • wicked. Your age is more unwise than the youth of others. Do not provoke
  • me, or you may find me harder than you dream. This is the first time
  • that I have fallen across your path in anger; take care that it be the
  • last."
  • With these words, motioning the clergyman to follow, Florizel left the
  • apartment and directed his steps towards the garden gate; and the
  • Dictator, following with a candle, gave them light, and once more undid
  • the elaborate fastenings with which he sought to protect himself from
  • intrusion.
  • "Your daughter is no longer present," said the Prince, turning on the
  • threshold. "Let me tell you that I understand your threats; and you have
  • only to lift your hand to bring upon yourself sudden and irremediable
  • ruin."
  • The Dictator made no reply; but as the Prince turned his back upon him
  • in the lamplight he made a gesture full of menace and insane fury; and
  • the next moment, slipping round a corner, he was running at full speed
  • for the nearest cab-stand.
  • _Here_ (says my Arabian) _the thread of events is finally diverted from_
  • THE HOUSE WITH THE GREEN BLINDS. _One more adventure, he adds, and we
  • have done with_ THE RAJAH'S DIAMOND. _That last link in the chain is
  • known among the inhabitants of Bagdad by the name of_
  • THE ADVENTURE OF PRINCE FLORIZEL AND A DETECTIVE
  • Prince Florizel walked with Mr. Rolles to the door of a small hotel
  • where the latter resided. They spoke much together, and the clergyman
  • was more than once affected to tears by the mingled severity and
  • tenderness of Florizel's reproaches.
  • "I have made ruin of my life," he said at last. "Help me; tell me what I
  • am to do; I have, alas! neither the virtues of a priest nor the
  • dexterity of a rogue."
  • "Now that you are humbled," said the Prince, "I command no longer; the
  • repentant have to do with God, and not with Princes. But if you will let
  • me advise you, go to Australia as a colonist, seek menial labour in the
  • open air, and try to forget that you have ever been a clergyman, or that
  • you ever set eyes on that accursed stone."
  • "Accurst indeed!" replied Mr. Rolles. "Where is it now? What further
  • hurt is it not working for mankind?"
  • "It will do no more evil," returned the Prince. "It is here in my
  • pocket. And this," he added kindly, "will show that I place some faith
  • in your penitence, young as it is."
  • "Suffer me to touch your hand," pleaded Mr. Rolles.
  • "No," replied Prince Florizel, "not yet."
  • The tone in which he uttered these last words was eloquent in the ears
  • of the young clergyman; and for some minutes after the Prince had turned
  • away he stood on the threshold following with his eyes the retreating
  • figure and invoking the blessing of Heaven upon a man so excellent in
  • counsel.
  • For several hours the Prince walked alone in unfrequented streets. His
  • mind was full of concern; what to do with the diamond, whether to return
  • it to its owner, whom he judged unworthy of this rare possession, or to
  • take some sweeping and courageous measure and put it out of the reach of
  • all mankind at once and for ever, was a problem too grave to be decided
  • in a moment. The manner in which it had come into his hands appeared
  • manifestly providential; and as he took out the jewel and looked at it
  • under the street lamps, its size and surprising brilliancy inclined him
  • more and more to think of it as of an unmixed and dangerous evil for the
  • world.
  • "God help me!" he thought; "if I look at it much oftener I shall begin
  • to grow covetous myself."
  • At last, though still uncertain in his mind, he turned his steps towards
  • the small but elegant mansion on the river-side which had belonged for
  • centuries to his royal family. The arms of Bohemia are deeply graved
  • over the door and upon the tall chimneys; passengers have a look into a
  • green court set with the most costly flowers; and a stork, the only one
  • in Paris, perches on the gable all day long and keeps a crowd before the
  • house. Grave servants are seen passing to and fro within; and from time
  • to time the great gate is thrown open and a carriage rolls below the
  • arch. For many reasons this residence was especially dear to the heart
  • of Prince Florizel; he never drew near to it without enjoying that
  • sentiment of home-coming so rare in the lives of the great; and on the
  • present evening he beheld its tall roof and mildly illuminated windows
  • with unfeigned relief and satisfaction.
  • As he was approaching the postern door by which he always entered when
  • alone, a man stepped forth from the shadow and presented himself with an
  • obeisance in the Prince's path.
  • "I have the honour of addressing Prince Florizel of Bohemia?" said he.
  • "Such is my title," replied the Prince. "What do you want with me?"
  • "I am," said the man, "a detective, and I have to present your Highness
  • with this billet from the Prefect of Police."
  • The Prince took the letter and glanced it through by the light of the
  • street lamp. It was highly apologetic, but requested him to follow the
  • bearer to the Prefecture without delay.
  • "In short," said Florizel, "I am arrested."
  • "Your Highness," replied the officer, "nothing, I am certain, could be
  • further from the intention of the Prefect. You will observe that he has
  • not granted a warrant. It is mere formality, or call it, if you prefer,
  • an obligation that your Highness lays on the authorities."
  • "At the same time," asked the Prince, "if I were to refuse to follow
  • you?"
  • "I will not conceal from your Highness that a considerable discretion
  • has been granted me," replied the detective, with a bow.
  • "Upon my word," cried Florizel, "your effrontery astounds me! Yourself,
  • as an agent, I must pardon; but your superiors shall dearly smart for
  • their misconduct. What, have you any idea, is the cause of this
  • impolitic and unconstitutional act? You will observe that I have as yet
  • neither refused nor consented, and much may depend on your prompt and
  • ingenuous answer. Let me remind you, officer, that this is an affair of
  • some gravity."
  • "Your Highness," said the detective humbly, "General Vandeleur and his
  • brother have had the incredible presumption to accuse you of theft. The
  • famous diamond, they declare, is in your hands. A word from you in
  • denial will most amply satisfy the Prefect; nay, I go further: if your
  • Highness would so far honour a subaltern as to declare his ignorance of
  • the matter even to myself, I should ask permission to retire upon the
  • spot."
  • Florizel, up to the last moment, had regarded his adventure in the light
  • of a trifle, only serious upon international considerations. At the name
  • of Vandeleur the horrible truth broke upon him in a moment; he was not
  • only arrested, but he was guilty. This was not only an annoying
  • incident--it was a peril to his honour. What was he to say? What was he
  • to do? The Rajah's Diamond was indeed an accursed stone; and it seemed
  • as if he were to be the last victim to its influence.
  • One thing was certain. He could not give the required assurance to the
  • detective. He must gain time.
  • His hesitation had not lasted a second.
  • "Be it so," said he, "let us walk together to the Prefecture."
  • The man once more bowed, and proceeded to follow Florizel at a
  • respectful distance in the rear.
  • "Approach," said the Prince. "I am in a humour to talk, and, if I
  • mistake not, now I look at you again, this is not the first time that we
  • have met."
  • "I count it an honour," replied the officer, "that your Highness should
  • recollect my face. It is eight years since I had the pleasure of an
  • interview."
  • "To remember faces," returned Florizel, "is as much a part of my
  • profession as it is of yours. Indeed, rightly looked upon, a Prince and
  • a detective serve in the same corps. We are both combatants against
  • crime; only mine is the more lucrative and yours the more dangerous
  • rank, and there is a sense in which both may be made equally honourable
  • to a good man. I had rather, strange as you may think it, be a detective
  • of character and parts than a weak and ignoble sovereign."
  • The officer was overwhelmed.
  • "Your Highness returns good for evil," said he. "To an act of
  • presumption he replies by the most amiable condescension."
  • "How do you know," replied Florizel, "that I am not seeking to corrupt
  • you?"
  • "Heaven preserve me from the temptation!" cried the detective.
  • "I applaud your answer," returned the Prince. "It is that of a wise and
  • honest man. The world is a great place, and stocked with wealth and
  • beauty, and there is no limit to the rewards that may be offered. Such
  • an one who would refuse a million of money may sell his honour for an
  • empire or the love of a woman; and I myself, who speak to you, have seen
  • occasions so tempting, provocations so irresistible to the strength of
  • human virtue, that I have been glad to tread in your steps and recommend
  • myself to the grace of God. It is thus, thanks to that modest and
  • becoming habit alone," he added, "that you and I can walk this town
  • together with untarnished hearts."
  • "I had always heard that you were brave," replied the officer, "but I
  • was not aware that you were wise and pious. You speak the truth, and
  • you speak it with an accent that moves me to the heart. This world is
  • indeed a place of trial."
  • "We are now," said Florizel, "in the middle of the bridge. Lean your
  • elbows on the parapet and look over. As the water rushing below, so the
  • passions and complications of life carry away the honesty of weak men.
  • Let me tell you a story."
  • "I receive your Highness's commands," replied the man.
  • And, imitating the Prince, he leaned against the parapet, and disposed
  • himself to listen. The city was already sunk in slumber; had it not been
  • for the infinity of lights and the outline of buildings on the starry
  • sky, they might have been alone beside some country river.
  • "An officer," began Prince Florizel, "a man of courage and conduct, who
  • had already risen by merit to an eminent rank, and won not only
  • admiration but respect, visited, in an unfortunate hour for his peace of
  • mind, the collections of an Indian Prince. Here he beheld a diamond so
  • extraordinary for size and beauty that from that instant he had only one
  • desire in life: honour, reputation, friendship, the love of country--he
  • was ready to sacrifice all for this lump of sparkling crystal. For three
  • years he served this semi-barbarian potentate as Jacob served Laban; he
  • falsified frontiers, he connived at murders, he unjustly condemned and
  • executed a brother-officer who had the misfortune to displease the Rajah
  • by some honest freedoms; lastly, at a time of great danger to his native
  • land, he betrayed a body of his fellow-soldiers, and suffered them to be
  • defeated and massacred by thousands. In the end he had amassed a
  • magnificent fortune, and brought home with him the coveted diamond.
  • "Years passed," continued the Prince, "and at length the diamond is
  • accidentally lost. It falls into the hands of a simple and laborious
  • youth, a student, a minister of God, just entering on a career of
  • usefulness and even distinction. Upon him also the spell is cast; he
  • deserts everything, his holy calling, his studies, and flees with the
  • gem into a foreign country. The officer has a brother, an astute,
  • daring, unscrupulous man, who learns the clergyman's secret. What does
  • he do? Tell his brother, inform the police? No; upon this man also the
  • Satanic charm has fallen; he must have the stone for himself. At the
  • risk of murder, he drugs the young priest and seizes the prey. And now,
  • by an accident which is not important to my moral, the jewel passes out
  • of his custody into that of another, who, terrified at what he sees,
  • gives it into the keeping of a man in high station and above reproach.
  • "The officer's name is Thomas Vandeleur," continued Florizel. "The stone
  • is called the Rajah's Diamond. And"--suddenly opening his hand--"you
  • behold it here before your eyes."
  • The officer started back with a cry.
  • "We have spoken of corruption," said the Prince. "To me this nugget of
  • bright crystal is as loathsome as though it were crawling with the worms
  • of death; it is as shocking as though it were compacted out of innocent
  • blood. I see it here in my hand, and I know it is shining with
  • hell-fire. I have told you but a hundredth part of its story; what
  • passed in former ages, to what crimes and treacheries it incited men of
  • yore, the imagination trembles to conceive; for years and years it has
  • faithfully served the powers of hell; enough, I say, of blood, enough of
  • disgrace, enough of broken lives and friendships; all things come to an
  • end, the evil like the good; pestilence as well as beautiful music; and
  • as for this diamond, God forgive me if I do wrong, but its empire ends
  • to-night."
  • The Prince made a sudden movement with his hand, and the jewel,
  • describing an arc of light, dived with a splash into the flowing river.
  • "Amen," said Florizel, with gravity. "I have slain a cockatrice!"
  • "God pardon me!" cried the detective. "What have you done? I am a ruined
  • man."
  • "I think," returned the Prince, with a smile, "that many well-to-do
  • people in this city might envy you your ruin."
  • "Alas! your Highness!" said the officer, "and you corrupt me after all?"
  • "It seems there was no help for it," replied Florizel.--"And now let us
  • go forward to the Prefecture."
  • Not long after, the marriage of Francis Scrymgeour and Miss Vandeleur
  • was celebrated in great privacy; and the Prince acted on that occasion
  • as groom's man. The two Vandeleurs surprised some rumour of what had
  • happened to the diamond; and their vast diving operations on the River
  • Seine are the wonder and amusement of the idle. It is true that through
  • some miscalculation they have chosen the wrong branch of the river. As
  • for the Prince, that sublime person, having now served his turn, may go,
  • along with the _Arabian Author_, topsy-turvy into space. But if the
  • reader insists on more specific information, I am happy to say that a
  • recent revolution hurled him from the throne of Bohemia, in consequence
  • of his continued absence and edifying neglect of public business; and
  • that his Highness now keeps a cigar store in Rupert Street, much
  • frequented by other foreign refugees. I go there from time to time to
  • smoke and have a chat, and find him as great a creature as in the days
  • of his prosperity; he has an Olympian air behind the counter; and
  • although a sedentary life is beginning to tell upon his waistcoat, he is
  • probably, take him for all in all, the handsomest tobacconist in London.
  • THE PAVILION ON THE LINKS
  • CHAPTER I
  • TELLS HOW I CAMPED IN GRADEN SEA-WOOD, AND BEHELD A LIGHT IN THE
  • PAVILION
  • I was a great solitary when I was young. I made it my pride to keep
  • aloof and suffice for my own entertainment; and I may say that I had
  • neither friends nor acquaintances until I met that friend who became my
  • wife and the mother of my children. With one man only was I on private
  • terms: this was R. Northmour, Esquire, of Graden-Easter, in Scotland. We
  • had met at college; and though there was not much liking between us, nor
  • even much intimacy, we were so nearly of a humour that we could
  • associate with ease to both. Misanthropes we believed ourselves to be;
  • but I have thought since that we were only sulky fellows. It was
  • scarcely a companionship, but a co-existence in unsociability.
  • Northmour's exceptional violence of temper made it no easy affair for
  • him to keep the peace with any one but me; and as he respected my silent
  • ways, and let me come and go as I pleased, I could tolerate his presence
  • without concern. I think we called each other friends.
  • When Northmour took his degree and I decided to leave the University
  • without one, he invited me on a long visit to Graden-Easter; and it was
  • thus that I first became acquainted with the scene of my adventures. The
  • mansion-house of Graden stood in a bleak stretch of country some three
  • miles from the shore of the German Ocean. It was as large as a barrack;
  • and as it had been built of a soft stone, liable to consume in the eager
  • air of the seaside, it was damp and draughty within and half-ruinous
  • without. It was impossible for two young men to lodge with comfort in
  • such a dwelling. But there stood in the northern part of the estate, in
  • a wilderness of links and blowing sand-hills, and between a plantation
  • and the sea, a small Pavilion or Belvidere, of modern design, which was
  • exactly suited to our wants; and in this hermitage, speaking little,
  • reading much, and rarely associating except at meals, Northmour and I
  • spent four tempestuous winter months. I might have stayed longer; but
  • one March night there sprang up between us a dispute, which rendered my
  • departure necessary. Northmour spoke hotly, I remember, and I suppose I
  • must have made some tart rejoinder. He leaped from his chair and
  • grappled me; I had to fight, without exaggeration, for my life; and it
  • was only with a great effort that I mastered him, for he was near as
  • strong in body as myself, and seemed filled with the devil. The next
  • morning we met on our usual terms; but I judged it more delicate to
  • withdraw; nor did he attempt to dissuade me.
  • It was nine years before I revisited the neighbourhood. I travelled at
  • that time with a tilt-cart, a tent, and a cooking-stove, tramping all
  • day beside the waggon, and at night, whenever it was possible, gipsying
  • in a cove of the hills, or by the side of a wood. I believe I visited in
  • this manner most of the wild and desolate regions both in England and
  • Scotland; and, as I had neither friends nor relations, I was troubled
  • with no correspondence, and had nothing in the nature of headquarters,
  • unless it was the office of my solicitors, from whom I drew my income
  • twice a year. It was a life in which I delighted; and I fully thought to
  • have grown old upon the march, and at last died in a ditch.
  • It was my whole business to find desolate corners, where I could camp
  • without the fear of interruption; and hence, being in another part of
  • the same shire, I bethought me suddenly of the Pavilion on the Links. No
  • thoroughfare passed within three miles of it. The nearest town, and that
  • was but a fisher village, was at a distance of six or seven. For ten
  • miles of length, and from a depth varying from three miles to half a
  • mile, this belt of barren country lay along the sea. The beach, which
  • was the natural approach, was full of quicksands. Indeed, I may say
  • there is hardly a better place of concealment in the United Kingdom. I
  • determined to pass a week in the Sea-Wood of Graden-Easter, and making a
  • long stage, reached it about sundown on a wild September day.
  • The country, I have said, was mixed sand-hill and links; _links_ being a
  • Scottish name for sand which has ceased drifting and become more or less
  • solidly covered with turf. The pavilion stood on an even space; a little
  • behind it, the wood began in a hedge of elders huddled together by the
  • wind; in front, a few tumbled sand-hills stood between it and the sea.
  • An outcropping of rock had formed a bastion for the sand, so that there
  • was here a promontory in the coast-line between two shallow bays; and
  • just beyond the tides, the rock again cropped out and formed an islet of
  • small dimensions but strikingly designed. The quicksands were of great
  • extent at low water, and had an infamous reputation in the country.
  • Close inshore, between the islet and the promontory, it was said they
  • would swallow a man in four minutes and a half; but there may have been
  • little ground for this precision. The district was alive with rabbits,
  • and haunted by gulls which made a continual piping about the pavilion.
  • On summer days the outlook was bright, and even gladsome; but at sundown
  • in September, with a high wind, and a heavy surf rolling in close along
  • the links, the place told of nothing but dead mariners and sea disaster.
  • A ship beating to windward on the horizon, and a huge truncheon of wreck
  • half-buried in the sands at my feet, completed the innuendo of the
  • scene.
  • The pavilion--it had been built by the last proprietor, Northmour's
  • uncle, a silly and prodigal virtuoso--presented little signs of age. It
  • was two stories in height, Italian in design, surrounded by a patch of
  • garden in which nothing had prospered but a few coarse flowers, and
  • looked, with its shuttered windows, not like a house that had been
  • deserted, but like one that had never been tenanted by man. Northmour
  • was plainly from home; whether, as usual, sulking in the cabin of his
  • yacht, or in one of his fitful and extravagant appearances in the world
  • of society, I had, of course, no means of guessing. The place had an air
  • of solitude that daunted even a solitary like myself; the wind cried in
  • the chimneys with a strange and wailing note; and it was with a sense of
  • escape, as if I were going indoors, that I turned away and, driving my
  • cart before me, entered the skirts of the wood.
  • The Sea-Wood of Graden had been planted to shelter the cultivated fields
  • behind, and check the encroachments of the blowing sand. As you advanced
  • into it from coastward, elders were succeeded by other hardy shrubs; but
  • the timber was all stunted and bushy; it led a life of conflict; the
  • trees were accustomed to swing there all night long in fierce winter
  • tempests; and even in early spring the leaves were already flying, and
  • autumn was beginning, in this exposed plantation. Inland the ground rose
  • into a little hill, which, along with the islet, served as a sailing
  • mark for seamen. When the hill was open of the islet to the north,
  • vessels must bear well to the eastward to clear Graden Ness and the
  • Graden Bullers. In the lower ground, a streamlet ran among the trees,
  • and, being dammed with dead leaves and clay of its own carrying, spread
  • out every here and there, and lay in stagnant pools. One or two ruined
  • cottages were dotted about the wood; and, according to Northmour, these
  • were ecclesiastical foundations, and in their time had sheltered pious
  • hermits.
  • I found a den, or small hollow, where there was a spring of pure water;
  • and there, clearing away the brambles, I pitched the tent, and made a
  • fire to cook my supper. My horse I picketed farther in the wood where
  • there was a patch of sward. The banks of the den not only concealed the
  • light of my fire, but sheltered me from the wind, which was cold as well
  • as high.
  • The life I was leading made me both hardy and frugal. I never drank but
  • water, and rarely ate anything more costly than oatmeal; and I required
  • so little sleep that, although I rose with the peep of day, I would
  • often lie long awake in the dark or starry watches of the night. Thus in
  • Graden Sea-Wood, although I fell thankfully asleep by eight in the
  • evening, I was awake again before eleven with a full possession of my
  • faculties, and no sense of drowsiness or fatigue. I rose and sat by the
  • fire, watching the trees and clouds tumultuously tossing and fleeing
  • overhead, and hearkening to the wind and the rollers along the shore;
  • till at length, growing weary of inaction, I quitted the den, and
  • strolled towards the borders of the wood. A young moon, buried in mist,
  • gave a faint illumination to my steps; and the light grew brighter as I
  • walked forth into the links. At the same moment, the wind, smelling salt
  • of the open ocean, and carrying particles of sand, struck me with its
  • full force, so that I had to bow my head.
  • When I raised it again to look about me, I was aware of a light in the
  • pavilion. It was not stationary; but passed from one window to another
  • as though some one were reviewing the different apartments with a lamp
  • or candle. I watched it for some seconds in great surprise. When I had
  • arrived in the afternoon the house had been plainly deserted; now it was
  • as plainly occupied. It was my first idea that a gang of thieves might
  • have broken in and be now ransacking Northmour's cupboards, which were
  • many and not ill supplied. But what should bring thieves to
  • Graden-Easter? And, again, all the shutters had been thrown open, and it
  • would have been more in the character of such gentry to close them. I
  • dismissed the notion, and fell back upon another: Northmour himself must
  • have arrived, and was now airing and inspecting the pavilion.
  • I have said that there was no real affection between this man and me;
  • but, had I loved him like a brother, I was then so much more in love
  • with solitude that I should none the less have shunned his company. As
  • it was, I turned and ran for it; and it was with genuine satisfaction
  • that I found myself safely back beside the fire. I had escaped an
  • acquaintance: I should have one more night in comfort. In the morning I
  • might either slip away before Northmour was abroad, or pay him as short
  • a visit as I chose.
  • But when morning came I thought the situation so diverting that I forgot
  • my shyness. Northmour was at my mercy; I arranged a good practical jest,
  • though I knew well that my neighbour was not the man to jest with in
  • security; and, chuckling beforehand over its success, took my place
  • among the elders at the edge of the wood, whence I could command the
  • door of the pavilion. The shutters were all once more closed, which I
  • remember thinking odd; and the house, with its white walls and green
  • venetians, looked spruce and habitable in the morning light. Hour after
  • hour passed, and still no sign of Northmour. I knew him for a sluggard
  • in the morning; but, as it drew on towards noon, I lost my patience. To
  • say the truth, I had promised myself to break my fast in the pavilion,
  • and hunger began to prick me sharply. It was a pity to let the
  • opportunity go by without some cause for mirth; but the grosser appetite
  • prevailed, and I relinquished my jest with regret, and sallied from the
  • wood.
  • The appearance of the house affected me, as I drew near, with
  • disquietude. It seemed unchanged since last evening; and I had expected
  • it, I scarce knew why, to wear some external signs of habitation. But
  • no: the windows were all closely shuttered, the chimneys breathed no
  • smoke, and the front door itself was closely padlocked. Northmour
  • therefore had entered by the back; this was the natural, and indeed the
  • necessary, conclusion; and you may judge of my surprise when, on turning
  • the house, I found the back-door similarly secured.
  • My mind at once reverted to the original theory of thieves; and I blamed
  • myself sharply for my last night's inaction. I examined all the windows
  • on the lower story, but none of them had been tampered with; I tried the
  • padlocks, but they were both secure. It thus became a problem how the
  • thieves, if thieves they were, had managed to enter the house. They must
  • have got, I reasoned, upon the roof of the outhouse where Northmour
  • used to keep his photographic battery; and from thence, either by the
  • window of the study or that of my old bedroom, completed their
  • burglarious entry.
  • I followed what I supposed was their example; and, getting on the roof,
  • tried the shutters of each room. Both were secure; but I was not to be
  • beaten; and, with a little force, one of them flew open, grazing, as it
  • did so, the back of my hand. I remember I put the wound to my mouth and
  • stood for perhaps half a minute licking it like a dog, and mechanically
  • gazing behind me over the waste links and the sea; and in that space of
  • time my eye made note of a large schooner yacht some miles to the
  • north-east. Then I threw up the window and climbed in.
  • I went over the house, and nothing can express my mystification. There
  • was no sign of disorder, but, on the contrary, the rooms were unusually
  • clean and pleasant. I found fires laid ready for lighting; three
  • bedrooms prepared with a luxury quite foreign to Northmour's habits, and
  • with water in the ewers and the beds turned down; a table set for three
  • in the dining-room; and an ample supply of cold meats, game, and
  • vegetables on the pantry shelves. There were guests expected, that was
  • plain; but why guests when Northmour hated society? And, above all, why
  • was the house thus stealthily prepared at dead of night? and why were
  • the shutters closed and the doors padlocked?
  • I effaced all traces of my visit, and came forth from the window feeling
  • sobered and concerned.
  • The schooner yacht was still in the same place; and it flashed for a
  • moment through my mind that this might be the _Red Earl_ bringing the
  • owner of the pavilion and his guests. But the vessel's head was set the
  • other way.
  • CHAPTER II
  • TELLS OF THE NOCTURNAL LANDING FROM THE YACHT
  • I returned to the den to cook myself a meal, of which I stood in great
  • need, as well as to care for my horse, which I had somewhat neglected in
  • the morning. From time to time I went down to the edge of the wood; but
  • there was no change in the pavilion, and not a human creature was seen
  • all day upon the links. The schooner in the offing was the one touch of
  • life within my range of vision. She, apparently with no set object,
  • stood off and on or lay to, hour after hour; but as the evening deepened
  • she drew steadily nearer. I became more convinced that she carried
  • Northmour and his friends, and that they would probably come ashore
  • after dark; not only because that was of a piece with the secrecy of the
  • preparations, but because the tide would not have flowed sufficiently
  • before eleven to cover Graden Floe and the other sea quags that
  • fortified the shore against invaders.
  • All day the wind had been going down, and the sea along with it; but
  • there was a return towards sunset of the heavy weather of the day
  • before. The night set in pitch dark. The wind came off the sea in
  • squalls, like the firing of a battery of cannon; now and then there was
  • a flaw of rain and the surf rolled heavier with the rising tide. I was
  • down at my observatory among the elders, when a light was run up to the
  • mast-head of the schooner, and showed she was closer in than when I had
  • last seen her by the dying daylight. I concluded that this must be a
  • signal to Northmour's associates on shore; and, stepping forth into the
  • links, looked around me for something in response.
  • A small footpath ran along the margin of the wood, and formed the most
  • direct communication between the pavilion and the mansion-house; and as
  • I cast my eyes to that side I saw a spark of light, not a quarter of a
  • mile away, and rapidly approaching. From its uneven course it appeared
  • to be the light of a lantern carried by a person who followed the
  • windings of the path, and was often staggered and taken aback by the
  • more violent squalls. I concealed myself once more among the elders, and
  • waited eagerly for the new-comer's advance. It proved to be a woman; and
  • as she passed within half a rod of my ambush I was able to recognise the
  • features. The deaf and silent old dame who had nursed Northmour in his
  • childhood was his associate in this underhand affair.
  • I followed her at a little distance, taking advantage of the innumerable
  • heights and hollows, concealed by the darkness, and favoured not only by
  • the nurse's deafness, but by the uproar of the wind and surf. She
  • entered the pavilion, and, going at once to the upper story, opened and
  • set a light in one of the windows that looked towards the sea.
  • Immediately afterwards the light at the schooner's mast-head was run
  • down and extinguished. Its purpose had been attained, and those on board
  • were sure that they were expected. The old woman resumed her
  • preparations; although the other shutters remained closed, I could see a
  • glimmer going to and fro about the house; and a gush of sparks from one
  • chimney after another soon told me that the fires were being kindled.
  • Northmour and his guests, I was now persuaded, would come ashore as soon
  • as there was water on the floe. It was a wild night for boat service;
  • and I felt some alarm mingle with my curiosity as I reflected on the
  • danger of the landing. My old acquaintance, it was true, was the most
  • eccentric of men; but the present eccentricity was both disquieting and
  • lugubrious to consider. A variety of feelings thus led me towards the
  • beach, where I lay flat on my face in a hollow within six feet of the
  • track that led to the pavilion. Thence, I should have the satisfaction
  • of recognising the arrivals, and, if they should prove to be
  • acquaintances, greeting them as soon as they had landed.
  • Some time before eleven, while the tide was still dangerously low, a
  • boat's lantern appeared close inshore; and, my attention being thus
  • awakened, I could perceive another still far to seaward, violently
  • tossed, and sometimes hidden by the billows. The weather, which was
  • getting dirtier as the night went on, and the perilous situation of the
  • yacht upon a lee-shore, had probably driven them to attempt a landing at
  • the earliest possible moment.
  • A little afterwards, four yachtsmen carrying a very heavy chest, and
  • guided by a fifth with a lantern, passed close in front of me as I lay,
  • and were admitted to the pavilion by the nurse. They returned to the
  • beach, and passed me a second time with another chest, larger but
  • apparently not so heavy as the first. A third time they made the
  • transit; and on this occasion one of the yachtsmen carried a leather
  • portmanteau, and the others a lady's trunk and carriage bag. My
  • curiosity was sharply excited. If a woman were among the guests of
  • Northmour, it would show a change in his habits and an apostasy from his
  • pet theories of life, well calculated to fill me with surprise. When he
  • and I dwelt there together, the pavilion had been a temple of misogyny.
  • And now, one of the detested sex was to be installed under its roof. I
  • remembered one or two particulars, a few notes of daintiness and almost
  • of coquetry which had struck me the day before as I surveyed the
  • preparations in the house; their purpose was now clear, and I thought
  • myself dull not to have perceived it from the first.
  • While I was thus reflecting, a second lantern drew near me from the
  • beach. It was carried by a yachtsman whom I had not yet seen, and who
  • was conducting two other persons to the pavilion. These two persons were
  • unquestionably the guests for whom the house was made ready; and,
  • straining eye and ear, I set myself to watch them as they passed. One
  • was an unusually tall man, in a travelling hat slouched over his eyes,
  • and a highland cape closely buttoned and turned up so as to conceal his
  • face. You could make out no more of him than that he was, as I have
  • said, unusually tall, and walked feebly with a heavy stoop. By his side,
  • and either clinging to him or giving him support--I could not make out
  • which--was a young, tall, and slender figure of a woman. She was
  • extremely pale; but in the light of the lantern her face was so marred
  • by strong and changing shadows that she might equally well have been as
  • ugly as sin or as beautiful as I afterwards found her to be.
  • When they were just abreast of me, the girl made some remark which was
  • drowned by the noise of the wind.
  • "Hush!" said her companion; and there was something in the tone with
  • which the word was uttered that thrilled and rather shook my spirits. It
  • seemed to breathe from a bosom labouring under the deadliest terror; I
  • have never heard another syllable so expressive; and I still hear it
  • again when I am feverish at night, and my mind runs upon old times. The
  • man turned towards the girl as he spoke; I had a glimpse of much red
  • beard and a nose which seemed to have been broken in youth; and his
  • light eyes seemed shining in his face with some strong and unpleasant
  • emotion.
  • But these two passed on and were admitted in their turn to the pavilion.
  • One by one, or in groups, the seamen returned to the beach. The wind
  • brought me the sound of a rough voice crying, "Shove off!" Then, after a
  • pause, another lantern drew near. It was Northmour alone.
  • My wife and I, a man and a woman, have often agreed to wonder how a
  • person could be, at the same time, so handsome and so repulsive as
  • Northmour. He had the appearance of a finished gentleman; his face bore
  • every mark of intelligence and courage; but you had only to look at him,
  • even in the most amiable moment, to see that he had the temper of a
  • slaver captain. I never knew a character that was both explosive and
  • revengeful to the same degree; he combined the vivacity of the South
  • with the sustained and deadly hatreds of the North; and both traits were
  • plainly written on his face, which was a sort of danger-signal. In
  • person he was tall, strong, and active; his hair and complexion very
  • dark; his features handsomely designed, but spoiled by a menacing
  • expression.
  • At that moment he was somewhat paler than by nature; he wore a heavy
  • frown; and his lips worked, and he looked sharply round him as he
  • walked, like a man besieged with apprehensions. And yet I thought he had
  • a look of triumph underlying all, as though he had already done much,
  • and was near the end of an achievement.
  • Partly from a scruple of delicacy--which I daresay came too late--partly
  • from the pleasure of startling an acquaintance, I desired to make my
  • presence known to him without delay.
  • I got suddenly to my feet, and stepped forward.
  • "Northmour!" said I.
  • I have never had so shocking a surprise in all my days. He leaped on me
  • without a word; something shone in his hand; and he struck for my heart
  • with a dagger. At the same moment I knocked him head over heels. Whether
  • it was my quickness, or his own uncertainty, I know not; but the blade
  • only grazed my shoulder, while the hilt and his fist struck me violently
  • on the mouth.
  • I fled, but not far. I had often and often observed the capabilities of
  • the sand-hills for protracted ambush or stealthy advances and retreats;
  • and, not ten yards from the scene of the scuffle, plumped down again
  • upon the grass. The lantern had fallen and gone out. But what was my
  • astonishment to see Northmour slip at a bound into the pavilion, and
  • hear him bar the door behind him with a clang of iron!
  • He had not pursued me. He had run away. Northmour, whom I knew for the
  • most implacable and daring of men, had run away! I could scarcely
  • believe my reason; and yet in this strange business, where all was
  • incredible, there was nothing to make a work about in an incredibility
  • more or less. For why was the pavilion secretly prepared? Why had
  • Northmour landed with his guests at dead of night, in half a gale of
  • wind, and with the floe scarce covered? Why had he sought to kill me?
  • Had he not recognised my voice? I wondered. And, above all, how had he
  • come to have a dagger ready in his hand? A dagger, or even a sharp
  • knife, seemed out of keeping with the age in which we lived; and a
  • gentleman landing from his yacht on the shore of his own estate, even
  • although it was at night and with some mysterious circumstances, does
  • not usually, as a matter of fact, walk thus prepared for deadly
  • onslaught. The more I reflected, the further I felt at sea. I
  • recapitulated the elements of mystery, counting them on my fingers: the
  • pavilion secretly prepared for guests; the guests landed at the risk of
  • their lives and to the imminent peril of the yacht; the guests, or at
  • least one of them, in undisguised and seemingly causeless terror;
  • Northmour with a naked weapon; Northmour stabbing his most intimate
  • acquaintance at a word; last, and not least strange, Northmour fleeing
  • from the man whom he had sought to murder, and barricading himself, like
  • a hunted creature, behind the door of the pavilion. Here were at least
  • six separate causes for extreme surprise; each part and parcel with the
  • others, and forming all together one consistent story. I felt almost
  • ashamed to believe my own senses.
  • As I thus stood, transfixed with wonder, I began to grow painfully
  • conscious of the injuries I had received in the scuffle; skulked round
  • among the sand-hills; and, by a devious path, regained the shelter of
  • the wood. On the way, the old nurse passed again within several yards of
  • me, still carrying her lantern, on the return journey to the
  • mansion-house of Graden. This made a seventh suspicious feature in the
  • case. Northmour and his guests, it appeared, were to cook and do the
  • cleaning for themselves, while the old woman continued to inhabit the
  • big empty barrack among the policies. There must surely be great cause
  • for secrecy when so many inconveniences were confronted to preserve it.
  • So thinking, I made my way to the den. For greater security I trod out
  • the embers of the fire, and lit my lantern to examine the wound upon my
  • shoulder. It was a trifling hurt, although it bled somewhat freely, and
  • I dressed it as well as I could (for its position made it difficult to
  • reach) with some rag and cold water from the spring. While I was thus
  • busied I mentally declared war against Northmour and his mystery. I am
  • not an angry man by nature, and I believe there was more curiosity than
  • resentment in my heart. But war I certainly declared; and, by way of
  • preparation, I got out my revolver, and, having drawn the charges,
  • cleaned and reloaded it with scrupulous care. Next I became preoccupied
  • about my horse. It might break loose, or fall to neighing, and so betray
  • my camp in the Sea-Wood. I determined to rid myself of its
  • neighbourhood; and long before dawn I was leading it over the links in
  • the direction of the fisher village.
  • CHAPTER III
  • TELLS HOW I BECAME ACQUAINTED WITH MY WIFE
  • For two days I skulked round the pavilion, profiting by the uneven
  • surface of the links. I became an adept in the necessary tactics. These
  • low hillocks and shallow dells, running one into another, became a kind
  • of cloak of darkness for my enthralling, but perhaps dishonourable,
  • pursuit. Yet, in spite of this advantage, I could learn but little of
  • Northmour or his guests.
  • Fresh provisions were brought under cover of darkness by the old woman
  • from the mansion-house. Northmour and the young lady, sometimes
  • together, but more often singly, would walk for an hour or two at a time
  • on the beach beside the quicksand. I could not but conclude that this
  • promenade was chosen with an eye to secrecy; for the spot was open only
  • to the seaward. But it suited me not less excellently; the highest and
  • most accidented of the sand-hills immediately adjoined; and from these,
  • lying flat in a hollow, I could overlook Northmour or the young lady as
  • they walked.
  • The tall man seemed to have disappeared. Not only did he never cross the
  • threshold, but he never so much as showed face at a window; or, at
  • least, not so far as I could see; for I dared not creep forward beyond a
  • certain distance in the day, since the upper floor commanded the bottoms
  • of the links; and at night, when I could venture farther, the lower
  • windows were barricaded as if to stand a siege. Sometimes I thought the
  • tall man must be confined to bed, for I remembered the feebleness of his
  • gait; and sometimes I thought he must have gone clear away, and that
  • Northmour and the young lady remained alone together in the pavilion.
  • The idea, even then, displeased me.
  • Whether or not this pair were man and wife, I had seen abundant reason
  • to doubt the friendliness of their relation. Although I could hear
  • nothing of what they said, and rarely so much as glean a decided
  • expression on the face of either, there was a distance, almost a
  • stiffness, in their bearing which showed them to be either unfamiliar or
  • at enmity. The girl walked faster when she was with Northmour than when
  • she was alone; and I conceived that any inclination between a man and a
  • woman would rather delay than accelerate the step. Moreover, she kept a
  • good yard free of him, and trailed her umbrella, as if it were a
  • barrier, on the side between them. Northmour kept sidling closer; and,
  • as the girl retired from his advance, their course lay at a sort of
  • diagonal across the beach, and would have landed them in the surf had it
  • been long enough continued. But when this was imminent, the girl would
  • unostentatiously change sides and put Northmour between her and the sea.
  • I watched these manoeuvres, for my part, with high enjoyment and
  • approval, and chuckled to myself at every move.
  • On the morning of the third day she walked alone for some time, and I
  • perceived, to my great concern, that she was more than once in tears.
  • You will see that my heart was already interested more than I supposed.
  • She had a firm yet airy motion of the body, and carried her head with
  • unimaginable grace; every step was a thing to look at, and she seemed in
  • my eyes to breathe sweetness and distinction.
  • The day was so agreeable, being calm and sunshiny, with a tranquil sea,
  • and yet with a healthful piquancy and vigour in the air, that, contrary
  • to custom, she was tempted forth a second time to walk. On this occasion
  • she was accompanied by Northmour, and they had been but a short while on
  • the beach, when I saw him take forcible possession of her hand. She
  • struggled, and uttered a cry that was almost a scream. I sprang to my
  • feet, unmindful of my strange position; but, ere I had taken a step, I
  • saw Northmour bareheaded and bowing very low, as if to apologise; and
  • dropped again at once into my ambush. A few words were interchanged; and
  • then, with another bow, he left the beach to return to the pavilion. He
  • passed not far from me, and I could see him, flushed and lowering, and
  • cutting savagely with his cane among the grass. It was not without
  • satisfaction that I recognised my own handiwork in a great cut under his
  • right eye, and a considerable discoloration round the socket.
  • For some time the girl remained where he had left her, looking out past
  • the islet and over the bright sea. Then with a start, as one who throws
  • off preoccupation and puts energy again upon its mettle, she broke into
  • a rapid and decisive walk. She also was much incensed by what had
  • passed. She had forgotten where she was. And I beheld her walk straight
  • into the borders of the quicksand where it is more abrupt and dangerous.
  • Two or three steps farther and her life would have been in serious
  • jeopardy, when I slid down the face of the sand-hill, which is there
  • precipitous, and, running half-way forward, called to her to stop.
  • She did so, and turned round. There was not a tremor of fear in her
  • behaviour, and she marched directly up to me like a queen. I was
  • barefoot, and clad like a common sailor, save for an Egyptian scarf
  • round my waist; and she probably took me at first for some one from the
  • fisher village, straying after bait. As for her, when I thus saw her
  • face to face, her eyes set steadily and imperiously upon mine, I was
  • filled with admiration and astonishment, and thought her even more
  • beautiful than I had looked to find her. Nor could I think enough of one
  • who, acting with so much boldness, yet preserved a maidenly air that was
  • both quaint and engaging; for my wife kept an old-fashioned precision of
  • manner through all her admirable life--an excellent thing in woman,
  • since it sets another value on her sweet familiarities.
  • "What does this mean?" she asked.
  • "You were walking," I told her, "directly into Graden Floe."
  • "You do not belong to these parts," she said again. "You speak like an
  • educated man."
  • "I believe I have right to that name," said I, "although in this
  • disguise."
  • But her woman's eye had already detected the sash.
  • "Oh!" she said; "your sash betrays you."
  • "You have said the word _betray_," I resumed. "May I ask you not to
  • betray me? I was obliged to disclose myself in your interest; but if
  • Northmour learned my presence it might be worse than disagreeable for
  • me."
  • "Do you know," she asked, "to whom you are speaking?"
  • "Not to Mr. Northmour's wife?" I asked, by way of answer.
  • She shook her head. All this while she was studying my face with an
  • embarrassing intentness. Then she broke out--
  • "You have an honest face. Be honest like your face, sir, and tell me
  • what you want and what you are afraid of. Do you think I could hurt you?
  • I believe you have far more power to injure me! And yet you do not look
  • unkind. What do you mean--you, a gentleman--by skulking like a spy about
  • this desolate place? Tell me," she said, "who is it you hate?"
  • "I hate no one," I answered; "and I fear no one face to face. My name
  • is Cassilis--Frank Cassilis. I lead the life of a vagabond for my own
  • good pleasure. I am one of Northmour's oldest friends; and three nights
  • ago, when I addressed him on these links, he stabbed me in the shoulder
  • with a knife."
  • "It was you!" she said.
  • "Why he did so," I continued, disregarding the interruption, "is more
  • than I can guess, and more than I care to know. I have not many friends,
  • nor am I very susceptible to friendship; but no man shall drive me from
  • a place by terror. I had camped in Graden Sea-Wood ere he came; I camp
  • in it still. If you think I mean harm to you or yours, madam, the remedy
  • is in your hand. Tell him that my camp is in the Hemlock Den, and
  • to-night he can stab me in safety while I sleep."
  • With this I doffed my cap to her, and scrambled up once more among the
  • sand-hills. I do not know why, but I felt a prodigious sense of
  • injustice, and felt like a hero and a martyr; while, as a matter of
  • fact, I had not a word to say in my defence, nor so much as one
  • plausible reason to offer for my conduct. I had stayed at Graden out of
  • a curiosity natural enough, but undignified; and though there was
  • another motive growing in along with the first, it was not one which, at
  • that period, I could have properly explained to the lady of my heart.
  • Certainly, that night, I thought of no one else; and, though her whole
  • conduct and position seemed suspicious, I could not find it in my heart
  • to entertain a doubt of her integrity. I could have staked my life that
  • she was clear of blame, and, though all was dark at the present, that
  • the explanation of the mystery would show her part in these events to be
  • both right and needful. It was true, let me cudgel my imagination as I
  • pleased, that I could invent no theory of her relations to Northmour;
  • but I felt none the less sure of my conclusion because it was founded on
  • instinct in place of reason, and, as I may say, went to sleep that night
  • with the thought of her under my pillow.
  • Next day she came out about the same hour alone, and, as soon as the
  • sand-hills concealed her from the pavilion, drew nearer to the edge, and
  • called me by name in guarded tones. I was astonished to observe that she
  • was deadly pale, and seemingly under the influence of strong emotion.
  • "Mr. Cassilis!" she cried; "Mr. Cassilis!"
  • I appeared at once, and leaped down upon the beach. A remarkable air of
  • relief overspread her countenance as soon as she saw me.
  • "Oh!" she cried, with a hoarse sound, like one whose bosom has been
  • lightened of a weight. And then, "Thank God you are still safe!" she
  • added; "I knew, if you were, you would be here." (Was not this strange?
  • So swiftly and wisely does Nature prepare our hearts for these great
  • life-long intimacies, that both my wife and I had been given a
  • presentiment on this the second day of our acquaintance. I had even then
  • hoped that she would seek me; she had felt sure that she would find me.)
  • "Do not," she went on swiftly, "do not stay in this place. Promise me
  • that you will sleep no longer in that wood. You do not know how I
  • suffer; all last night I could not sleep for thinking of your peril."
  • "Peril?" I repeated. "Peril from whom? From Northmour?"
  • "Not so," she said. "Did you think I would tell him after what you
  • said?"
  • "Not from Northmour?" I repeated. "Then how? From whom? I see none to be
  • afraid of."
  • "You must not ask me," was her reply, "for I am not free to tell you.
  • Only believe me, and go hence--believe me, and go away quickly, quickly,
  • for your life!"
  • An appeal to his alarm is never a good plan to rid oneself of a spirited
  • young man. My obstinacy was but increased by what she said, and I made
  • it a point of honour to remain. And her solicitude for my safety still
  • more confirmed me in the resolve.
  • "You must not think me inquisitive, madam," I replied; "but, if Graden
  • is so dangerous a place, you yourself perhaps remain here at some risk."
  • She only looked at me reproachfully.
  • "You and your father----" I resumed; but she interrupted me almost with
  • a gasp.
  • "My father! How do you know that?" she cried.
  • "I saw you together when you landed," was my answer; and I do not know
  • why, but it seemed satisfactory to both of us, as indeed it was the
  • truth. "But," I continued, "you need have no fear from me. I see you
  • have some reason to be secret, and, you may believe me, your secret is
  • as safe with me as if I were in Graden Floe. I have scarce spoken to any
  • one for years; my horse is my only companion, and even he, poor beast,
  • is not beside me. You see, then, you may count on me for silence. So
  • tell me the truth, my dear young lady, are you not in danger?"
  • "Mr. Northmour says you are an honourable man," she returned, "and I
  • believe it when I see you. I will tell you so much; you are right; we
  • are in dreadful, dreadful danger, and you share it by remaining where
  • you are."
  • "Ah!" said I; "you have heard of me from Northmour? And he gives me a
  • good character?"
  • "I asked him about you last night," was her reply. "I pretended," she
  • hesitated, "I pretended to have met you long ago, and spoken to you of
  • him. It was not true; but I could not help myself without betraying you,
  • and you had put me in a difficulty. He praised you highly."
  • "And--you may permit me one question--does this danger come from
  • Northmour?" I asked.
  • "From Mr. Northmour?" she cried. "Oh, no; he stays with us to share it."
  • "While you propose that I should run away?" I said. "You do not rate me
  • very high."
  • "Why should you stay?" she asked. "You are no friend of ours."
  • I know not what came over me, for I had not been conscious of a similar
  • weakness since I was a child, but I was so mortified by this retort
  • that my eyes pricked and filled with tears, as I continued to gaze upon
  • her face.
  • "No, no," she said, in a changed voice; "I did not mean the words
  • unkindly."
  • "It was I who offended," I said; and I held out my hand with a look of
  • appeal that somehow touched her, for she gave me hers at once, and even
  • eagerly. I held it for a while in mine, and gazed into her eyes. It was
  • she who first tore her hand away, and, forgetting all about her request
  • and the promise she had sought to extort, ran at the top of her speed,
  • and without turning, till she was out of sight. And then I knew that I
  • loved her, and thought in my glad heart that she--she herself--was not
  • indifferent to my suit. Many a time she has denied it in after days, but
  • it was with a smiling and not a serious denial. For my part, I am sure
  • our hands would not have lain so closely in each other if she had not
  • begun to melt to me already. And, when all is said, it is no great
  • contention, since, by her own avowal, she began to love me on the
  • morrow.
  • And yet on the morrow very little took place. She came and called me
  • down as on the day before, upbraided me for lingering at Graden, and,
  • when she found I was still obdurate, began to ask me more particularly
  • as to my arrival. I told her by what series of accidents I had come to
  • witness their disembarkation, and how I had determined to remain, partly
  • from the interest which had been wakened in me by Northmour's guests,
  • and partly because of his own murderous attack. As to the former, I fear
  • I was disingenuous, and led her to regard herself as having been an
  • attraction to me from the first moment that I saw her on the links. It
  • relieves my heart to make this confession even now, when my wife is with
  • God, and already knows all things, and the honesty of my purpose even in
  • this; for while she lived, although it often pricked my conscience, I
  • had never the hardihood to undeceive her. Even a little secret, in such
  • a married life as ours, is like the rose-leaf which kept the Princess
  • from her sleep.
  • From this the talk branched into other subjects, and I told her much
  • about my lonely and wandering existence; she, for her part, giving ear
  • and saying little. Although we spoke very naturally, and latterly on
  • topics that might seem indifferent, we were both sweetly agitated. Too
  • soon it was time for her to go; and we separated, as if by mutual
  • consent, without shaking hands, for both knew that, between us, it was
  • no idle ceremony.
  • The next, and that was the fourth day of our acquaintance, we met in the
  • same spot, but early in the morning, with much familiarity and yet much
  • timidity on either side. When she had once more spoken about my
  • danger--and that, I understood, was her excuse for coming--I, who had
  • prepared a great deal of talk during the night, began to tell her how
  • highly I valued her kind interest, and how no one had ever cared to hear
  • about my life, nor had I ever cared to relate it, before yesterday.
  • Suddenly she interrupted me, saying with vehemence--
  • "And yet, if you knew who I was, you would not so much as speak to me!"
  • I told her such a thought was madness, and, little as we had met, I
  • counted her already a dear friend; but my protestations seemed only to
  • make her more desperate.
  • "My father is in hiding!" she cried.
  • "My dear," I said, forgetting for the first time to add "young lady,"
  • "what do I care? If he were in hiding twenty times over, would it make
  • one thought of change in you?"
  • "Ah, but the cause!" she cried, "the cause! It is----" she faltered for
  • a second--"it is disgraceful to us."
  • CHAPTER IV
  • TELLS IN WHAT A STARTLING MANNER I LEARNED THAT I WAS NOT ALONE IN
  • GRADEN SEA-WOOD
  • This was my wife's story, as I drew it from her among tears and sobs.
  • Her name was Clara Huddlestone: it sounded very beautiful in my ears;
  • but not so beautiful as that other name of Clara Cassilis, which she
  • wore during the longer, and I thank God the happier, portion of her
  • life. Her father, Bernard Huddlestone, had been a private banker in a
  • very large way of business. Many years before, his affairs becoming
  • disordered, he had been led to try dangerous, and at last criminal,
  • expedients to retrieve himself from ruin. All was in vain; he became
  • more and more cruelly involved, and found his honour lost at the same
  • moment with his fortune. About this period Northmour had been courting
  • his daughter with great assiduity, though with small encouragement; and
  • to him, knowing him thus disposed in his favour, Bernard Huddlestone
  • turned for help in his extremity. It was not merely ruin and dishonour,
  • nor merely a legal condemnation, that the unhappy man had brought upon
  • his head. It seems he could have gone to prison with a light heart. What
  • he feared, what kept him awake at night or recalled him from slumber
  • into frenzy, was some secret, sudden, and unlawful attempt upon his
  • life. Hence he desired to bury his existence and escape to one of the
  • islands in the South Pacific, and it was in Northmour's yacht, the _Red
  • Earl_, that he designed to go. The yacht picked them up clandestinely
  • upon the coast of Wales, and had once more deposited them at Graden,
  • till she could be refitted and provisioned for the longer voyage. Nor
  • could Clara doubt that her hand had been stipulated as the price of
  • passage. For, although Northmour was neither unkind nor even
  • discourteous, he had shown himself in several instances somewhat
  • over-bold in speech and manner.
  • I listened, I need not say, with fixed attention, and put many questions
  • as to the more mysterious part. It was in vain. She had no clear idea of
  • what the blow was, nor of how it was expected to fall. Her father's
  • alarm was unfeigned and physically prostrating, and he had thought more
  • than once of making an unconditional surrender to the police. But the
  • scheme was finally abandoned, for he was convinced that not even the
  • strength of our English prisons could shelter him from his pursuers. He
  • had had many affairs with Italy, and with Italians resident in London,
  • in the later years of his business, and these last, as Clara fancied,
  • were somehow connected with the doom that threatened him. He had shown
  • great terror at the presence of an Italian seaman on board the _Red
  • Earl_, and had bitterly and repeatedly accused Northmour in consequence.
  • The latter had protested that Beppo (that was the seaman's name) was a
  • capital fellow, and could be trusted to the death; but Mr. Huddlestone
  • had continued ever since to declare that all was lost, that it was only
  • a question of days, and that Beppo would be the ruin of him yet.
  • I regarded the whole story as the hallucination of a mind shaken by
  • calamity. He had suffered heavy loss by his Italian transactions; and
  • hence the sight of an Italian was hateful to him, and the principal part
  • in his nightmare would naturally enough be played by one of that nation.
  • "What your father wants," I said, "is a good doctor and some calming
  • medicine."
  • "But Mr. Northmour?" objected your mother. "He is untroubled by losses,
  • and yet he shares in this terror."
  • I could not help laughing at what I considered her simplicity.
  • "My dear," said I, "you have told me yourself what reward he has to look
  • for. All is fair in love, you must remember; and if Northmour foments
  • your father's terrors, it is not at all because he is afraid of any
  • Italian man, but simply because he is infatuated with a charming
  • English woman."
  • She reminded me of his attack upon myself on the night of the
  • disembarkation, and this I was unable to explain. In short, and from one
  • thing to another, it was agreed between us that I should set out at once
  • for the fisher village, Graden-Wester, as it is called, look up all the
  • newspapers I could find, and see for myself if there seemed any basis of
  • fact for these continued alarms. The next morning, at the same hour and
  • place, I was to make my report to Clara. She said no more on that
  • occasion about my departure; nor, indeed, did she make it a secret that
  • she clung to the thought of my proximity as something helpful and
  • pleasant; and, for my part, I could not have left her, if she had gone
  • upon her knees to ask it.
  • I reached Graden-Wester before ten in the forenoon; for in those days I
  • was an excellent pedestrian, and the distance, as I think I have said,
  • was little over seven miles; fine walking all the way upon the springy
  • turf. The village is one of the bleakest on that coast, which is saying
  • much: there is a church in a hollow; a miserable haven in the rocks,
  • where many boats have been lost as they returned from fishing; two or
  • three score of stone houses arranged along the beach and in two streets,
  • one leading from the harbour, and another striking out from it at right
  • angles; and, at the corner of these two, a very dark and cheerless
  • tavern, by way of principal hotel.
  • I had dressed myself somewhat more suitably to my station in life, and
  • at once called upon the minister in his little manse beside the
  • graveyard. He knew me, although it was more than nine years since we had
  • met; and when I told him that I had been long upon a walking tour, and
  • was behind with the news, readily lent me an armful of newspapers,
  • dating from a month back to the day before. With these I sought the
  • tavern, and, ordering some breakfast, sat down to study the "Huddlestone
  • Failure."
  • It had been, it appeared, a very flagrant case. Thousands of persons
  • were reduced to poverty; and one in particular had blown out his brains
  • as soon as payment was suspended. It was strange to myself that, while I
  • read these details, I continued rather to sympathise with Mr.
  • Huddlestone than with his victims; so complete already was the empire of
  • my love for my wife. A price was naturally set upon the banker's head;
  • and, as the case was inexcusable and the public indignation thoroughly
  • aroused, the unusual figure of £750 was offered for his capture. He was
  • reported to have large sums of money in his possession. One day he had
  • been heard of in Spain; the next, there was sure intelligence that he
  • was still lurking between Manchester and Liverpool, or along the border
  • of Wales; and the day after, a telegram would announce his arrival in
  • Cuba or Yucatan. But in all this there was no word of an Italian, nor
  • any sign of mystery.
  • In the very last paper, however, there was one item not so clear. The
  • accountants who were charged to verify the failure had, it seemed, come
  • upon the traces of a very large number of thousands, which figured for
  • some time in the transactions of the house of Huddlestone; but which
  • came from nowhere, and disappeared in the same mysterious fashion. It
  • was only once referred to by name, and then under the initials "X.X.";
  • but it had plainly been floated for the first time into the business at
  • a period of great depression some six years ago. The name of a
  • distinguished Royal personage had been mentioned by rumour in connection
  • with this sum. "The cowardly desperado"--such, I remember, was the
  • editorial expression--was supposed to have escaped with a large part of
  • this mysterious fund still in his possession.
  • I was still brooding over the fact, and trying to torture it into some
  • connection with Mr. Huddlestone's danger, when a man entered the tavern
  • and asked for some bread and cheese with a decided foreign accent.
  • "_Siete Italiano?_" said I.
  • "_Si, signor_," was his reply.
  • I said it was unusually far north to find one of his compatriots; at
  • which he shrugged his shoulders, and replied that a man would go
  • anywhere to find work. What work he could hope to find at Graden-Wester,
  • I was totally unable to conceive; and the incident struck so
  • unpleasantly upon my mind that I asked the landlord, while he was
  • counting me some change, whether he had ever before seen an Italian in
  • the village. He said he had once seen some Norwegians, who had been
  • shipwrecked on the other side of Graden Ness and rescued by the lifeboat
  • from Cauldhaven.
  • "No!" said I; "but an Italian, like the man who had just had bread and
  • cheese."
  • "What?" cried he, "yon black-avised fellow wi' the teeth? Was he an
  • I-talian? Weel, yon's the first that ever I saw, an' I daresay he's like
  • to be the last."
  • Even as he was speaking, I raised my eyes, and, casting a glance into
  • the street, beheld three men in earnest conversation together, and not
  • thirty yards away. One of them was my recent companion in the tavern
  • parlour; the other two, by their handsome, sallow features and soft
  • hats, should evidently belong to the same race. A crowd of village
  • children stood around them, gesticulating and talking gibberish in
  • imitation. The trio looked singularly foreign to the bleak dirty street
  • in which they were standing, and the dark grey heaven that overspread
  • them; and I confess my incredulity received at that moment a shock from
  • which it never recovered. I might reason with myself as I pleased, but I
  • could not argue down the effect of what I had seen, and I began to share
  • in the Italian terror.
  • It was already drawing towards the close of the day before I had
  • returned, the newspapers at the manse, and got well forward on to the
  • links on my way home. I shall never forget that walk. It grew very cold
  • and boisterous; the wind sang in the short grass about my feet; thin
  • rain showers came running on the gusts; and an immense mountain range of
  • clouds began to arise out of the bosom of the sea. It would be hard to
  • imagine a more dismal evening; and whether it was from these external
  • influences, or because my nerves were already affected by what I had
  • heard and seen, my thoughts were as gloomy as the weather.
  • The upper windows of the pavilion commanded a considerable spread of
  • links in the direction of Graden-Wester. To avoid observation, it was
  • necessary to hug the beach until I had gained cover from the higher
  • sand-hills on the little headland, when I might strike across, through
  • the hollows, for the margin of the wood. The sun was about setting; the
  • tide was low, and all the quicksands uncovered; and I was moving along,
  • lost in unpleasant thought, when I was suddenly thunderstruck to
  • perceive the prints of human feet. They ran parallel to my own course,
  • but low down upon the beach instead of along the border of the turf;
  • and, when I examined them, I saw at once, by the size and coarseness of
  • the impression, that it was a stranger to me and to those in the
  • pavilion who had recently passed that way. Not only so; but from the
  • recklessness of the course which he had followed, steering near to the
  • most formidable portions of the sand, he was as evidently a stranger to
  • the country and to the ill-repute of Graden beach.
  • Step by step I followed the prints; until, a quarter of a mile farther,
  • I beheld them die away into the south-eastern boundary of Graden Floe.
  • There, whoever he was, the miserable man had perished. One or two gulls,
  • who had, perhaps, seen him disappear, wheeled over his sepulchre with
  • their usual melancholy piping. The sun had broken through the clouds by
  • a last effort, and coloured the wide level of quicksands with a dusky
  • purple. I stood for some time gazing at the spot, chilled and
  • disheartened by my own reflections, and with a strong and commanding
  • consciousness of death. I remember wondering how long the tragedy had
  • taken, and whether his screams had been audible at the pavilion. And
  • then, making a strong resolution, I was about to tear myself away, when
  • a gust fiercer than usual fell upon this quarter of the beach, and I
  • saw, now whirling high in air, now skimming lightly across the surface
  • of the sands, a soft, black, felt hat, somewhat conical in shape, such
  • as I had remarked already on the heads of the Italians.
  • I believe, but I am not sure, that I uttered a cry. The wind was driving
  • the hat shoreward, and I ran round the border of the floe to be ready
  • against its arrival. The gust fell, dropping the hat for a while upon
  • the quicksand, and then, once more freshening, landed it a few yards
  • from where I stood. I seized it with the interest you may imagine. It
  • had seen some service; indeed, it was rustier than either of those I had
  • seen that day upon the street. The lining was red, stamped with the name
  • of the maker, which I have forgotten, and that of the place of
  • manufacture, _Venedig_. This (it is not yet forgotten) was the name
  • given by the Austrians to the beautiful city of Venice, then, and for
  • long after, a part of their dominions.
  • The shock was complete. I saw imaginary Italians upon every side; and,
  • for the first, and, I may say, for the last time in my experience,
  • became overpowered by what is called a panic terror. I knew nothing,
  • that is, to be afraid of, and yet I submit that I was heartily afraid;
  • and it was with a sensible reluctance that I returned to my exposed and
  • solitary camp in the Sea-Wood.
  • There I ate some cold porridge which had been left over from the night
  • before, for I was disinclined to make a fire; and, feeling strengthened
  • and reassured, dismissed all these fanciful terrors from my mind, and
  • lay down to sleep with composure.
  • How long I may have slept it is impossible for me to guess; but I was
  • awakened at last by a sudden, blinding flash of light into my face. It
  • woke me like a blow. In an instant I was upon my knees. But the light
  • had gone as suddenly as it came. The darkness was intense. And, as it
  • was blowing great guns from the sea and pouring with rain, the noises of
  • the storm effectually concealed all others.
  • It was, I daresay, half a minute before I regained my self-possession.
  • But for two circumstances, I should have thought I had been awakened by
  • some new and vivid form of nightmare. First, the flap of my tent, which
  • I had shut carefully when I retired, was now unfastened; and, second, I
  • could still perceive, with a sharpness that excluded any theory of
  • hallucination, the smell of hot metal and of burning oil. The conclusion
  • was obvious. I had been wakened by some one flashing a bull's-eye
  • lantern in my face. It had been but a flash, and away. He had seen my
  • face, and then gone. I asked myself the object of so strange a
  • proceeding, and the answer came pat. The man, whoever he was, had
  • thought to recognise me, and he had not. There was yet another question
  • unresolved: and to this, I may say, I feared to give an answer; if he
  • had recognised me, what would he have done?
  • My fears were immediately diverted from myself, for I saw that I had
  • been visited in a mistake; and I became persuaded that some dreadful
  • danger threatened the pavilion. It required some nerve to issue forth
  • into the black and intricate thicket which surrounded and overhung the
  • den; but I groped my way to the links, drenched with rain, beaten upon
  • and deafened by the gusts, and fearing at every step to lay my hand upon
  • some lurking adversary. The darkness was so complete that I might have
  • been surrounded by an army and yet none the wiser, and the uproar of the
  • gale so loud that my hearing was as useless as my sight.
  • For the rest of that night, which seemed interminably long, I patrolled
  • the vicinity of the pavilion, without seeing a living creature or
  • hearing any noise but the concert of the wind, the sea, and the rain. A
  • light in the upper story filtered through a cranny of the shutter, and
  • kept me company till the approach of dawn.
  • CHAPTER V
  • TELLS OF AN INTERVIEW BETWEEN NORTHMOUR, CLARA, AND MYSELF
  • With the first peep of day, I retired from the open to my old lair among
  • the sand-hills, there to await the coming of my wife. The morning was
  • grey, wild, and melancholy; the wind moderated before sunrise, and then
  • went about, and blew in puffs from the shore; the sea began to go down,
  • but the rain still fell without mercy. Over all the wilderness of links
  • there was not a creature to be seen. Yet I felt sure the neighbourhood
  • was alive with skulking foes. The light had been so suddenly and
  • surprisingly flashed upon my face as I lay sleeping, and the hat that
  • had been blown ashore by the wind from over Graden Floe, were two
  • speaking signals of the peril that environed Clara and the party in the
  • pavilion.
  • It was perhaps half-past seven, or nearer eight, before I saw the door
  • open, and that dear figure come towards me in the rain. I was waiting
  • for her on the beach before she had crossed the sand-hills.
  • "I have had such trouble to come!" she cried. "They did not wish me to
  • go walking in the rain."
  • "Clara," I said, "you are not frightened!"
  • "No," said she, with a simplicity that filled my heart with confidence.
  • For my wife was the bravest as well as the best of women; in my
  • experience I have not found the two go always together, but with her
  • they did; and she combined the extreme of fortitude with the most
  • endearing and beautiful virtues.
  • I told her what had happened; and, though her cheek grew visibly paler,
  • she retained perfect control over her senses.
  • "You see now that I am safe," said I, in conclusion. "They do not mean
  • to harm me; for, had they chosen, I was a dead man last night."
  • She laid her hand upon my arm.
  • "And I had no presentiment!" she cried.
  • Her accent thrilled me with delight. I put my arm about her, and
  • strained her to my side; and before either of us was aware, her hands
  • were on my shoulders, and my lips upon her mouth. Yet up to that moment
  • no word of love had passed between us. To this day I remember the touch
  • of her cheek, which was wet and cold with the rain; and many a time
  • since, when she has been washing her face, I have kissed it again for
  • the sake of that morning on the beach. Now that she is taken from me,
  • and I finish my pilgrimage alone, I recall our old loving-kindnesses and
  • the deep honesty and affection which united us, and my present loss
  • seems but a trifle in comparison.
  • We may have thus stood for some seconds--for time passes quickly with
  • lovers--before we were startled by a peal of laughter close at hand. It
  • was not natural mirth, but seemed to be affected in order to conceal an
  • angrier feeling. We both turned, though I still kept my left arm about
  • Clara's waist; nor did she seek to withdraw herself; and there, a few
  • paces off upon the beach, stood Northmour, his head lowered, his hands
  • behind his back, his nostrils white with passion.
  • "Ah! Cassilis!" he said, as I disclosed my face.
  • "That same," said I; for I was not at all put about.
  • "And so, Miss Huddlestone," he continued slowly but savagely, "this is
  • how you keep your faith to your father and to me? This is the value you
  • set upon your father's life? And you are so infatuated with this young
  • gentleman that you must brave ruin, and decency, and common human
  • caution----"
  • "Miss Huddlestone----" I was beginning to interrupt him, when he, in his
  • turn, cut in brutally--
  • "You hold your tongue," said he; "I am speaking to that girl."
  • "That girl, as you call her, is my wife," said I; and my wife only
  • leaned a little nearer, so that I knew she had affirmed my words.
  • "Your what?" he cried. "You lie!"
  • "Northmour," I said, "we all know you have a bad temper, and I am the
  • last man to be irritated by words. For all that, I propose that you
  • speak lower, for I am convinced that we are not alone."
  • He looked round him, and it was plain my remark had in some degree
  • sobered his passion. "What do you mean?" he asked.
  • I only said one word: "Italians."
  • He swore a round oath, and looked at us, from one to the other.
  • "Mr. Cassilis knows all that I know," said my wife.
  • "What I want to know," he broke out, "is where the devil Mr. Cassilis
  • comes from, and what the devil Mr. Cassilis is doing here. You say you
  • are married; that I do not believe. If you were, Graden Floe would soon
  • divorce you; four minutes and a half, Cassilis. I keep my private
  • cemetery for my friends."
  • "It took somewhat longer," said I, "for that Italian."
  • He looked at me for a moment half-daunted, and then, almost civilly,
  • asked me to tell my story. "You have too much the advantage of me,
  • Cassilis," he added. I complied, of course; and he listened, with
  • several ejaculations, while I told him how I had come to Graden: that it
  • was I whom he had tried to murder on the night of landing; and what I
  • had subsequently seen and heard of the Italians.
  • "Well," said he, when I had done, "it is here at last; there is no
  • mistake about that. And what, may I ask, do you propose to do?"
  • "I propose to stay with you and lend a hand," said I.
  • "You are a brave man," he returned, with a peculiar intonation.
  • "I am not afraid," said I.
  • "And so," he continued, "I am to understand that you two are married?
  • And you stand up to it before my face, Miss Huddlestone?"
  • "We are not yet married," said Clara; "but we shall be as soon as we
  • can."
  • "Bravo!" cried Northmour. "And the bargain? D--n it, you're not a fool,
  • young woman; I may call a spade a spade with you. How about the bargain?
  • You know as well as I do what your father's life depends upon. I have
  • only to put my hands under my coat-tails and walk away, and his throat
  • would be cut before the evening."
  • "Yes, Mr. Northmour," returned Clara, with great spirit; "but that is
  • what you will never do. You made a bargain that was unworthy of a
  • gentleman; but you are gentleman for all that, and you will never desert
  • a man whom you have begun to help."
  • "Aha!" said he. "You think I will give my yacht for nothing? You think I
  • will risk my life and liberty for love of the old gentleman; and then, I
  • suppose, be best-man at the wedding, to wind up? Well," he added, with
  • an odd smile, "perhaps you are not altogether wrong. But ask Cassilis
  • here. _He_ knows me. Am I a man to trust? Am I safe and scrupulous? Am I
  • kind?"
  • "I know you talk a great deal, and sometimes, I think, very foolishly,"
  • replied Clara, "but I know you are a gentleman, and I am not the least
  • afraid."
  • He looked at her with a peculiar approval and admiration; then, turning
  • to me, "Do you think I would give her up without a struggle, Frank?"
  • said he. "I tell you plainly, you look out. The next time we come to
  • blows----"
  • "Will make the third," I interrupted, smiling.
  • "Ay, true; so it will," he said. "I had forgotten. Well, the third
  • time's lucky."
  • "The third time, you mean, you will have the crew of the _Red Earl_ to
  • help," I said.
  • "Do you hear him?" he asked, turning to my wife.
  • "I hear two men speaking like cowards," said she. "I should despise
  • myself either to think or speak like that. And neither of you believe
  • one word that you are saying, which makes it the more wicked and silly."
  • "She's a trump!" cried Northmour. "But she's not yet Mrs. Cassilis. I
  • say no more. The present is not for me."
  • Then my wife surprised me.
  • "I leave you here," she said suddenly. "My father has been too long
  • alone. But remember this: you are to be friends, for you are both good
  • friends to me."
  • She has since told me her reason for this step. As long as she remained,
  • she declares that we two should have continued to quarrel; and I suppose
  • that she was right, for when she was gone we fell at once into a sort of
  • confidentiality.
  • Northmour stared after her as she went away over the sand-hill.
  • "She is the only woman in the world!" he exclaimed, with an oath. "Look
  • at her action."
  • I, for my part, leaped at this opportunity for a little further light.
  • "See here, Northmour," said I; "we are all in a tight place, are we
  • not?"
  • "I believe you, my boy," he answered, looking me in the eyes, and with
  • great emphasis. "We have all hell upon us, that's the truth. You may
  • believe me or not, but I'm afraid of my life."
  • "Tell me one thing," said I. "What are they after, these Italians? What
  • do they want with Mr. Huddlestone?"
  • "Don't you know?" he cried. "The black old scamp had _carbonaro_ funds
  • on a deposit--two hundred and eighty thousand; and of course he gambled
  • it away on stocks. There was to have been a revolution in the
  • Tridentino, or Parma; but the revolution is off, and the whole wasps'
  • nest is after Huddlestone. We shall all be lucky if we can save our
  • skins."
  • "The _carbonari_!" I exclaimed; "God help him indeed!"
  • "Amen!" said Northmour. "And now, look here: I have said that we are in
  • a fix; and, frankly, I shall be glad of your help. If I can't save
  • Huddlestone, I want at least to save the girl. Come and stay in the
  • pavilion; and, there's my hand on it, I shall act as your friend until
  • the old man is either clear or dead. But," he added, "once that is
  • settled, you become my rival once again, and I warn you--mind yourself."
  • "Done!" said I; and we shook hands.
  • "And now let us go directly to the fort," said Northmour; and he began
  • to lead the way through the rain.
  • CHAPTER VI
  • TELLS OF MY INTRODUCTION TO THE TALL MAN
  • We were admitted to the pavilion by Clara, and I was surprised by the
  • completeness and security of the defences. A barricade of great
  • strength, and yet easy to displace, supported the door against any
  • violence from without; and the shutters of the dining-room, into which I
  • was led directly, and which was feebly illuminated by a lamp, were even
  • more elaborately fortified. The panels were strengthened by bars and
  • cross-bars; and these, in their turn, were kept in position by a system
  • of braces and struts, some abutting on the floor, some on the roof, and
  • others, in fine, against the opposite wall of the apartment. It was at
  • once a solid and well-designed piece of carpentry; and I did not seek to
  • conceal my admiration.
  • "I am the engineer," said Northmour. "You remember the planks in the
  • garden? Behold them!"
  • "I did not know you had so many talents," said I.
  • "Are you armed?" he continued, pointing to an array of guns and pistols,
  • all in admirable order, which stood in line against the wall or were
  • displayed upon the sideboard.
  • "Thank you," I returned; "I have gone armed since our last encounter.
  • But, to tell you the truth, I have had nothing to eat since early
  • yesterday evening."
  • Northmour produced some cold meat, to which I eagerly set myself, and a
  • bottle of good Burgundy, by which, wet as I was, I did not scruple to
  • profit. I have always been an extreme temperance man on principle; but
  • it is useless to push principle to excess, and on this occasion I
  • believe that I finished three-quarters of the bottle. As I ate, I still
  • continued to admire the preparations for defence.
  • "We could stand a siege," I said at length.
  • "Ye--es," drawled Northmour; "a very little one, per--haps. It is not so
  • much the strength of the pavilion I misdoubt; it is the double danger
  • that kills me. If we get to shooting, wild as the country is, some one
  • is sure to hear it, and then--why, then it's the same thing, only
  • different, as they say: caged by law, or killed by _carbonari_. There's
  • the choice. It is a devilish bad thing to have the law against you in
  • this world, and so I tell the old gentleman upstairs. He is quite of my
  • way of thinking."
  • "Speaking of that," said I, "what kind of person is he?"
  • "Oh, he!" cried the other; "he's a rancid fellow, as far as he goes. I
  • should like to have his neck wrung to-morrow by all the devils in Italy.
  • I am not in this affair for him. You take me? I made a bargain for
  • Missy's hand, and I mean to have it too."
  • "That by the way," said I. "I understand. But how will Mr. Huddlestone
  • take my intrusion?"
  • "Leave that to Clara," returned Northmour.
  • I could have struck him in the face for this coarse familiarity; but I
  • respected the truce, as, I am bound to say, did Northmour, and so long
  • as the danger continued not a cloud arose in our relation. I bear him
  • this testimony with the most unfeigned satisfaction; nor am I without
  • pride when I look back upon my own behaviour. For surely no two men were
  • ever left in a position so invidious and irritating.
  • As soon as I had done eating, we proceeded to inspect the lower floor.
  • Window by window we tried the different supports, now and then making an
  • inconsiderable change; and the strokes of the hammer sounded with
  • startling loudness through the house. I proposed, I remember, to make
  • loopholes; but he told me they were already made in the windows of the
  • upper story. It was an anxious business, this inspection, and left me
  • down-hearted. There were two doors and five windows to protect, and,
  • counting Clara, only four of us to defend them against an unknown number
  • of foes. I communicated my doubts to Northmour, who assured me, with
  • unmoved composure, that he entirely shared them.
  • "Before morning," said he, "we shall all be butchered and buried in
  • Graden Floe. For me, that is written."
  • I could not help shuddering at the mention of the quicksand, but
  • reminded Northmour that our enemies had spared me in the wood.
  • "Do not flatter yourself," said he. "Then you were not in the same boat
  • with the old gentleman; now you are. It's the floe for all of us, mark
  • my words."
  • I trembled for Clara; and just then her dear voice was heard calling us
  • to come upstairs. Northmour showed me the way, and, when he had reached
  • the landing, knocked at the door of what used to be called _My Uncle's
  • Bedroom_, as the founder of the pavilion had designed it especially for
  • himself.
  • "Come in, Northmour; come in, dear Mr. Cassilis," said a voice from
  • within.
  • Pushing open the door, Northmour admitted me before him into the
  • apartment. As I came in I could see the daughter slipping out by the
  • side-door into the study, which had been prepared as her bedroom. In the
  • bed, which was drawn back against the wall, instead of standing, as I
  • had last seen it, boldly across the window, sat Bernard Huddlestone, the
  • defaulting banker. Little as I had seen of him by the shifting light of
  • the lantern on the links, I had no difficulty in recognising him for
  • the same. He had a long and sallow countenance, surrounded by a long red
  • beard and side-whiskers. His broken nose and high cheek-bones gave him
  • somewhat the air of a Kalmuck, and his light eyes shone with the
  • excitement of a high fever. He wore a skull-cap of black silk; a huge
  • Bible lay open before him on the bed, with a pair of gold spectacles in
  • the place, and a pile of other books lay on the stand by his side. The
  • green curtains lent a cadaverous shade to his cheek; and, as he sat
  • propped on pillows, his great stature was painfully hunched, and his
  • head protruded till it overhung his knees. I believe if he had not died
  • otherwise, he must have fallen a victim to consumption in the course of
  • but a very few weeks.
  • He held out to me a hand, long, thin, and disagreeably hairy.
  • "Come in, come in, Mr. Cassilis," said he. "Another
  • protector--ahem!--another protector. Always welcome as a friend of my
  • daughter's, Mr. Cassilis. How they have rallied about me, my daughter's
  • friends! May God in Heaven bless and reward them for it!"
  • I gave him my hand, of course, because I could not help it; but the
  • sympathy I had been prepared to feel for Clara's father was immediately
  • soured by his appearance, and the wheedling, unreal tones in which he
  • spoke.
  • "Cassilis is a good man," said Northmour; "worth ten."
  • "So I hear," cried Mr. Huddlestone eagerly; "so my girl tells me. Ah,
  • Mr. Cassilis, my sin has found me out, you see! I am very low, very low;
  • but I hope equally penitent. We must all come to the throne of grace at
  • last, Mr. Cassilis. For my part, I come late indeed; but with unfeigned
  • humility, I trust."
  • "Fiddle-de-dee!" said Northmour roughly.
  • "No, no, dear Northmour!" cried the banker. "You must not say that; you
  • must not try to shake me. You forget, my dear, good boy, you forget I
  • may be called this very night before my Maker."
  • His excitement was pitiful to behold; and I felt myself grow indignant
  • with Northmour, whose infidel opinions I well knew, and heartily
  • derided, as he continued to taunt the poor sinner out of his humour of
  • repentance.
  • "Pooh, my dear Huddlestone!" said he. "You do yourself injustice. You
  • are a man of the world, inside and out, and were up to all kinds of
  • mischief before I was born. Your conscience is tanned like South
  • American leather--only you forgot to tan your liver, and that, if you
  • will believe me, is the seat of the annoyance."
  • "Rogue, rogue! bad boy!" said Mr. Huddlestone, shaking his finger, "I am
  • no precisian, if you come to that; I always hated a precisian; but I
  • never lost hold of something better through it all. I have been a bad
  • boy, Mr. Cassilis; I do not seek to deny that; but it was after my
  • wife's death, and you know, with a widower, it's a different thing:
  • sinful--I won't say no; but there is a gradation, we shall hope. And
  • talking of that---- Hark!" he broke out suddenly, his hand raised, his
  • fingers spread, his face racked with interest and terror. "Only the
  • rain, bless God!" he added, after a pause, and with indescribable
  • relief.
  • For some seconds he lay back among the pillows like a man near to
  • fainting; then he gathered himself together, and, in somewhat tremulous
  • tones, began once more to thank me for the share I was prepared to take
  • in his defence.
  • "One question, sir," said I, when he had paused. "Is it true that you
  • have money with you?"
  • He seemed annoyed by the question, but admitted with reluctance that he
  • had a little.
  • "Well," I continued, "it is their money they are after, is it not? Why
  • not give it up to them?"
  • "Ah!" replied he, shaking his head, "I have tried that already, Mr.
  • Cassilis; and alas that it should be so! but it is blood they want."
  • "Huddlestone, that's a little less than fair," said Northmour. "You
  • should mention that what you offered them was upwards of two hundred
  • thousand short. The deficit is worth a reference; it is for what they
  • call a cool sum, Frank. Then, you see, the fellows reason in their clear
  • Italian way; and it seems to them, as indeed it seems to me, that they
  • may just as well have both while they're about it--money and blood
  • together, by George, and no more trouble for the extra pleasure."
  • "Is it in the pavilion?" I asked.
  • "It is; and I wish it were in the bottom of the sea instead," said
  • Northmour; and then suddenly--"What are you making faces at me for?" he
  • cried to Mr. Huddlestone, on whom I had unconsciously turned my back.
  • "Do you think Cassilis would sell you?"
  • Mr. Huddlestone protested that nothing had been further from his mind.
  • "It is a good thing," retorted Northmour in his ugliest manner. "You
  • might end by wearying us.--What were you going to say?" he added,
  • turning to me.
  • "I was going to propose an occupation for the afternoon," said I. "Let
  • us carry that money out, piece by piece, and lay it down before the
  • pavilion door. If the _carbonari_ come, why, it's theirs at any rate."
  • "No, no," cried Mr. Huddlestone; "it does not, it cannot belong to them!
  • It should be distributed _pro rata_ among all my creditors."
  • "Come now, Huddlestone," said Northmour, "none of that."
  • "Well, but my daughter," moaned the wretched man.
  • "Your daughter will do well enough. Here are two suitors, Cassilis and
  • I, neither of us beggars, between whom she has to choose. And as for
  • yourself, to make an end of arguments, you have no right to a farthing,
  • and, unless I'm much mistaken, you are going to die."
  • It was certainly very cruelly said; but Mr. Huddlestone was a man who
  • attracted little sympathy; and, although I saw him wince and shudder, I
  • mentally endorsed the rebuke; nay, I added a contribution of my own.
  • "Northmour and I," I said, "are willing enough to help you to save your
  • life, but not to escape with stolen property."
  • He struggled for a while with himself, as though he were on the point of
  • giving way to anger, but prudence had the best of the controversy.
  • "My dear boys," he said, "do with me or my money what you will. I leave
  • all in your hands. Let me compose myself."
  • And so we left him, gladly enough I am sure. The last that I saw, he had
  • once more taken up his great Bible, and with tremulous hands was
  • adjusting his spectacles to read.
  • CHAPTER VII
  • TELLS HOW A WORD WAS CRIED THROUGH THE PAVILION WINDOW
  • The recollection of that afternoon will always be graven on my mind.
  • Northmour and I were persuaded that an attack was imminent; and if it
  • had been in our power to alter in any way the order of events, that
  • power would have been used to precipitate rather than delay the critical
  • moment. The worst was to be anticipated; yet we could conceive no
  • extremity so miserable as the suspense we were now suffering. I have
  • never been an eager, though always a great, reader; but I never knew
  • books so insipid as those which I took up and cast aside that afternoon
  • in the pavilion. Even talk became impossible as the hours went on. One
  • or other was always listening for some sound, or peering from an
  • upstairs window over the links. And yet not a sign indicated the
  • presence of our foes.
  • We debated over and over again my proposal with regard to the money; and
  • had we been in complete possession of our faculties, I am sure we should
  • have condemned it as unwise; but we were flustered with alarm, grasped
  • at a straw, and determined, although it was as much as advertising Mr.
  • Huddlestone's presence in the pavilion, to carry my proposal into
  • effect.
  • The sum was part in specie, part in bank paper, and part in circular
  • notes payable to the name of James Gregory. We took it out, counted it,
  • enclosed it once more in a despatch-box belonging to Northmour, and
  • prepared a letter in Italian which he tied to the handle. It was signed
  • by both of us under oath, and declared that this was all the money which
  • had escaped the failure of the house of Huddlestone. This was, perhaps,
  • the maddest action ever perpetrated by two persons professing to be
  • sane. Had the despatch-box fallen into other hands than those for which
  • it was intended, we stood criminally convicted on our own written
  • testimony; but as I have said, we were neither of us in a condition to
  • judge soberly, and had a thirst for action that drove us to do
  • something, right or wrong, rather than endure the agony of waiting.
  • Moreover, as we were both convinced that the hollows of the links were
  • alive with hidden spies upon our movements, we hoped that our appearance
  • with the box might lead to a parley, and perhaps a compromise.
  • It was nearly three when we issued from the pavilion. The rain had taken
  • off; the sun shone quite cheerfully. I have never seen the gulls fly so
  • close about the house or approach so fearlessly to human beings. On the
  • very doorstep one flapped heavily past our heads, and uttered its wild
  • cry in my very ear.
  • "There is an omen for you," said Northmour, who, like all freethinkers,
  • was much under the influence of superstition. "They think we are already
  • dead."
  • I made some light rejoinder, but it was with half my heart; for the
  • circumstance had impressed me.
  • A yard or two before the gate, on a patch of smooth turf, we set down
  • the despatch-box; and Northmour waved a white handkerchief over his
  • head. Nothing replied. We raised our voices, and cried aloud in Italian
  • that we were there as ambassadors to arrange the quarrel; but the
  • stillness remained unbroken save by the sea-gulls and the surf. I had a
  • weight at my heart when we desisted; and I saw that even Northmour was
  • unusually pale. He looked over his shoulder nervously, as though he
  • feared that some one had crept between him and the pavilion door.
  • "By God," he said in a whisper, "this is too much for me!"
  • I replied in the same key: "Suppose there should be none, after all?"
  • "Look there," he returned, nodding with his head, as though he had been
  • afraid to point.
  • I glanced in the direction indicated; and there, from the northern
  • quarter of the Sea-Wood, beheld a thin column of smoke rising steadily
  • against the now cloudless sky.
  • "Northmour," I said (we still continued to talk in whispers), "it is not
  • possible to endure this suspense. I prefer death fifty times over. Stay
  • you here to watch the pavilion; I will go forward and make sure, if I
  • have to walk right into their camp."
  • He looked once again all round him with puckered eyes, and then nodded
  • assentingly to my proposal.
  • My heart beat like a sledge-hammer as I set out walking rapidly in the
  • direction of the smoke; and, though up to that moment I had felt chill
  • and shivering, I was suddenly conscious of a glow of heat over all my
  • body. The ground in this direction was very uneven; a hundred men might
  • have lain hidden in as many square yards about my path. But I had not
  • practised the business in vain, chose such routes as cut at the very
  • root of concealment, and, by keeping along the most convenient ridges,
  • commanded several hollows at a time. It was not long before I was
  • rewarded for my caution. Coming suddenly on to a mound somewhat more
  • elevated than the surrounding hummocks, I saw, not thirty yards away, a
  • man bent almost double, and running as fast as his attitude permitted
  • along the bottom of a gully. I had dislodged one of the spies from his
  • ambush. As soon as I sighted him, I called loudly both in English and
  • Italian; and he, seeing concealment was no longer possible, straightened
  • himself out, leaped from the gully, and made off as straight as an arrow
  • for the borders of the wood.
  • It was none of my business to pursue; I had learned what I wanted--that
  • we were beleaguered and watched in the pavilion; and I returned at once,
  • and walking as nearly as possible in my old footsteps, to where
  • Northmour awaited me beside the despatch-box. He was even paler than
  • when I had left him, and his voice shook a little.
  • "Could you see what he was like?" he asked.
  • "He kept his back turned," I replied.
  • "Let us get into the house, Frank. I don't think I'm a coward, but I can
  • stand no more of this," he whispered.
  • All was still and sunshiny about the pavilion as we turned to re-enter
  • it; even the gulls had flown in a wider circuit, and were seen
  • flickering along the beach and sand-hills; and this loneliness terrified
  • me more than a regiment under arms. It was not until the door was
  • barricaded that I could draw a full inspiration and relieve the weight
  • that lay upon my bosom. Northmour and I exchanged a steady glance; and I
  • suppose each made his own reflections on the white and startled aspect
  • of the other.
  • "You were right," I said. "All is over. Shake hands, old man, for the
  • last time."
  • "Yes," replied he, "I will shake hands; for, as sure as I am here, I
  • bear no malice. But remember, if, by some impossible accident, we should
  • give the slip to these blackguards, I'll take the upper hand of you by
  • fair or foul."
  • "Oh," said I, "you weary me."
  • He seemed hurt, and walked away in silence to the foot of the stairs,
  • where he paused.
  • "You do not understand," said he. "I am not a swindler, and I guard
  • myself; that is all. It may weary you or not, Mr. Cassilis, I do not
  • care a rush; I speak for my own satisfaction, and not for your
  • amusement. You had better go upstairs and court the girl; for my part,
  • I stay here."
  • "And I stay with you," I returned. "Do you think I would steal a march,
  • even with your permission?"
  • "Frank," he said, smiling, "it's a pity you are an ass, for you have the
  • makings of a man. I think I must be _fey_ to-day; you cannot irritate me
  • even when you try. Do you know," he continued softly, "I think we are
  • the two most miserable men in England, you and I? we have got on to
  • thirty without wife or child, or so much as a shop to look after--poor,
  • pitiful, lost devils, both! And now we clash about a girl! As if there
  • were not several millions in the United Kingdom! Ah, Frank, Frank, the
  • one who loses this throw, be it you or me, he has my pity! It were
  • better for him--how does the Bible say?--that a millstone were hanged
  • about his neck and he were cast into the depth of the sea. Let us take a
  • drink," he concluded suddenly, but without any levity of tone.
  • I was touched by his words and consented. He sat down on the table in
  • the dining-room, and held up the glass of sherry to his eye.
  • "If you beat me, Frank," he said, "I shall take to drink. What will you
  • do, if it goes the other way?"
  • "God knows," I returned.
  • "Well," said he, "here is a toast in the meantime: '_Italia
  • irredenta!_'"
  • The remainder of the day was passed in the same dreadful tedium and
  • suspense. I laid the table for dinner, while Northmour and Clara
  • prepared the meal together in the kitchen. I could hear their talk as I
  • went to and fro, and was surprised to find it ran all the time upon
  • myself. Northmour again bracketed us together, and rallied Clara on a
  • choice of husbands; but he continued to speak of me with some feeling,
  • and uttered nothing to my prejudice unless he included himself in the
  • condemnation. This awakened a sense of gratitude in my heart, which
  • combined with the immediateness of our peril to fill my eye with tears.
  • After all, I thought--and perhaps the thought was laughably vain--we
  • were here three very noble human beings to perish in defence of a
  • thieving banker.
  • Before we sat down to table I looked forth from an upstairs window. The
  • day was beginning to decline; the links were utterly deserted; the
  • despatch-box still lay untouched where we had left it hours before.
  • Mr. Huddlestone, in a long yellow dressing-gown, took one end of the
  • table, Clara the other; while Northmour and I faced each other from the
  • sides. The lamp was brightly trimmed; the wine was good; the viands,
  • although mostly cold, excellent of their sort. We seemed to have agreed
  • tacitly; all reference to the impending catastrophe was carefully
  • avoided; and, considering our tragic circumstances, we made a merrier
  • party than could have been expected. From time to time, it is true,
  • Northmour or I would rise from table and make a round of the defences;
  • and, on each of these occasions, Mr. Huddlestone was recalled to a sense
  • of his tragic predicament, glanced up with ghastly eyes, and bore for an
  • instant on his countenance the stamp of terror. But he hastened to empty
  • his glass, wiped his forehead with his handkerchief, and joined again in
  • the conversation.
  • I was astonished at the wit and information he displayed. Mr.
  • Huddlestone's was certainly no ordinary character; he had read and
  • observed for himself; his gifts were sound; and, though I could never
  • have learned to love the man, I began to understand his success in
  • business, and the great respect in which he had been held before his
  • failure. He had, above all, the talent of society; and though I never
  • heard him speak but on this one and most unfavourable occasion, I set
  • him down among the most brilliant conversationalists I ever met.
  • He was relating with great gusto, and seemingly no feeling of shame, the
  • manoeuvres of a scoundrelly commission merchant whom he had known and
  • studied in his youth, and we were all listening with an odd mixture of
  • mirth and embarrassment, when our little party was brought abruptly to
  • an end in the most startling manner.
  • A noise like that of a wet finger on the window-pane interrupted Mr.
  • Huddlestone's tale; and in an instant we were all four as white as
  • paper, and sat tongue-tied and motionless round the table.
  • "A snail," I said at last; for I had heard that these animals make a
  • noise somewhat similar in character.
  • "Snail be d--d!" said Northmour. "Hush!"
  • The same sound was repeated twice at regular intervals; and then a
  • formidable voice shouted through the shutters the Italian word
  • "_Traditore!_"
  • Mr. Huddlestone threw his head in the air; his eyelids quivered; next
  • moment he fell insensible below the table. Northmour and I had each run
  • to the armoury and seized a gun. Clara was on her feet with her hand at
  • her throat.
  • So we stood waiting, for we thought the hour of attack was certainly
  • come; but second passed after second, and all but the surf remained
  • silent in the neighbourhood of the pavilion.
  • "Quick," said Northmour; "upstairs with him before they come."
  • CHAPTER VIII
  • TELLS THE LAST OF THE TALL MAN
  • Somehow or other, by hook and crook, and between the three of us, we got
  • Bernard Huddlestone bundled upstairs and laid upon the bed in _My
  • Uncle's Room_. During the whole process, which was rough enough, he gave
  • no sign of consciousness, and he remained, as we had thrown him, without
  • changing the position of a finger. His daughter opened his shirt and
  • began to wet his head and bosom; while Northmour and I ran to the
  • window. The weather continued clear; the moon, which was now about full,
  • had risen and shed a very clear light upon the links; yet, strain our
  • eyes as we might, we could distinguish nothing moving. A few dark spots,
  • more or less, on the uneven expanse, were not to be identified; they
  • might be crouching men, they might be shadows; it was impossible to be
  • sure.
  • "Thank God," said Northmour, "Aggie is not coming to-night."
  • Aggie was the name of the old nurse; he had not thought of her till now;
  • but that he should think of her at all was a trait that surprised me in
  • the man.
  • We were again reduced to waiting. Northmour went to the fireplace and
  • spread his hands before the red embers, as if he were cold. I followed
  • him mechanically with my eyes, and in so doing turned my back upon the
  • window. At that moment a very faint report was audible from without, and
  • a ball shivered a pane of glass, and buried itself in the shutter two
  • inches from my head. I heard Clara scream; and though I whipped
  • instantly out of range and into a corner, she was there, so to speak,
  • before me, beseeching to know if I were hurt. I felt that I could stand
  • to be shot at every day and all day long, with such marks of solicitude
  • for a reward; and I continued to reassure her, with the tenderest
  • caresses and in complete forgetfulness of our situation, till the voice
  • of Northmour recalled me to myself.
  • "An air-gun," he said. "They wish to make no noise."
  • I put Clara aside, and looked at him. He was standing with his back to
  • the fire and his hands clasped behind him; and I knew by the black look
  • on his face that passion was boiling within. I had seen just such a look
  • before he attacked me, that March night, in the adjoining chamber; and,
  • though I could make every allowance for his anger, I confess I trembled
  • for the consequences. He gazed straight before him; but he could see us
  • with the tail of his eye, and his temper kept rising like a gale of
  • wind. With regular battle awaiting us outside, this prospect of an
  • internecine strife within the walls began to daunt me.
  • Suddenly, as I was thus closely watching his expression and prepared
  • against the worst, I saw a change, a flash, a look of relief, upon his
  • face. He took up the lamp which stood beside him on the table, and
  • turned to us with an air of some excitement.
  • "There is one point that we must know," said he. "Are they going to
  • butcher the lot of us, or only Huddlestone? Did they take you for him,
  • or fire at you for your own _beaux yeux_?"
  • "They took me for him, for certain," I replied. "I am near as tall, and
  • my head is fair."
  • "I am going to make sure," returned Northmour; and he stepped up to the
  • window, holding the lamp above his head, and stood there, quietly
  • affronting death, for half a minute.
  • Clara sought to rush forward and pull him from the place of danger; but
  • I had the pardonable selfishness to hold her back by force.
  • "Yes," said Northmour, turning coolly from the window; "it's only
  • Huddlestone they want."
  • "Oh, Mr. Northmour!" cried Clara; but found no more to add; the temerity
  • she had just witnessed seeming beyond the reach of words.
  • He, on his part, looked at me, cocking his head, with a fire of triumph
  • in his eyes; and I understood at once that he had thus hazarded his
  • life, merely to attract Clara's notice, and depose me from my position
  • as the hero of the hour. He snapped his fingers.
  • "The fire is only beginning," said he. "When they warm up to their work
  • they won't be so particular."
  • A voice was now heard hailing us from the entrance. From the window we
  • could see the figure of a man in the moonlight; he stood motionless, his
  • face uplifted to ours, and a rag of something white on his extended arm;
  • and as we looked right down upon him, though he was a good many yards
  • distant on the links, we could see the moonlight glitter on his eyes.
  • He opened his lips again, and spoke for some minutes on end, in a key
  • so loud that he might have been heard in every corner of the pavilion,
  • and as far away as the borders of the wood. It was the same voice that
  • had already shouted "_Traditore!_" through the shutters of the
  • dining-room; this time it made a complete and clear statement. If the
  • traitor "Oddlestone" were given up, all others should be spared; if not,
  • no one should escape to tell the tale.
  • "Well, Huddlestone, what do you say to that?" asked Northmour, turning
  • to the bed.
  • Up to that moment the banker had given no sign of life, and I, at least,
  • had supposed him to be still lying in a faint; but he replied at once,
  • and in such tones as I have never heard elsewhere, save from a delirious
  • patient, adjured and besought us not to desert him. It was the most
  • hideous and abject performance that my imagination can conceive.
  • "Enough," cried Northmour; and then he threw open the window, leaned out
  • into the night, and in a tone of exultation, and with a total
  • forgetfulness of what was due to the presence of a lady, poured out upon
  • the ambassador a string of the most abominable raillery both in English
  • and Italian, and bade him be gone where he had come from. I believe that
  • nothing so delighted Northmour at that moment as the thought that we
  • must all infallibly perish before the night was out.
  • Meantime the Italian put his flag of truce into his pocket, and
  • disappeared, at a leisurely pace, among the sand-hills.
  • "They make honourable war," said Northmour. "They are all gentlemen and
  • soldiers. For the credit of the thing, I wish we could change sides--you
  • and I, Frank, and you too, Missy my darling--and leave that being on the
  • bed to some one else. Tut! Don't look shocked! We are all going post to
  • what they call eternity, and may as well be above-board while there's
  • time. As far as I'm concerned, if I could first strangle Huddlestone and
  • then get Clara in my arms, I could die with some pride and satisfaction.
  • And as it is, by God, I'll have a kiss!"
  • Before I could do anything to interfere, he had rudely embraced and
  • repeatedly kissed the resisting girl. Next moment I had pulled him away
  • with fury, and flung him heavily against the wall. He laughed loud and
  • long, and I feared his wits had given way under the strain; for even in
  • the best of days he had been a sparing and a quiet laugher.
  • "Now, Frank," said he, when his mirth was somewhat appeased, "it's your
  • turn. Here's my hand. Good-bye; farewell!" Then, seeing me stand rigid
  • and indignant, and holding Clara to my side--"Man!" he broke out, "are
  • you angry? Did you think we were going to die with all the airs and
  • graces of society? I took a kiss; I'm glad I had it; and now you can
  • take another if you like, and square accounts."
  • I turned from him with a feeling of contempt which I did not seek to
  • dissemble.
  • "As you please," said he. "You've been a prig in life; a prig you'll
  • die."
  • And with that he sat down on a chair, a rifle over his knee, and amused
  • himself with snapping the lock; but I could see that his ebullition of
  • light spirits (the only one I ever knew him to display) had already come
  • to an end, and was succeeded by a sullen, scowling humour.
  • All this time our assailants might have been entering the house, and we
  • been none the wiser; we had in truth almost forgotten the danger that so
  • imminently overhung our days. But just then Mr. Huddlestone uttered a
  • cry, and leaped from the bed.
  • I asked him what was wrong.
  • "Fire!" he cried. "They have set the house on fire!"
  • Northmour was on his feet in an instant, and he and I ran through the
  • door of communication with the study. The room was illuminated by a red
  • and angry light. Almost at the moment of our entrance, a tower of flame
  • arose in front of the window, and, with a tingling report, a pane fell
  • inwards on the carpet. They had set fire to the lean-to outhouse, where
  • Northmour used to nurse his negatives.
  • "Hot work," said Northmour. "Let us try in your old room."
  • We ran thither in a breath, threw up the casement, and looked forth.
  • Along the whole back wall of the pavilion piles of fuel had been
  • arranged and kindled; and it is probable they had been drenched with
  • mineral oil, for, in spite of the morning's rain, they all burned
  • bravely. The fire had taken a firm hold already on the outhouse, which
  • blazed higher and higher every moment; the back-door was in the centre
  • of a red-hot bonfire; the eaves, we could see, as we looked upward, were
  • already smouldering, for the roof overhung, and was supported by
  • considerable beams of wood. At the same time, hot, pungent, and choking
  • volumes of smoke began to fill the house. There was not a human being to
  • be seen to right or left.
  • "Ah, well!" said Northmour, "here's the end, thank God."
  • And we returned to _My Uncle's Room_. Mr. Huddlestone was putting on his
  • boots, still violently trembling, but with an air of determination such
  • as I had not hitherto observed. Clara stood close by him, with her cloak
  • in both hands ready to throw about her shoulders, and a strange look in
  • her eyes, as if she were half-hopeful, half-doubtful of her father.
  • "Well, boys and girls," said Northmour, "how about a sally? The oven is
  • heating; it is not good to stay here and be baked; and, for my part, I
  • want to come to my hands with them, and be done."
  • "There is nothing else left," I replied.
  • And both Clara and Mr. Huddlestone, though with a very different
  • intonation, added, "Nothing."
  • As we went downstairs the heat was excessive, and the roaring of the
  • fire filled our ears; and we had scarce reached the passage before the
  • stairs window fell in, a branch of flame shot brandishing through the
  • aperture, and the interior of the pavilion became lit up with that
  • dreadful and fluctuating glare. At the same moment we heard the fall of
  • something heavy and inelastic in the upper story. The whole pavilion, it
  • was plain, had gone alight like a box of matches, and now not only
  • flamed sky-high to land and sea, but threatened with every moment to
  • crumble and fall in about our ears.
  • Northmour and I cocked our revolvers. Mr. Huddlestone, who had already
  • refused a firearm, put us behind him with a manner of command.
  • "Let Clara open the door," said he. "So, if they fire a volley, she will
  • be protected. And in the meantime stand behind me. I am the scapegoat;
  • my sins have found me out."
  • I heard him, as I stood breathless by his shoulder, with my pistol
  • ready, pattering off prayers in a tremulous, rapid whisper; and I
  • confess, horrid as the thought may seem, I despised him for thinking of
  • supplications in a moment so critical and thrilling. In the meantime,
  • Clara, who was dead white, but still possessed her faculties, had
  • displaced the barricade from the front door. Another moment, and she had
  • pulled it open. Firelight and moonlight illuminated the links with
  • confused and changeful lustre, and far away against the sky we could see
  • a long trail of glowing smoke.
  • Mr. Huddlestone, filled for the moment with a strength greater than his
  • own, struck Northmour and myself a back-hander in the chest; and while
  • we were thus for the moment incapacitated from action, lifting his arms
  • above his head like one about to dive, he ran straight forward out of
  • the pavilion.
  • "Here am I!" he cried--"Huddlestone! Kill me, and spare the others!"
  • His sudden appearance daunted, I suppose, our hidden enemies; for
  • Northmour and I had time to recover, to seize Clara between us, one by
  • each arm, and to rush forth to his assistance, ere anything further had
  • taken place. But scarce had we passed the threshold when there came near
  • a dozen reports and flashes from every direction among the hollows of
  • the links. Mr. Huddlestone staggered, uttered a weird and freezing cry,
  • threw up his arms over his head, and fell backward on the turf.
  • "_Traditore! Traditore!_" cried the invisible avengers.
  • And just then a part of the roof of the pavilion fell in, so rapid was
  • the progress of the fire. A loud, vague, and horrible noise accompanied
  • the collapse, and a vast volume of flame went soaring up to heaven. It
  • must have been visible at that moment from twenty miles out at sea, from
  • the shore at Graden-Wester, and far inland from the peak of Graystiel,
  • the most eastern summit of the Caulder Hills. Bernard Huddlestone,
  • although God knows what were his obsequies, had a fine pyre at the
  • moment of his death.
  • CHAPTER IX
  • TELLS HOW NORTHMOUR CARRIED OUT HIS THREAT
  • I should have the greatest difficulty to tell you what followed next
  • after this tragic circumstance. It is all to me, as I look back upon it,
  • mixed, strenuous, and ineffectual, like the struggles of a sleeper in a
  • nightmare. Clara, I remember, uttered a broken sigh and would have
  • fallen forward to earth, had not Northmour and I supported her
  • insensible body. I do not think we were attacked; I do not remember even
  • to have seen an assailant; and I believe we deserted Mr. Huddlestone
  • without a glance. I only remember running like a man in a panic, now
  • carrying Clara altogether in my own arms, now sharing her weight with
  • Northmour, now scuffling confusedly for the possession of that dear
  • burden. Why we should have made for my camp in the Hemlock Den, or how
  • we reached it, are points lost for ever to my recollection. The first
  • moment at which I became definitely sure, Clara had been suffered to
  • fall against the outside of my little tent, Northmour and I were
  • tumbling together on the ground, and he, with contained ferocity, was
  • striking for my head with the butt of his revolver. He had already twice
  • wounded me on the scalp; and it is to the subsequent loss of blood that
  • I am tempted to attribute the sudden clearness of my mind.
  • I caught him by the wrist.
  • "Northmour," I remember saying, "you can kill me afterwards. Let us
  • first attend to Clara."
  • He was at that moment uppermost. Scarcely had the words passed my lips,
  • when he had leaped to his feet and ran towards the tent; and the next
  • moment he was straining Clara to his heart and covering her unconscious
  • hands and face with his caresses.
  • "Shame!" I cried. "Shame to you, Northmour!"
  • And, giddy though I still was, I struck him repeatedly upon the head and
  • shoulders.
  • He relinquished his grasp, and faced me in the broken moonlight.
  • "I had you under, and I let you go," said he; "and now you strike me!
  • Coward!"
  • "You are the coward," I retorted. "Did she wish your kisses while she
  • was still sensible of what she wanted? Not she! And now she may be
  • dying; and you waste this precious time, and abuse her helplessness.
  • Stand aside, and let me help her."
  • He confronted me for a moment, white and menacing; then suddenly he
  • stepped aside.
  • "Help her, then," said he.
  • I threw myself on my knees beside her, and loosened, as well as I was
  • able, her dress and corset; but while I was thus engaged, a grasp
  • descended on my shoulder.
  • "Keep your hands off her," said Northmour fiercely. "Do you think I have
  • no blood in my veins?"
  • "Northmour," I cried, "if you will neither help her yourself, nor let me
  • do so, do you know that I shall have to kill you?"
  • "That is better!" he cried. "Let her die also--where's the harm? Step
  • aside from that girl, and stand up to fight!"
  • "You will observe," said I, half-rising, "that I have not kissed her
  • yet."
  • "I dare you to," he cried.
  • I do not know what possessed me; it was one of the things I am most
  • ashamed of in my life, though, as my wife used to say, I knew that my
  • kisses would be always welcome were she dead or living; down I fell
  • again upon my knees, parted the hair from her forehead, and, with the
  • dearest respect, laid my lips for a moment on that cold brow. It was
  • such a caress as a father might have given; it was such a one as was not
  • unbecoming from a man soon to die to a woman already dead.
  • "And now," said I, "I am at your service, Mr Northmour."
  • But I saw, to my surprise, that he had turned his back upon me.
  • "Do you hear?" I asked.
  • "Yes," said he, "I do. If you wish to fight, I am ready. If not, go on
  • and save Clara. All is one to me."
  • I did not wait to be twice bidden; but, stooping again over Clara,
  • continued my efforts to revive her. She still lay white and lifeless; I
  • began to fear that her sweet spirit had indeed fled beyond recall, and
  • horror and a sense of utter desolation seized upon my heart. I called
  • her by name with the most endearing inflections; I chafed and beat her
  • hands; now I laid her head low, now supported it against my knee; but
  • all seemed to be in vain, and the lids still lay heavy on her eyes.
  • "Northmour," I said, "there is my hat. For God's sake bring some water
  • from the spring."
  • Almost in a moment he was by my side with the water.
  • "I have brought it in my own," he said. "You do not grudge me the
  • privilege?"
  • "Northmour," I was beginning to say, as I laved her head and breast; but
  • he interrupted me savagely.
  • "Oh, you hush up!" he said. "The best thing you can do is to say
  • nothing."
  • I had certainly no desire to talk, my mind being swallowed up in concern
  • for my dear love and her condition; so I continued in silence to do my
  • best towards her recovery, and, when the hat was empty, returned it to
  • him with one word--"More." He had, perhaps, gone several times upon this
  • errand, when Clara reopened her eyes.
  • "Now," said he, "since she is better, you can spare me, can you not? I
  • wish you a good-night, Mr. Cassilis."
  • And with that he was gone among the thicket. I made a fire, for I had
  • now no fear of the Italians, who had even spared all the little
  • possessions left in my encampment; and, broken as she was by the
  • excitement and the hideous catastrophe of the evening, I managed, in one
  • way or another--by persuasion, encouragement, warmth, and such simple
  • remedies as I could lay my hand on--to bring her back to some composure
  • of mind and strength of body.
  • Day had already come, when a sharp "Hist!" sounded from the thicket. I
  • started from the ground; but the voice of Northmour was heard adding, in
  • the most tranquil tones: "Come here, Cassilis, and alone; I want to show
  • you something."
  • I consulted Clara with my eyes, and, receiving her tacit permission,
  • left her alone, and clambered out of the den. At some distance off I saw
  • Northmour leaning against an elder; and, as soon as he perceived me, he
  • began walking seaward. I had almost overtaken him as he reached the
  • outskirts of the wood.
  • "Look," said he, pausing.
  • A couple of steps more brought me out of the foliage. The light of the
  • morning lay cold and clear over that well-known scene. The pavilion was
  • but a blackened wreck; the roof had fallen in, one of the gables had
  • fallen out; and, far and near, the face of the links was cicatrised with
  • little patches of burnt furze. Thick smoke still went straight upwards
  • in the windless air of the morning, and a great pile of ardent cinders
  • filled the bare walls of the house, like coals in an open grate. Close
  • by the islet a schooner yacht lay-to, and a well-manned boat was pulling
  • vigorously for the shore.
  • "The _Red Earl_!" I cried. "The _Red Earl_ twelve hours too late!"
  • "Feel in your pocket, Frank. Are you armed?" asked Northmour.
  • I obeyed him, and I think I must have become deadly pale. My revolver
  • had been taken from me.
  • "You see I have you in my power," he continued. "I disarmed you last
  • night while you were nursing Clara; but this morning--here--take your
  • pistol. No thanks!" he cried, holding up his hand. "I do not like them;
  • that is the only way you can annoy me now."
  • He began to walk forward across the links to meet the boat, and I
  • followed a step or two behind. In front of the pavilion I paused to see
  • where Mr. Huddlestone had fallen; but there was no sign of him, nor so
  • much as a trace of blood.
  • "Graden Floe," said Northmour.
  • He continued to advance till we had come to the head of the beach.
  • "No farther, please," said he. "Would you like to take her to Graden
  • House?"
  • "Thank you," I replied; "I shall try to get her to the minister's at
  • Graden-Wester."
  • The prow of the boat here grated on the beach, and a sailor jumped
  • ashore with a line in his hand.
  • "Wait a minute, lads!" cried Northmour; and then lower and to my private
  • ear: "You had better say nothing of all this to her," he added.
  • "On the contrary!" I broke out, "she shall know everything that I can
  • tell."
  • "You do not understand," he returned, with an air of great dignity. "It
  • will be nothing to her; she expects it of me. Good-bye!" he added, with
  • a nod.
  • I offered him my hand.
  • "Excuse me," said he. "It's small, I know; but I can't push things quite
  • so far as that. I don't wish any sentimental business, to sit by your
  • hearth a white-haired wanderer, and all that. Quite the contrary: I hope
  • to God I shall never again clap eyes on either one of you."
  • "Well, God bless you, Northmour!" I said heartily.
  • "Oh, yes," he returned.
  • He walked down the beach; and the man who was ashore gave him an arm on
  • board, and then shoved off and leaped into the bows himself. Northmour
  • took the tiller; the boat rose to the waves, and the oars between the
  • thole-pins sounded crisp and measured in the morning air.
  • They were not yet half-way to the _Red Earl_, and I was still watching
  • their progress, when the sun rose out of the sea.
  • One word more, and my story is done. Years after, Northmour was killed
  • fighting under the colours of Garibaldi for the liberation of the Tyrol.
  • A LODGING FOR THE NIGHT
  • A STORY OF FRANCIS VILLON
  • It was late in November 1456. The snow fell over Paris with rigorous,
  • relentless persistence; sometimes the wind made a sally and scattered it
  • in flying vortices; sometimes there was a lull, and flake after flake
  • descended out of the black night air, silent, circuitous, interminable.
  • To poor people, looking up under moist eyebrows, it seemed a wonder
  • where it all came from. Master Francis Villon had propounded an
  • alternative that afternoon at a tavern window: was it only Pagan Jupiter
  • plucking geese upon Olympus? or were the holy angels moulting? He was
  • only a poor Master of Arts, he went on; and as the question somewhat
  • touched upon divinity, he durst not venture to conclude. A silly old
  • priest from Montargis, who was among the company, treated the young
  • rascal to a bottle of wine in honour of the jest and the grimaces with
  • which it was accompanied, and swore on his own white beard that he had
  • been just such another irreverent dog when he was Villon's age.
  • The air was raw and pointed, but not far below freezing; and the flakes
  • were large, damp, and adhesive. The whole city was sheeted up. An army
  • might have marched from end to end and not a footfall given the alarm.
  • If there were any belated birds in heaven, they saw the island like a
  • large white patch, and the bridges like slim white spars, on the black
  • ground of the river. High up overhead the snow settled among the tracery
  • of the cathedral towers. Many a niche was drifted full; many a statue
  • wore a long white bonnet on its grotesque or sainted head. The gargoyles
  • had been transformed into great false noses, drooping towards the
  • point. The crockets were like upright pillows swollen on one side. In
  • the intervals of the wind there was a dull sound of dripping about the
  • precincts of the church.
  • The cemetery of St. John had taken its own share of the snow. All the
  • graves were decently covered; tall white housetops stood around in grave
  • array; worthy burghers were long ago in bed, be-nightcapped like their
  • domiciles; there was no light in all the neighbourhood but a little peep
  • from a lamp that hung swinging in the church choir, and tossed the
  • shadows to and fro in time to its oscillations. The clock was hard on
  • ten when the patrol went by with halberds and a lantern, beating their
  • hands; and they saw nothing suspicious about the cemetery of St. John.
  • Yet there was a small house, backed up against the cemetery wall, which
  • was still awake, and awake to evil purpose, in that snoring district.
  • There was not much to betray it from without; only a stream of warm
  • vapour from the chimney-top, a patch where the snow melted on the roof,
  • and a few half-obliterated footprints at the door. But within, behind
  • the shuttered windows, Master Francis Villon the poet, and some of the
  • thievish crew with whom he consorted, were keeping the night alive and
  • passing round the bottle.
  • A great pile of living embers diffused a strong and ruddy glow from the
  • arched chimney. Before this straddled Dom Nicolas, the Picardy monk,
  • with his skirts picked up and his fat legs bared to the comfortable
  • warmth. His dilated shadow cut the room in half; and the firelight only
  • escaped on either side of his broad person, and in a little pool between
  • his outspread feet. His face had the beery, bruised appearance of the
  • continual drinker's; it was covered with a network of congested veins,
  • purple in ordinary circumstances, but now pale violet, for even with his
  • back to the fire the cold pinched him on the other side. His cowl had
  • half-fallen back, and made a strange excrescence on either side of his
  • bull-neck. So he straddled, grumbling, and cut the room in half with
  • the shadow of his portly frame.
  • On the right, Villon and Guy Tabary were huddled together over a scrap
  • of parchment; Villon making a ballade which he was to call the "Ballade
  • of Roast Fish," and Tabary spluttering admiration at his shoulder. The
  • poet was a rag of a man, dark, little, and lean, with hollow cheeks and
  • thin black locks. He carried his four-and-twenty years with feverish
  • animation. Greed had made folds about his eyes, evil smiles had puckered
  • his mouth. The wolf and pig struggled together in his face. It was an
  • eloquent, sharp, ugly, earthly countenance. His hands were small and
  • prehensile, with fingers knotted like a cord; and they were continually
  • flickering in front of him in violent and expressive pantomime. As for
  • Tabary, a broad, complacent, admiring imbecility breathed from his
  • squash nose and slobbering lips: he had become a thief, just as he might
  • have become the most decent of burgesses, by the imperious chance that
  • rules the lives of human geese and human donkeys.
  • At the monk's other hand, Montigny and Thevenin Pensete played a game of
  • chance. About the first there clung some flavour of good birth and
  • training, as about a fallen angel; something long, lithe, and courtly in
  • the person; something aquiline and darkling in the face. Thevenin, poor
  • soul, was in great feather: he had done a good stroke of knavery that
  • afternoon in the Faubourg St. Jacques, and all night he had been gaining
  • from Montigny. A flat smile illuminated his face; his bald head shone
  • rosily in a garland of red curls; his little protuberant stomach shook
  • with silent chucklings as he swept in his gains.
  • "Doubles or quits?" said Thevenin.
  • Montigny nodded grimly.
  • "_Some may prefer to dine in state_," wrote Villon, "_On bread and
  • cheese on silver plate_. Or--or--help me out, Guido!"
  • Tabary giggled.
  • "_Or parsley on a golden dish_," scribbled the poet.
  • The wind was freshening without; it drove the snow before it, and
  • sometimes raised its voice in a victorious whoop, and made sepulchral
  • grumblings in the chimney. The cold was growing sharper as the night
  • went on. Villon, protruding his lips, imitated the gust with something
  • between a whistle and a groan. It was an eerie, uncomfortable talent of
  • the poet's, much detested by the Picardy monk.
  • "Can't you hear it rattle in the gibbet?" said Villon. "They are all
  • dancing the devil's jig on nothing, up there. You may dance, my
  • gallants, you'll be none the warmer! Whew! what a gust! Down went
  • somebody just now! A medlar the fewer on the three-legged
  • medlar-tree!--I say, Dom Nicolas, it'll be cold to-night on the St.
  • Denis Road?" he asked.
  • Dom Nicolas winked both his big eyes, and seemed to choke upon his
  • Adam's apple. Montfaucon, the great grisly Paris gibbet, stood hard by
  • the St. Denis Road, and the pleasantry touched him on the raw. As for
  • Tabary, he laughed immoderately over the medlars; he had never heard
  • anything more light-hearted; and he held his sides and crowed. Villon
  • fetched him a fillip on the nose, which turned his mirth into an attack
  • of coughing.
  • "Oh, stop that row," said Villon, "and think of rhymes to 'fish.'"
  • "Doubles or quits?" said Montigny doggedly.
  • "With all my heart," quoth Thevenin.
  • "Is there any more in that bottle?" asked the monk.
  • "Open another," said Villon. "How do you ever hope to fill that big
  • hogshead, your body, with little things like bottles? And how do you
  • expect to get to heaven? How many angels, do you fancy, can be spared to
  • carry up a single monk from Picardy? Or do you think yourself another
  • Elias--and they'll send the coach for you?"
  • "_Hominibus impossibile_," replied the monk, as he filled his glass.
  • Tabary was in ecstasies.
  • Villon filliped his nose again.
  • "Laugh at my jokes, if you like," he said.
  • "It was very good," objected Tabary.
  • Villon made a face at him. "Think of rhymes to 'fish'," he said, "What
  • have you to do with Latin? You'll wish you knew none of it at the great
  • assizes, when the devil calls for Guido Tabary, clericus--the devil with
  • the hump-back and red-hot finger-nails. Talking of the devil," he added
  • in a whisper, "look at Montigny!"
  • All three peered covertly at the gamester. He did not seem to be
  • enjoying his luck. His mouth was a little to a side; one nostril nearly
  • shut, and the other much inflated. The black dog was on his back, as
  • people say, in terrifying nursery metaphor; and he breathed hard under
  • the gruesome burden.
  • "He looks as if he could knife him," whispered Tabary, with round eyes.
  • The monk shuddered, and turned his face and spread his open hands to the
  • red embers. It was the cold that thus affected Dom Nicolas, and not any
  • excess of moral sensibility.
  • "Come now," said Villon--"about this ballade. How does it run so far?"
  • And beating time with his hand, he read it aloud to Tabary.
  • They were interrupted at the fourth rhyme by a brief and fatal movement
  • among the gamesters. The round was completed, and Thevenin was just
  • opening his mouth to claim another victory, when Montigny leaped up,
  • swift as an adder, and stabbed him to the heart. The blow took effect
  • before he had time to utter a cry, before he had time to move. A tremor
  • or two convulsed his frame; his hands opened and shut, his heels rattled
  • on the floor; then his head rolled backwards over one shoulder with the
  • eyes wide open; and Thevenin Pensete's spirit had returned to Him who
  • made it.
  • Every one sprang to his feet; but the business was over in two twos.
  • The four living fellows looked at each other in rather a ghastly
  • fashion; the dead man contemplating a corner of the roof with a singular
  • and ugly leer.
  • "My God!" said Tabary; and he began to pray in Latin.
  • Villon broke out into hysterical laughter. He came a step forward and
  • ducked a ridiculous bow at Thevenin, and laughed still louder. Then he
  • sat down suddenly, all of a heap, upon a stool, and continued laughing
  • bitterly as though he would shake himself to pieces.
  • Montigny recovered his composure first.
  • "Let's see what he has about him," he remarked; and he picked the dead
  • man's pockets with a practised hand, and divided the money into four
  • equal portions on the table. "There's for you," he said.
  • The monk received his share with a deep sigh, and a single stealthy
  • glance at the dead Thevenin, who was beginning to sink into himself and
  • topple sideways off the chair.
  • "We're all in for it," cried Villon, swallowing his mirth. "It's a
  • hanging job for every man jack of us that's here--not to speak of those
  • who aren't." He made a shocking gesture in the air with his raised right
  • hand, and put out his tongue and threw his head on one side, so as to
  • counterfeit the appearance of one who has been hanged. Then he pocketed
  • his share of the spoil, and executed a shuffle with his feet as if to
  • restore the circulation.
  • Tabary was the last to help himself; he made a dash at the money, and
  • retired to the other end of the apartment.
  • Montigny stuck Thevenin upright in the chair, and drew out the dagger,
  • which was followed by a jet of blood.
  • "You fellows had better be moving," he said, as he wiped the blade on
  • his victim's doublet.
  • "I think we had," returned Villon, with a gulp. "Damn his fat head!" he
  • broke out. "It sticks in my throat like phlegm. What right has a man to
  • have red hair when he is dead?" And he fell all of a heap again upon
  • the stool, and fairly covered his face with his hands.
  • Montigny and Dom Nicolas laughed aloud, even Tabary feebly chiming in.
  • "Cry baby," said the monk.
  • "I always said he was a woman," added Montigny with a sneer. "Sit up,
  • can't you?" he went on, giving another shake to the murdered body.
  • "Tread out that fire, Nick!"
  • But Nick was better employed; he was quietly taking Villon's purse, as
  • the poet sat, limp and trembling, on the stool where he had been making
  • a ballade not three minutes before. Montigny and Tabary dumbly demanded
  • a share of the booty, which the monk silently promised as he passed the
  • little bag into the bosom of his gown. In many ways an artistic nature
  • unfits a man for practical existence.
  • No sooner had the theft been accomplished than Villon shook himself,
  • jumped to his feet, and began helping to scatter and extinguish the
  • embers. Meanwhile Montigny opened the door and cautiously peered into
  • the street. The coast was clear; there was no meddlesome patrol in
  • sight. Still it was judged wiser to slip out severally; and as Villon
  • was himself in a hurry to escape from the neighbourhood of the dead
  • Thevenin, and the rest were in a still greater hurry to get rid of him
  • before he should discover the loss of his money, he was the first by
  • general consent to issue forth into the street.
  • The wind had triumphed and swept all the clouds from heaven. Only a few
  • vapours, as thin as moonlight, fleeted rapidly across the stars. It was
  • bitter cold; and by a common optical effect, things seemed almost more
  • definite than in the broadest daylight. The sleeping city was absolutely
  • still: a company of white hoods, a field full of little Alps, below the
  • twinkling stars. Villon cursed his fortune. Would it were still snowing!
  • Now, wherever he went, he left an indelible trail behind him on the
  • glittering streets; wherever he went he was still tethered to the house
  • by the cemetery of St. John; wherever he went he must weave, with his
  • own plodding feet, the rope that bound him to the crime and would bind
  • him to the gallows. The leer of the dead man came back to him with a new
  • significance. He snapped his fingers as if to pluck up his own spirits,
  • and choosing a street at random, stepped boldly forward in the snow.
  • Two things preoccupied him as he went: the aspect of the gallows at
  • Montfaucon in this bright windy phase of the night's existence, for one;
  • and for another, the look of the dead man with his bald head and garland
  • of red curls. Both struck cold upon his heart, and he kept quickening
  • his pace as if he could escape from unpleasant thoughts by mere
  • fleetness of foot. Sometimes he looked back over his shoulder with a
  • sudden nervous jerk; but he was the only moving thing in the white
  • streets, except when the wind swooped round a corner and threw up the
  • snow, which was beginning to freeze, in spouts of glittering dust.
  • Suddenly he saw, a long way before him, a black clump and a couple of
  • lanterns. The clump was in motion, and the lanterns swung as though
  • carried by men walking. It was a patrol. And though it was merely
  • crossing his line of march, he judged it wiser to get out of eyeshot as
  • speedily as he could. He was not in the humour to be challenged, and he
  • was conscious of making a very conspicuous mark upon the snow. Just on
  • his left hand there stood a great hotel, with some turrets and a large
  • porch before the door; it was half-ruinous, he remembered, and had long
  • stood empty; and so he made three steps of it and jumped into the
  • shelter of the porch. It was pretty dark inside, after the glimmer of
  • the snowy streets, and he was groping forward with outspread hands, when
  • he stumbled over some substance which offered an indescribable mixture
  • of resistances, hard and soft, firm and loose. His heart gave a leap,
  • and he sprang two steps back and stared dreadfully at the obstacle. Then
  • he gave a little laugh of relief. It was only a woman, and she dead. He
  • knelt beside her to make sure upon this latter point. She was freezing
  • cold, and rigid like a stick. A little ragged finery fluttered in the
  • wind about her hair, and her cheeks had been heavily rouged that same
  • afternoon. Her pockets were quite empty; but in her stocking, underneath
  • the garter, Villon found two of the small coins that went by the name of
  • whites. It was little enough; but it was always something; and the poet
  • was moved with a deep sense of pathos that she should have died before
  • she had spent her money. That seemed to him a dark and pitiable mystery;
  • and he looked from the coins in his hand to the dead woman, and back
  • again to the coins, shaking his head over the riddle of man's life.
  • Henry V. of England, dying at Vincennes just after he had conquered
  • France, and this poor jade cut off by a cold draught in a great man's
  • doorway, before she had time to spend her couple of whites--it seemed a
  • cruel way to carry on the world. Two whites would have taken such a
  • little while to squander; and yet it would have been one more good taste
  • in the mouth, one more smack of the lips, before the devil got the soul,
  • and the body was left to birds and vermin. He would like to use all his
  • tallow before the light was blown out and the lantern broken.
  • While these thoughts were passing through his mind, he was feeling, half
  • mechanically, for his purse. Suddenly his heart stopped beating; a
  • feeling of cold scales passed up the back of his legs, and a cold blow
  • seemed to fall upon his scalp. He stood petrified for a moment; then he
  • felt again with one feverish movement; and then his loss burst upon him,
  • and he was covered at once with perspiration. To spendthrifts money is
  • so living and actual--it is such a thin veil between them and their
  • pleasures! There is only one limit to their fortune--that of time; and a
  • spendthrift with only a few crowns is the Emperor of Rome until they are
  • spent. For such a person to lose his money is to suffer the most
  • shocking reverse, and fall from heaven to hell, from all to nothing, in
  • a breath. And all the more if he has put his head in the halter for it;
  • if he may be hanged to-morrow for that same purse so dearly earned, so
  • foolishly departed! Villon stood and cursed; he threw the two whites
  • into the street; he shook his fist at heaven; he stamped, and was not
  • horrified to find himself trampling the poor corpse. Then he began
  • rapidly to retrace his steps towards the house beside the cemetery. He
  • had forgotten all fear of the patrol, which was long gone by at any
  • rate, and had no idea but that of his lost purse. It was in vain that he
  • looked right and left upon the snow: nothing was to be seen. He had not
  • dropped it in the streets. Had it fallen in the house? He would have
  • liked dearly to go in and see; but the idea of the grisly occupant
  • unmanned him. And he saw besides, as he drew near, that their efforts to
  • put out the fire had been unsuccessful; on the contrary, it had broken
  • into a blaze, and a changeful light played in the chinks of door and
  • window, and revived his terror for the authorities and Paris gibbet.
  • He returned to the hotel with the porch, and groped about upon the snow
  • for the money he had thrown away in his childish passion. But he could
  • only find one white; the other had probably struck sideways and sunk
  • deeply in. With a single white in his pocket, all his projects for a
  • rousing night in some wild tavern vanished utterly away. And it was not
  • only pleasure that fled laughing from his grasp; positive discomfort,
  • positive pain, attacked him as he stood ruefully before the porch. His
  • perspiration had dried upon him; and though the wind had now fallen, a
  • binding frost was setting in stronger with every hour, and he felt
  • benumbed and sick at heart. What was to be done? Late as was the hour,
  • improbable as was success, he would try the house of his adopted father,
  • the chaplain of St. Benoît.
  • He ran there all the way, and knocked timidly. There was no answer. He
  • knocked again and again, taking heart with every stroke; and at last
  • steps were heard approaching from within. A barred wicket fell open in
  • the iron-studded door, and emitted a gush of yellow light.
  • "Hold up your face to the wicket," said the chaplain from within.
  • "It's only me," whimpered Villon.
  • "Oh, it's only you, is it?" returned the chaplain; and he cursed him
  • with foul unpriestly oaths for disturbing him at such an hour, and bade
  • him be off to hell, where he came from.
  • "My hands are blue to the wrist," pleaded Villon; "my feet are dead and
  • full of twinges: my nose aches with the sharp air; the cold lies at my
  • heart. I may be dead before morning. Only this once, father, and before
  • God I will never ask again!"
  • "You should have come earlier," said the ecclesiastic coolly. "Young men
  • require a lesson now and then." He shut the wicket and retired
  • deliberately into the interior of the house.
  • Villon was beside himself; he beat upon the door with his hands and
  • feet, and shouted hoarsely after the chaplain.
  • "Wormy old fox!" he cried. "If I had my hand under your twist, I would
  • send you flying headlong into the bottomless pit."
  • A door shut in the interior, faintly audible to the poet down long
  • passages. He passed his hand over his mouth with an oath. And then the
  • humour of the situation struck him, and he laughed and looked lightly up
  • to heaven, where the stars seemed to be winking over his discomfiture.
  • What was to be done? It looked very like a night in the frosty streets.
  • The idea of the dead woman popped into his imagination, and gave him a
  • hearty fright; what had happened to her in the early night might very
  • well happen to him before morning. And he so young! and with such
  • immense possibilities of disorderly amusement before him! He felt quite
  • pathetic over the notion of his own fate, as if it had been some one
  • else's, and made a little imaginative vignette of the scene in the
  • morning, when they should find his body.
  • He passed all his chances under review, turning the white between his
  • thumb and forefinger. Unfortunately he was on bad terms with some old
  • friends who would once have taken pity on him in such a plight. He had
  • lampooned them in verses, he had beaten and cheated them; and yet now,
  • when he was in so close a pinch, he thought there was at least one who
  • might perhaps relent. It was a chance. It was worth trying at least, and
  • he would go and see.
  • On the way, two little accidents happened to him which coloured his
  • musings in a very different manner. For, first, he fell in with the
  • track of a patrol, and walked in it for some hundred yards, although it
  • lay out of his direction. And this spirited him up; at least he had
  • confused his trail; for he was still possessed with the idea of people
  • tracking him all about Paris over the snow, and collaring him next
  • morning before he was awake. The other matter affected him very
  • differently. He passed a street corner, where, not so long before, a
  • woman and her child had been devoured by wolves. This was just the kind
  • of weather, he reflected, when wolves might take it into their heads to
  • enter Paris again; and a lone man in these deserted streets would run
  • the chance of something worse than a mere scare. He stopped and looked
  • upon the place with an unpleasant interest--it was a centre where
  • several lanes intersected each other; and he looked down them all one
  • after another, and held his breath to listen, lest he should detect some
  • galloping black things on the snow, or hear the sound of howling between
  • him and the river. He remembered his mother telling him the story and
  • pointing out the spot, while he was yet a child. His mother! If he only
  • knew where she lived, he might make sure at least of shelter. He
  • determined he would inquire upon the morrow; nay, he would go and see
  • her too, poor old girl! So thinking, he arrived at his destination--his
  • last hope for the night.
  • The house was quite dark, like its neighbours, and yet after a few taps,
  • he heard a movement overhead, a door opening, and a cautious voice
  • asking who was there. The poet named himself in a loud whisper, and
  • waited, not without some trepidation, the result. Nor had he to wait
  • long. A window was suddenly opened, and a pailful of slops splashed down
  • upon the doorstep. Villon had not been unprepared for something of the
  • sort, and had put himself as much in shelter as the nature of the porch
  • admitted; but for all that, he was deplorably drenched below the waist.
  • His hose began to freeze almost at once. Death from cold and exposure
  • stared him in the face; he remembered he was of phthisical tendency, and
  • began coughing tentatively. But the gravity of the danger steadied his
  • nerves. He stopped a few hundred yards from the door where he had been
  • so rudely used, and reflected with his finger to his nose. He could only
  • see one way of getting a lodging, and that was to take it. He had
  • noticed a house not far away, which looked as if it might be easily
  • broken into, and thither he betook himself promptly, entertaining
  • himself on the way with the idea of a room still hot, with a table still
  • loaded with the remains of supper, where he might pass the rest of the
  • black hours, and whence he should issue, on the morrow, with an armful
  • of valuable plate. He even considered on what viands and what wines he
  • should prefer; and as he was calling the roll of his favourite dainties,
  • roast fish presented itself to his mind with an odd mixture of amusement
  • and horror.
  • "I shall never finish that ballade," he thought to himself; and then,
  • with another shudder at the recollection, "Oh, damn his fat head!" he
  • repeated fervently, and spat upon the snow.
  • The house in question looked dark at first sight; but as Villon made a
  • preliminary inspection in search of the handiest point of attack, a
  • little twinkle of light caught his eye from behind a curtained window.
  • "The devil!" he thought. "People awake! Some student or some saint,
  • confound the crew! Can't they get drunk and lie in bed snoring like
  • their neighbours! What's the good of curfew, and poor devils of
  • bell-ringers jumping at a rope's-end in bell-towers? What's the use of
  • day, if people sit up all night? The gripes to them!" He grinned as he
  • saw where his logic was leading him. "Every man to his business, after
  • all," added he, "and if they're awake, by the lord, I may come by a
  • supper honestly for this once, and cheat the devil."
  • He went boldly to the door and knocked with an assured hand. On both
  • previous occasions, he had knocked timidly and with some dread of
  • attracting notice; but now, when he had just discarded the thought of a
  • burglarious entry, knocking at a door seemed a mighty simple and
  • innocent proceeding. The sound of his blows echoed through the house
  • with thin, phantasmal reverberations, as though it were quite empty; but
  • these had scarcely died away before a measured tread drew near, a couple
  • of bolts were withdrawn, and one wing was opened broadly, as though no
  • guile or fear of guile were known to those within. A tall figure of a
  • man, muscular and spare, but a little bent, confronted Villon. The head
  • was in massive bulk, but finely sculptured; the nose blunt at the
  • bottom, but refining upward to where it joined a pair of strong and
  • honest eyebrows; the mouth and eyes surrounded with delicate markings,
  • and the whole face based upon a thick white beard, boldly and squarely
  • trimmed. Seen as it was by the light of a flickering hand-lamp, it
  • looked perhaps nobler than it had a right to do; but it was a fine face,
  • honourable rather than intelligent, strong, simple, and righteous.
  • "You knock late, sir," said the old man in resonant, courteous tones.
  • Villon cringed, and brought up many servile words of apology; at a
  • crisis of this sort the beggar was uppermost in him, and the man of
  • genius hid his head with confusion.
  • "You are cold," repeated the old man, "and hungry? Well, step in." And
  • he ordered him into the house with a noble enough gesture.
  • "Some great seigneur," thought Villon, as his host setting down the
  • lamp on the flagged pavement of the entry, shot the bolts once more into
  • their places.
  • "You will pardon me if I go in front," he said, when this was done; and
  • he preceded the poet upstairs into a large apartment, warmed with a pan
  • of charcoal and lit by a great lamp hanging from the roof. It was very
  • bare of furniture: only some gold plate on a sideboard; some folios; and
  • a stand of armour between the windows. Some smart tapestry hung upon the
  • walls, representing the crucifixion of our Lord in one piece, and in
  • another a scene of shepherds and shepherdesses by a running stream. Over
  • the chimney was a shield of arms.
  • "Will you seat yourself," said the old man, "and forgive me if I leave
  • you? I am alone in my house to-night, and if you are to eat I must
  • forage for you myself."
  • No sooner was his host gone than Villon leaped from the chair on which
  • he had just seated himself, and began examining the room, with the
  • stealth and passion of a cat. He weighed the gold flagons in his hand,
  • opened all the folios, and investigated the arms upon the shield, and
  • the stuff with which the seats were lined. He raised the window
  • curtains, and saw that the windows were set with rich stained glass in
  • figures, so far as he could see, of martial import. Then he stood in the
  • middle of the room, drew a long breath, and retaining it with puffed
  • cheeks, looked round and round him, turning on his heels, as if to
  • impress every feature of the apartment on his memory.
  • "Seven pieces of plate," he said. "If there had been ten, I would have
  • risked it. A fine house, and a fine old master, so help me all the
  • saints!"
  • And just then, hearing the old man's tread returning along the corridor,
  • he stole back to his chair, and began humbly toasting his wet legs
  • before the charcoal pan.
  • His entertainer had a plate of meat in one hand and a jug of wine in the
  • other. He set down the plate upon the table, motioning Villon to draw in
  • his chair, and going to the sideboard, brought back two goblets, which
  • he filled.
  • "I drink to your better fortune," he said, gravely touching Villon's cup
  • with his own.
  • "To our better acquaintance," said the poet, growing bold. A mere man of
  • the people would have been awed by the courtesy of the old seigneur, but
  • Villon was hardened in that matter; he had made mirth for great lords
  • before now, and found them as black rascals as himself. And so he
  • devoted himself to the viands with a ravenous gusto, while the old man,
  • leaning backward, watched him with steady, curious eyes.
  • "You have blood on your shoulder, my man," he said.
  • Montigny must have laid his wet right hand upon him as he left the
  • house. He cursed Montigny in his heart.
  • "It was none of my shedding," he stammered.
  • "I had not supposed so," returned his host quietly. "A brawl?"
  • "Well, something of that sort," Villon admitted with a quaver.
  • "Perhaps a fellow murdered?"
  • "Oh, no--not murdered," said the poet, more and more confused. "It was
  • all fair play--murdered by accident. I had no hand in it, God strike me
  • dead!" he added fervently.
  • "One rogue the fewer, I daresay," observed the master of the house.
  • "You may dare to say that," agreed Villon, infinitely relieved. "As big
  • a rogue as there is between here and Jerusalem. He turned up his toes
  • like a lamb. But it was a nasty thing to look at. I daresay you've seen
  • dead men in your time, my lord?" he added, glancing at the armour.
  • "Many," said the old man. "I have followed the wars, as you imagine."
  • Villon laid down his knife and fork, which he had just taken up again.
  • "Were any of them bald?" he asked.
  • "Oh yes, and with hair as white as mine."
  • "I don't think I should mind the white so much," said Villon. "His was
  • red." And he had a return of his shuddering and tendency to laughter,
  • which he drowned with a great draught of wine. "I'm a little put out
  • when I think of it," he went on. "I knew him--damn him! And then the
  • cold gives a man fancies--or the fancies give a man cold, I don't know
  • which."
  • "Have you any money?" asked the old man.
  • "I have one white," returned the poet, laughing. "I got it out of a dead
  • jade's stocking in a porch. She was as dead as Cæsar, poor wench, and as
  • cold as a church, with bits of ribbon sticking in her hair. This is a
  • hard world in winter for wolves and wenches and poor rogues like me."
  • "I," said the old man, "am Enguerrand de la Feuillée, seigneur de
  • Brisetout, bailly du Patatrac. Who and what may you be?"
  • Villon rose and made a suitable reverence. "I am called Francis Villon,"
  • he said, "a poor Master of Arts of this university. I know some Latin,
  • and a deal of vice. I can make chansons, ballades, lais, virelais, and
  • roundels, and I am very fond of wine. I was born in a garret, and I
  • shall not improbably die upon the gallows. I may add, my lord, that from
  • this night forward I am your lordship's very obsequious servant to
  • command."
  • "No servant of mine," said the knight; "my guest for this evening, and
  • no more."
  • "A very grateful guest," said Villon politely; and he drank in dumb show
  • to his entertainer.
  • "You are shrewd," began the old man, tapping his forehead, "very shrewd;
  • you have learning; you are a clerk; and yet you take a small piece of
  • money off a dead woman in the street. Is it not a kind of theft?"
  • "It is a kind of theft much practised in the wars, my lord."
  • "The wars are the field of honour," returned the old man proudly.
  • "There a man plays his life upon the cast; he fights in the name of his
  • lord the king, his Lord God, and all their lordships the holy saints and
  • angels."
  • "Put it," said Villon, "that I were really a thief, should I not play my
  • life also, and against heavier odds?"
  • "For gain, but not for honour."
  • "Gain?" repeated Villon, with a shrug. "Gain! The poor fellow wants
  • supper, and takes it. So does the soldier in a campaign. Why, what are
  • all these requisitions we hear so much about? If they are not gain to
  • those who take them, they are loss enough to the others. The men-at-arms
  • drink by a good fire, while the burgher bites his nails to buy them wine
  • and wood. I have seen a good many ploughmen swinging on trees about the
  • country; ay, I have seen thirty on one elm, and a very poor figure they
  • made; and when I asked some one how all these came to be hanged, I was
  • told it was because they could not scrape together enough crowns to
  • satisfy the men-at-arms."
  • "These things are a necessity of war, which the low-born must endure
  • with constancy. It is true that some captains drive overhard; there are
  • spirits in every rank not easily moved by pity; and indeed many follow
  • arms who are no better than brigands."
  • "You see," said the poet, "you cannot separate the soldier from the
  • brigand; and what is a thief but an isolated brigand with circumspect
  • manners? I steal a couple of mutton chops, without so much as disturbing
  • people's sleep; the farmer grumbles a bit, but sups none the less
  • wholesomely on what remains. You come up blowing gloriously on a
  • trumpet, take away the whole sheep, and beat the farmer pitifully into
  • the bargain. I have no trumpet; I am only Tom, Dick, or Harry; I am a
  • rogue and a dog, and hanging's too good for me--with all my heart; but
  • just you ask the farmer which of us he prefers, just find out which of
  • us he lies awake to curse on cold nights."
  • "Look at us two," said his lordship. "I am old, strong, and honoured. If
  • I were turned from my house to-morrow, hundreds would be proud to
  • shelter me. Poor people would go out and pass the night in the streets
  • with their children if I merely hinted that I wished to be alone. And I
  • find you up, wandering homeless, and picking farthings off dead women by
  • the wayside! I fear no man and nothing; I have seen you tremble and lose
  • countenance at a word. I wait God's summons contentedly in my own house,
  • or, if it please the king to call me out again, upon the field of
  • battle. You look for the gallows; a rough, swift death, without hope or
  • honour. Is there no difference between these two?"
  • "As far as to the moon," Villon acquiesced. "But if I had been born lord
  • of Brisetout, and you had been the poor scholar Francis, would the
  • difference have been any the less? Should not I have been warming my
  • knees at this charcoal pan, and would not you have been groping for
  • farthings in the snow? Should not I have been the soldier, and you the
  • thief?"
  • "A thief!" cried the old man. "I a thief! If you understood your words,
  • you would repent them."
  • Villon turned out his hands with a gesture of inimitable impudence. "If
  • your lordship had done me the honour to follow my argument!" he said.
  • "I do you too much honour in submitting to your presence," said the
  • knight. "Learn to curb your tongue when you speak with old and
  • honourable men, or some one hastier than I may reprove you in a sharper
  • fashion." And he rose and paced the lower end of the apartment,
  • struggling with anger and antipathy. Villon surreptitiously refilled his
  • cup, and settled himself more comfortably in the chair, crossing his
  • knees and leaning his head upon one hand and the elbow against the back
  • of the chair. He was now replete and warm; and he was in nowise
  • frightened for his host, having gauged him as justly as was possible
  • between two such different characters. The night was far spent, and in
  • a very comfortable fashion after all; and he felt morally certain of a
  • safe departure on the morrow.
  • "Tell me one thing," said the old man, pausing in his walk. "Are you
  • really a thief?"
  • "I claim the sacred rights of hospitality," returned the poet. "My lord,
  • I am."
  • "You are very young," the knight continued.
  • "I should never have been so old," replied Villon, showing his fingers,
  • "if I had not helped myself with these ten talents. They have been my
  • nursing-mothers and my nursing-fathers."
  • "You may still repent and change."
  • "I repent daily," said the poet. "There are few people more given to
  • repentance than poor Francis. As for change, let somebody change my
  • circumstances. A man must continue to eat, if it were only that he may
  • continue to repent."
  • "The change must begin in the heart," returned the old man solemnly.
  • "My dear lord," answered Villon, "do you really fancy that I steal for
  • pleasure? I hate stealing, like any other piece of work or of danger. My
  • teeth chatter when I see a gallows. But I must eat, I must drink, I must
  • mix in society of some sort. What the devil! Man is not a solitary
  • animal--_Cui Deus foeminam tradit_. Make me king's pantler--make me
  • abbot of St. Denis; make me bailly of the Patatrac; and then I shall be
  • changed indeed. But as long as you leave me the poor scholar Francis
  • Villon, without a farthing, why, of course, I remain the same."
  • "The grace of God is all-powerful."
  • "I should be a heretic to question it," said Francis. "It has made you
  • lord of Brisetout and bailly of the Patatrac; it has given me nothing
  • but the quick wits under my hat and these ten toes upon my hands. May I
  • help myself to wine? I thank you respectfully. By God's grace, you have
  • a very superior vintage."
  • The lord of Brisetout walked to and fro with his hands behind his back.
  • Perhaps he was not yet quite settled in his mind about the parallel
  • between thieves and soldiers; perhaps Villon had interested him by some
  • cross-thread of sympathy; perhaps his wits were simply muddled by so
  • much unfamiliar reasoning; but whatever the cause, he somehow yearned to
  • convert the young man to a better way of thinking, and could not make up
  • his mind to drive him forth again into the street.
  • "There is something more than I can understand in this," he said at
  • length. "Your mouth is full of subtleties, and the devil has led you
  • very far astray; but the devil is only a very weak spirit before God's
  • truth, and all his subtleties vanish at a word of true honour, like
  • darkness at morning. Listen to me once more. I learned long ago that a
  • gentleman should live chivalrously and lovingly to God, and the king,
  • and his lady; and though I have seen many strange things done, I have
  • still striven to command my ways upon that rule. It is not only written
  • in all noble histories, but in every man's heart, if he will take care
  • to read. You speak of food and wine, and I know very well that hunger is
  • a difficult trial to endure; but you do not speak of other wants; you
  • say nothing of honour, of faith to God and other men, of courtesy, of
  • love without reproach. It may be that I am not very wise--and yet I
  • think I am--but you seem to me like one who has lost his way and made a
  • great error in life. You are attending to the little wants, and you have
  • totally forgotten the great and only real ones, like a man who should be
  • doctoring a toothache on the Judgment Day. For such things as honour and
  • love and faith are not only nobler than food and drink, but indeed I
  • think that we desire them more, and suffer more sharply for their
  • absence. I speak to you as I think you will most easily understand me.
  • Are you not, while careful to fill your belly, disregarding another
  • appetite in your heart, which spoils the pleasure of your life and keeps
  • you continually wretched?"
  • Villon was sensibly nettled under all this sermonising. "You think I
  • have no sense of honour!" he cried. "I'm poor enough, God knows! It's
  • hard to see rich people with their gloves, and you blowing in your
  • hands. An empty belly is a bitter thing, although you speak so lightly
  • of it. If you had had as many as I, perhaps you would change your tune.
  • Any way I'm a thief--make the most of that--but I'm not a devil from
  • hell, God strike me dead! I would have you to know I've an honour of my
  • own, as good as yours, though I don't prate about it all day long, as if
  • it was a God's miracle to have any. It seems quite natural to me; I keep
  • it in its box till it's wanted. Why now, look you here, how long have I
  • been in this room with you? Did you not tell me you were alone in the
  • house? Look at your gold plate! You're strong, if you like, but you're
  • old and unarmed, and I have my knife. What did I want but a jerk of the
  • elbow and here would have been you with the cold steel in your bowels,
  • and there would have been me, linking in the streets, with an armful of
  • gold cups! Did you suppose I hadn't wit enough to see that? And I
  • scorned the action. There are your damned goblets, as safe as in a
  • church; there are you, with your heart ticking as good as new; and here
  • am I, ready to go out again as poor as I came in, with my one white that
  • you threw in my teeth! And you think I have no sense of honour--God
  • strike me dead!"
  • The old man stretched out his right arm. "I will tell you what you are,"
  • he said. "You are a rogue, my man, an impudent and a black-hearted rogue
  • and vagabond. I have passed an hour with you. Oh! believe me, I feel
  • myself disgraced! And you have eaten and drunk at my table. But now I am
  • sick at your presence; the day has come, and the night-bird should be
  • off to his roost. Will you go before, or after?"
  • "Which you please," returned the poet, rising. "I believe you to be
  • strictly honourable." He thoughtfully emptied his cup. "I wish I could
  • add you were intelligent," he went on, knocking on his head with his
  • knuckles. "Age, age! the brains stiff and rheumatic."
  • The old man preceded him from a point of self-respect; Villon followed,
  • whistling, with his thumbs in his girdle.
  • "God pity you," said the lord of Brisetout at the door.
  • "Good-bye, papa," returned Villon, with a yawn. "Many thanks for the
  • cold mutton."
  • The door closed behind him. The dawn was breaking over the white roofs.
  • A chill, uncomfortable morning ushered in the day. Villon stood and
  • heartily stretched himself in the middle of the road.
  • "A very dull old gentleman," he thought. "I wonder what his goblets may
  • be worth."
  • THE SIRE DE MALÉTROIT'S DOOR
  • Denis de Beaulieu was not yet two-and-twenty, but he counted himself a
  • grown man, and a very accomplished cavalier into the bargain. Lads were
  • early formed in that rough, war-faring epoch; and when one has been in a
  • pitched battle and a dozen raids, has killed one's man in an honourable
  • fashion, and knows a thing or two of strategy and mankind, a certain
  • swagger in the gait is surely to be pardoned. He had put up his horse
  • with due care, and supped with due deliberation; and then, in a very
  • agreeable frame of mind, went out to pay a visit in the grey of the
  • evening. It was not a very wise proceeding on the young man's part. He
  • would have done better to remain beside the fire or go decently to bed.
  • For the town was full of the troops of Burgundy and England under a
  • mixed command; and though Denis was there on safe-conduct, his
  • safe-conduct was like to serve him little on a chance encounter.
  • It was September 1429; the weather had fallen sharp; a flighty piping
  • wind, laden with showers, beat about the township; and the dead leaves
  • ran riot along the streets. Here and there a window was already lighted
  • up; and the noise of men-at-arms making merry over supper within came
  • forth in fits and was swallowed up and carried away by the wind. The
  • night fell swiftly; the flag of England, fluttering on the spire-top,
  • grew ever fainter and fainter against the flying clouds--a black speck
  • like a swallow in the tumultuous, leaden chaos of the sky. As the night
  • fell the wind rose, and began to hoot under archways and roar amid the
  • tree-tops in the valley below the town.
  • Denis de Beaulieu walked fast, and was soon knocking at his friend's
  • door; but though he promised himself to stay only a little while and
  • make an early return, his welcome was so pleasant, and he found so much
  • to delay him, that it was already long past midnight before he said
  • good-bye upon the threshold. The wind had fallen again in the meanwhile;
  • the night was as black as the grave; not a star, nor a glimmer of
  • moonshine, slipped through the canopy of cloud. Denis was ill-acquainted
  • with the intricate lanes of Château Landon; even by daylight he had
  • found some trouble in picking his way; and in this absolute darkness he
  • soon lost it altogether. He was certain of one thing only--to keep
  • mounting the hill; for his friend's house lay at the lower end, or tail,
  • of Château Landon, while the inn was up at the head, under the great
  • church spire. With this clue to go upon he stumbled and groped forward,
  • now breathing more freely in open places where there was a good slice of
  • sky overhead, now feeling along the wall in stifling closes. It is an
  • eerie and mysterious position to be thus submerged in opaque blackness
  • in an almost unknown town. The silence is terrifying in its
  • possibilities. The touch of cold window-bars to the exploring hand
  • startles the man like the touch of a toad; the inequalities of the
  • pavement shake his heart into his mouth; a piece of denser darkness
  • threatens an ambuscade or a chasm in the pathway; and where the air is
  • brighter, the houses put on strange and bewildering appearances, as if
  • to lead him farther from his way. For Denis, who had to regain his inn
  • without attracting notice, there was real danger as well as mere
  • discomfort in the walk; and he went warily and boldly at once, and at
  • every corner paused to make an observation.
  • He had been for some time threading a lane so narrow that he could touch
  • a wall with either hand, when it began to open out and go sharply
  • downward. Plainly this lay no longer in the direction of his inn; but
  • the hope of a little more light tempted him forward to reconnoitre. The
  • lane ended in a terrace with a bartizan wall, which gave an outlook
  • between high houses, as out of an embrasure, into the valley lying dark
  • and formless several hundred feet below. Denis looked down, and could
  • discern a few tree-tops waving and a single speck of brightness where
  • the river ran across a weir. The weather was clearing up, and the sky
  • had lightened, so as to show the outline of the heavier clouds and the
  • dark margin of the hills. By the uncertain glimmer, the house on his
  • left hand should be a place of some pretensions; it was surmounted by
  • several pinnacles and turret-tops; the round stern of a chapel, with a
  • fringe of flying buttresses, projected boldly from the main block; and
  • the door was sheltered under a deep porch carved with figures and
  • overhung by two long gargoyles. The windows of the chapel gleamed
  • through their intricate tracery with a light as of many tapers, and
  • threw out the buttresses and the peaked roof in a more intense blackness
  • against the sky. It was plainly the hotel of some great family of the
  • neighbourhood; and as it reminded Denis of a town-house of his own at
  • Bourges, he stood for some time gazing up at it and mentally gauging the
  • skill of the architects and the consideration of the two families.
  • There seemed to be no issue to the terrace but the lane by which he had
  • reached it; he could only retrace his steps, but he had gained some
  • notion of his whereabouts, and hoped by this means to hit the main
  • thoroughfare and speedily regain the inn. He was reckoning without that
  • chapter of accidents which was to make this night memorable above all
  • others in his career; for he had not gone back above a hundred yards
  • before he saw a light coming to meet him, and heard loud voices speaking
  • together in the echoing narrows of the lane. It was a party of
  • men-at-arms going the night-round with torches. Denis assured himself
  • that they had all been making free with the wine-bowl, and were in no
  • mood to be particular about safe-conducts or the niceties of chivalrous
  • war. It was as like as not that they would kill him like a dog and leave
  • him where he fell. The situation was inspiriting, but nervous. Their own
  • torches would conceal him from sight, he reflected; and he hoped that
  • they would drown the noise of his footsteps with their own empty
  • voices. If he were but fleet and silent, he might evade their notice
  • altogether.
  • Unfortunately, as he turned to beat a retreat, his foot rolled upon a
  • pebble; he fell against the wall with an ejaculation, and his sword rang
  • loudly on the stones. Two or three voices demanded who went there--some
  • in French, some in English; but Denis made no reply, and ran the faster
  • down the lane. Once upon the terrace, he paused to look back. They still
  • kept calling after him, and just then began to double the pace in
  • pursuit, with a considerable clank of armour, and great tossing of the
  • torchlight to and fro in the narrow jaws of the passage.
  • Denis cast a look around and darted into the porch. There he might
  • escape observation, or--if that were too much to expect--was in a
  • capital posture whether for parley or defence. So thinking, he drew his
  • sword and tried to set his back against the door. To his surprise, it
  • yielded behind his weight; and though he turned in a moment, continued
  • to swing back on oiled and noiseless hinges, until it stood wide open on
  • a black interior. When things fall out opportunely for the person
  • concerned, he is not apt to be critical about the how or why, his own
  • immediate personal convenience seeming a sufficient reason for the
  • strangest oddities and revolutions in our sublunary things; and so
  • Denis, without a moment's hesitation, stepped within and partly closed
  • the door behind him to conceal his place of refuge. Nothing was further
  • from his thoughts than to close it altogether; but for some inexplicable
  • reason--perhaps by a spring or a weight--the ponderous mass of oak
  • whipped itself out of his fingers and clanked to, with a formidable
  • rumble and noise like the falling of an automatic bar.
  • The round, at that very moment, debouched upon the terrace, and
  • proceeded to summon him with shouts and curses. He heard them ferreting
  • in the dark corners; the stock of a lance even rattled along the outer
  • surface of the door behind which he stood; but these gentlemen were in
  • too high a humour to be long delayed, and soon made off down a
  • corkscrew pathway which had escaped Denis's observation, and passed out
  • of sight and hearing along the battlements of the town.
  • Denis breathed again. He gave them a few minutes' grace for fear of
  • accidents, and then groped about for some means of opening the door and
  • slipping forth again. The inner surface was quite smooth, not a handle,
  • not a moulding, not a projection of any sort. He got his finger-nails
  • round the edges and pulled, but the mass was immovable. He shook it; it
  • was as firm as a rock. Denis de Beaulieu frowned and gave vent to a
  • little noiseless whistle. What ailed the door? he wondered. Why was it
  • open? How came it to shut so easily and so effectually after him? There
  • was something obscure and underhand about all this that was little to
  • the young man's fancy. It looked like a snare; and yet who could suppose
  • a snare in such a quiet by-street and in a house of so prosperous and
  • even noble an exterior? And yet--snare or no snare, intentionally or
  • unintentionally--here he was, prettily trapped; and for the life of him
  • he could see no way out of it again. The darkness began to weigh upon
  • him. He gave ear; all was silent without, but within and close by he
  • seemed to catch a faint sighing, a faint sobbing rustle, a little
  • stealthy creak--as though many persons were at his side, holding
  • themselves quite still, and governing even their respiration with the
  • extreme of slyness. The idea went to his vitals with a shock, and he
  • faced about suddenly as if to defend his life. Then, for the first time,
  • he became aware of a light about the level of his eyes, and at some
  • distance in the interior of the house--a vertical thread of light,
  • widening towards the bottom, such as might escape between two wings of
  • arras over a doorway. To see anything was a relief to Denis; it was like
  • a piece of solid ground to a man labouring in a morass; his mind seized
  • upon it with avidity; and he stood staring at it and trying to piece
  • together some logical conception of his surroundings. Plainly there was
  • a flight of steps ascending from his own level to that of this
  • illuminated doorway; and indeed he thought he could make out another
  • thread of light, as fine as a needle, and as faint as phosphorescence,
  • which might very well be reflected along the polished wood of a
  • handrail. Since he had begun to suspect that he was not alone, his heart
  • had continued to beat with smothering violence, and an intolerable
  • desire for action of any sort had possessed itself of his spirit. He was
  • in deadly peril, he believed. What could be more natural than to mount
  • the staircase, lift the curtain, and confront his difficulty at once? At
  • least he would be dealing with something tangible; at least he would be
  • no longer in the dark. He stepped slowly forward with outstretched
  • hands, until his foot struck the bottom step; then he rapidly scaled the
  • stairs, stood for a moment to compose his expression, lifted the arras,
  • and went in.
  • He found himself in a large apartment of polished stone. There were
  • three doors; one on each of three sides; all similarly curtained with
  • tapestry. The fourth side was occupied by two large windows and a great
  • stone chimney-piece, carved with the arms of the Malétroits. Denis
  • recognised the bearings, and was gratified to find himself in such good
  • hands. The room was strongly illuminated; but it contained little
  • furniture except a heavy table and a chair or two, the hearth was
  • innocent of fire, and the pavement was but sparsely strewn with rushes
  • clearly many days old.
  • On a high chair beside the chimney, and directly facing Denis as he
  • entered, sat a little old gentleman in a fur tippet. He sat with his
  • legs crossed and his hands folded, and a cup of spiced wine stood by his
  • elbow on a bracket on the wall. His countenance had a strongly masculine
  • cast; not properly human, but such as we see in the bull, the goat, or
  • the domestic boar; something equivocal and wheedling, something greedy,
  • brutal, and dangerous. The upper lip was inordinately full, as though
  • swollen by a blow or a toothache; and the smile, the peaked eyebrows,
  • and the small, strong eyes were quaintly and almost comically evil in
  • expression. Beautiful white hair hung straight all round his head, like
  • a saint's, and fell in a single curl upon the tippet. His beard and
  • moustache were the pink of venerable sweetness. Age, probably in
  • consequence of inordinate precautions, had left no mark upon his hands;
  • and the Malétroit hand was famous. It would be difficult to imagine
  • anything at once so fleshy and so delicate in design; the taper, sensual
  • fingers were like those of one of Leonardo's women; the fork of the
  • thumb made a dimple protuberance when closed; the nails were perfectly
  • shaped, and of a dead, surprising whiteness. It rendered his aspect
  • tenfold more redoubtable, that a man with hands like these should keep
  • them devoutly folded in his lap like a virgin martyr--that a man with so
  • intense and startling an expression of face should sit patiently on his
  • seat and contemplate people with an unwinking stare, like a god, or a
  • god's statue. His quiescence seemed ironical and treacherous, it fitted
  • so poorly with his looks.
  • Such was Alain, Sire de Malétroit.
  • Denis and he looked silently at each other for a second or two.
  • "Pray step in," said the Sire de Malétroit. "I have been expecting you
  • all the evening."
  • He had not risen, but he accompanied his words with a smile and a slight
  • but courteous inclination of the head. Partly from the smile, partly
  • from the strange musical murmur with which the Sire prefaced his
  • observation, Denis felt a strong shudder of disgust go through his
  • marrow. And what with disgust and honest confusion of mind, he could
  • scarcely get words together in reply.
  • "I fear," he said, "that this is a double accident. I am not the person
  • you suppose me. It seems you were looking for a visit; but for my part,
  • nothing was further from my thoughts--nothing could be more contrary to
  • my wishes--than this intrusion."
  • "Well, well," replied the old gentleman indulgently, "here you are,
  • which is the main point. Seat yourself, my friend, and put yourself
  • entirely at your ease. We shall arrange our little affairs presently."
  • Denis perceived that the matter was still complicated with some
  • misconception, and he hastened to continue his explanations.
  • "Your door ----" he began.
  • "About my door?" asked the other, raising his peaked eyebrows. "A little
  • piece of ingenuity." And he shrugged his shoulders. "A hospitable fancy!
  • By your own account, you were not desirous of making my acquaintance. We
  • old people look for such reluctance now and then; and when it touches
  • our honour, we cast about until we find some way of overcoming it. You
  • arrive uninvited, but believe me, very welcome."
  • "You persist in error, sir," said Denis. "There can be no question
  • between you and me. I am a stranger in this countryside. My name is
  • Denis, damoiseau de Beaulieu. If you see me in your house, it is only
  • ----"
  • "My young friend," interrupted the other, "you will permit me to have my
  • own ideas on that subject. They probably differ from yours at the
  • present moment," he added, with a leer, "but time will show which of us
  • is in the right."
  • Denis was convinced he had to do with a lunatic. He seated himself with
  • a shrug, content to wait the upshot; and a pause ensued, during which he
  • thought he could distinguish a hurried gabbling as of prayer from behind
  • the arras immediately opposite him. Sometimes there seemed to be but one
  • person engaged, sometimes two; and the vehemence of the voice, low as it
  • was, seemed to indicate either haste or an agony of spirit. It occurred
  • to him that this piece of tapestry covered the entrance to the chapel he
  • had noticed from without.
  • The old gentleman meanwhile surveyed Denis from head to foot with a
  • smile, and from time to time emitted little noises like a bird or a
  • mouse, which seemed to indicate a high degree of satisfaction. This
  • state of matters became rapidly insupportable; and Denis, to put an end
  • to it, remarked politely that the wind had gone down.
  • The old gentleman fell into a fit of silent laughter, so prolonged and
  • violent that he became quite red in the face. Denis got upon his feet at
  • once, and put on his hat with a flourish.
  • "Sir," he said, "if you are in your wits, you have affronted me grossly.
  • If you are out of them, I flatter myself I can find better employment
  • for my brains than to talk with lunatics. My conscience is clear; you
  • have made a fool of me from the first moment; you have refused to hear
  • my explanations; and now there is no power under God will make me stay
  • here any longer; and if I cannot make my way out in a more decent
  • fashion, I will hack your door in pieces with my sword."
  • The Sire de Malétroit raised his right hand and wagged it at Denis with
  • the fore and little fingers extended.
  • "My dear nephew," he said, "sit down."
  • "Nephew!" retorted Denis, "you lie in your throat"; and he snapped his
  • fingers in his face.
  • "Sit down, you rogue!" cried the old gentleman, in a sudden, harsh
  • voice, like the barking of a dog. "Do you fancy," he went on, "that when
  • I made my little contrivance for the door I had stopped short with that?
  • If you prefer to be bound hand and foot till your bones ache, rise and
  • try to go away. If you choose to remain a free young buck, agreeably
  • conversing with an old gentleman--why, sit where you are in peace, and
  • God be with you."
  • "Do you mean I am a prisoner?" demanded Denis.
  • "I state the facts," replied the other. "I would rather leave the
  • conclusion to yourself."
  • Denis sat down again. Externally he managed to keep pretty calm; but
  • within, he was now boiling with anger, now chilled with apprehension. He
  • no longer felt convinced that he was dealing with a madman. And if the
  • old gentleman was sane, what, in God's name, had he to look for? What
  • absurd or tragical adventure had befallen him? What countenance was he
  • to assume?
  • While he was thus unpleasantly reflecting, the arras that overhung the
  • chapel door was raised, and a tall priest in his robes came forth, and;
  • giving a long, keen stare at Denis, said something in an undertone to
  • Sire de Malétroit.
  • "She is in a better frame of spirit?" asked the latter.
  • "She is more resigned, messire," replied the priest.
  • "Now the Lord help her, she is hard to please!" sneered the old
  • gentleman. "A likely stripling--not ill-born--and of her own choosing
  • too? Why, what more would the jade have?"
  • "The situation is not usual for a young damsel," said the other, "and
  • somewhat trying to her blushes."
  • "She should have thought of that before she began the dance! It was none
  • of my choosing, God knows that: but since she is in it, by Our Lady, she
  • shall carry it to the end." And then addressing Denis, "Monsieur de
  • Beaulieu," he asked, "may I present you to my niece? She has been
  • waiting your arrival, I may say, with even greater impatience than
  • myself."
  • Denis had resigned himself with a good grace--all he desired was to know
  • the worst of it as speedily as possible; so he rose at once, and bowed
  • in acquiescence. The Sire de Malétroit followed his example, and limped,
  • with the assistance of the chaplain's arm, towards the chapel door. The
  • priest pulled aside the arras, and all three entered. The building had
  • considerable architectural pretensions. A light groining sprang from six
  • stout columns, and hung down in two rich pendants from the centre of the
  • vault. The place terminated behind the altar in a round end, embossed
  • and honeycombed with a superfluity of ornament in relief, and pierced by
  • many little windows shaped like stars, trefoils, or wheels. These
  • windows were imperfectly glazed, so that the night-air circulated freely
  • in the chapel. The tapers, of which there must have been half a hundred
  • burning on the altar, were unmercifully blown about; and the light went
  • through many different phases of brilliancy and semi-eclipse. On the
  • steps in front of the altar knelt a young girl richly attired as a
  • bride. A chill settled over Denis as he observed her costume; he fought
  • with desperate energy against the conclusion that was being thrust upon
  • his mind; it could not--it should not--be as he feared.
  • "Blanche," said the Sire, in his most flute-like tones, "I have brought
  • a friend to see you, my little girl; turn round and give him your pretty
  • hand. It is good to be devout; but it is necessary to be polite, my
  • niece."
  • The girl rose to her feet and turned towards the newcomers. She moved
  • all of a piece; and shame and exhaustion were expressed in every line of
  • her fresh young body; and she held her head down and kept her eyes upon
  • the pavement, as she came slowly forward. In the course of her advance,
  • her eyes fell upon Denis de Beaulieu's feet--feet of which he was justly
  • vain, be it remarked, and wore in the most elegant accoutrement even
  • while travelling. She paused--started, as if his yellow boots had
  • conveyed some shocking meaning--and glanced suddenly up into the
  • wearer's countenance. Their eyes met; shame gave place to horror and
  • terror in her looks; the blood left her lips; with a piercing scream she
  • covered her face with her hands and sank upon the chapel floor.
  • "That is not the man!" she cried. "My uncle, that is not the man!"
  • The Sire de Malétroit chirped agreeably. "Of course not," he said, "I
  • expected as much. It was so unfortunate you could not remember his
  • name."
  • "Indeed," she cried, "indeed, I have never seen this person till this
  • moment--I have never so much as set eyes upon him--I never wish to see
  • him again. Sir," she said, turning to Denis, "if you are a gentleman,
  • you will bear me out. Have I ever seen you--have you ever seen
  • me--before this accursed hour?"
  • "To speak for myself, I have never had that pleasure," answered the
  • young man. "This is the first time, messire, that I have met with your
  • engaging niece."
  • The old gentleman shrugged his shoulders.
  • "I am distressed to hear it," he said. "But it is never too late to
  • begin. I had little more acquaintance with my own late lady ere I
  • married her; which proves," he added with a grimace, "that these
  • impromptu marriages may often produce an excellent understanding in the
  • long-run. As the bridegroom is to have a voice in the matter, I will
  • give him two hours to make up for lost time before we proceed with the
  • ceremony." And he turned towards the door, followed by the clergyman.
  • The girl was on her feet in a moment. "My uncle, you cannot be in
  • earnest," she said. "I declare before God I will stab myself rather than
  • be forced on that young man. The heart rises at it; God forbids such
  • marriages; you dishonour your white hair. Oh, my uncle, pity me! There
  • is not a woman in all the world but would prefer death to such a
  • nuptial. Is it possible," she added, faltering--"is it possible that you
  • do not believe me--that you still think this"--and she pointed at Denis
  • with a tremor of anger and contempt--"that you still think _this_ to be
  • the man?"
  • "Frankly," said the old gentleman, pausing on the threshold, "I do. But
  • let me explain to you once for all, Blanche de Malétroit, my way of
  • thinking about this affair. When you took it into your head to dishonour
  • my family and the name that I have borne, in peace and war, for more
  • than threescore years, you forfeited, not only the right to question my
  • designs, but that of looking me in the face. If your father had been
  • alive, he would have spat on you and turned you out of doors. His was
  • the hand of iron. You may bless your God you have only to deal with the
  • hand of velvet, mademoiselle. It was my duty to get you married without
  • delay. Out of pure goodwill, I have tried to find your own gallant for
  • you. And I believe I have succeeded. But before God and all the holy
  • angels, Blanche de Malétroit, if I have not, I care not one jack-straw.
  • So let me recommend you to be polite to our young friend; for upon my
  • word, your next groom may be less appetising."
  • And with that he went out, with the chaplain at his heels; and the arras
  • fell behind the pair.
  • The girl turned upon Denis with flashing eyes.
  • "And what, sir," she demanded, "may be the meaning of all this?"
  • "God knows," returned Denis gloomily. "I am a prisoner in this house,
  • which seems full of mad people. More I know not, and nothing do I
  • understand."
  • "And pray how came you here?" she asked.
  • He told her as briefly as he could. "For the rest," he added, "perhaps
  • you will follow my example, and tell me the answer to all these riddles,
  • and what, in God's name, is like to be the end of it."
  • She stood silent for a little, and he could see her lips tremble and her
  • tearless eyes burn with a feverish lustre. Then she pressed her forehead
  • in both hands.
  • "Alas, how my head aches!" she said wearily--"to say nothing of my poor
  • heart! But it is due to you to know my story, unmaidenly as it must
  • seem. I am called Blanche de Malétroit; I have been without father or
  • mother for--oh! for as long as I can recollect, and indeed I have been
  • most unhappy all my life. Three months ago a young captain began to
  • stand near me every day in church. I could see that I pleased him; I am
  • much to blame, but I was so glad that any one should love me; and when
  • he passed me a letter, I took it home with me and read it with great
  • pleasure. Since that time he has written many. He was so anxious to
  • speak with me, poor fellow! and kept asking me to leave the door open
  • some evening that we might have two words upon the stair. For he knew
  • how much my uncle trusted me." She gave something like a sob at that,
  • and it was a moment before she could go on. "My uncle is a hard man, but
  • he is very shrewd," she said at last. "He has performed many feats in
  • war, and was a great person at court, and much trusted by Queen Isabeau
  • in old days. How he came to suspect me I cannot tell; but it is hard to
  • keep anything from his knowledge; and this morning, as we came from
  • mass, he took my hand in his, forced it open, and read my little billet,
  • walking by my side all the while. When he had finished, he gave it back
  • to me with great politeness. It contained another request to have the
  • door left open; and this has been the ruin of us all. My uncle kept me
  • strictly in my room until evening, and then ordered me to dress myself
  • as you see me--a hard mockery for a young girl, do you not think so? I
  • suppose, when he could not prevail with me to tell him the young
  • captain's name, he must have laid a trap for him: into which, alas! you
  • have fallen in the anger of God. I looked for much confusion; for how
  • could I tell whether he was willing to take me for his wife on these
  • sharp terms? He might have been trifling with me from the first; or I
  • might have made myself too cheap in his eyes. But truly I had not looked
  • for such a shameful punishment as this! I could not think that God would
  • let a girl be so disgraced before a young man. And now I have told you
  • all; and I can scarcely hope that you will not despise me."
  • Denis made her a respectful inclination.
  • "Madam," he said, "you have honoured me by your confidence. It remains
  • for me to prove that I am not unworthy of the honour. Is Messire de
  • Malétroit at hand?"
  • "I believe he is writing in the salle without," she answered.
  • "May I lead you thither, madam?" asked Denis, offering his hand with his
  • most courtly bearing.
  • She accepted it; and the pair passed out of the chapel, Blanche in a
  • very drooping and shamefaced condition, but Denis strutting and ruffling
  • in the consciousness of a mission, and a boyish certainty of
  • accomplishing it with honour.
  • The Sire de Malétroit rose to meet them with an ironical obeisance.
  • "Sir," said Denis, with the grandest possible air, "I believe I am to
  • have some say in the matter of this marriage; and let me tell you at
  • once, I will be no party to forcing the inclination of this young lady.
  • Had it been freely offered to me, I should have been proud to accept her
  • hand, for I perceive she is as good as she is beautiful; but as things
  • are, I have now the honour, messire, of refusing."
  • Blanche looked at him with gratitude in her eyes; but the old gentleman
  • only smiled and smiled, until his smile grew positively sickening to
  • Denis.
  • "I am afraid," he said, "Monsieur de Beaulieu, that you do not perfectly
  • understand the choice I have to offer you. Follow me, I beseech you, to
  • this window." And he led the way to one of the large windows which stood
  • open on the night. "You observe," he went on, "there is an iron ring in
  • the upper masonry, and reeved through that a very efficacious rope. Now,
  • mark my words: if you should find your disinclination to my niece's
  • person insurmountable, I shall have you hanged out of this window before
  • sunrise. I shall only proceed to such an extremity with the greatest
  • regret, you may believe me. For it is not at all your death that I
  • desire, but my niece's establishment in life. At the same time, it must
  • come to that if you prove obstinate. Your family, Monsieur de Beaulieu,
  • is very well in its way; but if you sprang from Charlemagne, you should
  • not refuse the hand of a Malétroit with impunity--not if she had been as
  • common as the Paris road--not if she were as hideous as the gargoyle
  • over my door. Neither my niece nor you, nor my own private feelings,
  • move me at all in this matter. The honour of my house has been
  • compromised; I believe you to be the guilty person; at least you are now
  • in the secret; and you can hardly wonder if I request you to wipe out
  • the stain. If you will not, your blood be on your own head! It will be
  • no great satisfaction to me to have your interesting relics kicking
  • their heels in the breeze below my windows; but half a loaf is better
  • than no bread, and if I cannot cure the dishonour, I shall at least stop
  • the scandal."
  • There was a pause.
  • "I believe there are other ways of settling such imbroglios among
  • gentlemen," said Denis. "You wear a sword, and I hear you have used it
  • with distinction."
  • The Sire de Malétroit made a signal to the chaplain, who crossed the
  • room with long, silent strides and raised the arras over the third of
  • the three doors. It was only a moment before he let it fall again; but
  • Denis had time to see a dusky passage full of armed men.
  • "When I was a little younger, I should have been delighted to honour
  • you, Monsieur de Beaulieu," said Sire Alain; "but I am now too old.
  • Faithful retainers are the sinews of age, and I must employ the strength
  • I have. This is one of the hardest things to swallow as a man grows up
  • in years; but with a little patience, even this becomes habitual. You
  • and the lady seem to prefer the salle for what remains of your two
  • hours; and as I have no desire to cross your preference, I shall resign
  • it to your use with all the pleasure in the world. No haste!" he added,
  • holding up his hand, as he saw a dangerous look come into Denis de
  • Beaulieu's face. "If your mind revolts against hanging, it will be time
  • enough two hours hence to throw yourself out of the window or upon the
  • pikes of my retainers. Two hours of life are always two hours. A great
  • many things may turn up in even as little a while as that. And, besides,
  • if I understand her appearance, my niece has still something to say to
  • you. You will not disfigure your last hours by a want of politeness to a
  • lady?"
  • Denis looked at Blanche, and she made him an imploring gesture.
  • It is likely that the old gentleman was hugely pleased at this symptom
  • of an understanding; for he smiled on both, and added sweetly: "If you
  • will give me your word of honour, Monsieur de Beaulieu, to await my
  • return at the end of the two hours before attempting anything desperate,
  • I shall withdraw my retainers, and let you speak in greater privacy with
  • mademoiselle."
  • Denis again glanced at the girl, who seemed to beseech him to agree.
  • "I give you my word of honour," he said.
  • Messire de Malétroit bowed, and proceeded to limp about the apartment,
  • clearing his throat the while with that odd musical chirp which had
  • already grown so irritating in the ears of Denis de Beaulieu. He first
  • possessed himself of some papers which lay upon the table; then he went
  • to the mouth of the passage and appeared to give an order to the men
  • behind the arras; and lastly he hobbled out through the door by which
  • Denis had come in, turning upon the threshold to address a last smiling
  • bow to the young couple, and followed by the chaplain with a hand-lamp.
  • No sooner were they alone than Blanche advanced towards Denis with her
  • hands extended. Her face was flushed and excited, and her eyes shone
  • with tears.
  • "You shall not die!" she cried, "you shall marry me after all."
  • "You seem to think, madam," replied Denis, "that I stand much in fear of
  • death."
  • "Oh, no, no," she said; "I see you are no poltroon. It is for my own
  • sake--I could not bear to have you slain for such a scruple."
  • "I am afraid," returned Denis, "that you underrate the difficulty,
  • madam. What you may be too generous to refuse, I may be too proud to
  • accept. In a moment of noble feeling towards me, you forget what you
  • perhaps owe to others."
  • He had the decency to keep his eyes upon the floor as he said this, and
  • after he had finished, so as not to spy upon her confusion. She stood
  • silent for a moment, then walked suddenly away, and falling on her
  • uncle's chair, fairly burst out sobbing. Denis was in the acme of
  • embarrassment. He looked round, as if to seek for inspiration, and
  • seeing a stool, plumped down upon it for something to do. There he sat,
  • playing with the guard of his rapier, and wishing himself dead a
  • thousand times over, and buried in the nastiest kitchen-heap in France.
  • His eyes wandered round the apartment, but found nothing to arrest
  • them. There were such wide spaces between the furniture, the light fell
  • so baldly and cheerlessly over all, the dark outside air looked in so
  • coldly through the windows, that he thought he had never seen a church
  • so vast nor a tomb so melancholy. The regular sobs of Blanche de
  • Malétroit measured out the time like the ticking of a clock. He read the
  • device upon the shield over and over again, until his eyes became
  • obscured; he stared into shadowy corners until he imagined they were
  • swarming with horrible animals; and every now and again he awoke with a
  • start, to remember that his last two hours were running, and death was
  • on the march.
  • Oftener and oftener, as the time went on, did his glance settle on the
  • girl herself. Her face was bowed forward and covered with her hands, and
  • she was shaken at intervals by the convulsive hiccup of grief. Even thus
  • she was not an unpleasant object to dwell upon, so plump, and yet so
  • fine, with a warm brown skin, and the most beautiful hair, Denis
  • thought, in the whole world of womankind. Her hands were like her
  • uncle's; but they were more in place at the end of her young arms, and
  • looked infinitely soft and caressing. He remembered how her blue eyes
  • had shone upon him full of anger, pity, and innocence. And the more he
  • dwelt on her perfections, the uglier death looked, and the more deeply
  • was he smitten with penitence at her continued tears. Now he felt that
  • no man could have the courage to leave a world which contained so
  • beautiful a creature; and now he would have given forty minutes of his
  • last hour to have unsaid his cruel speech.
  • Suddenly a hoarse and ragged peal of cockcrow rose to their ears from
  • the dark valley below the windows. And this shattering noise in the
  • silence of all around was like a light in a dark place, and shook them
  • both out of their reflections.
  • "Alas, can I do nothing to help you?" she said, looking up.
  • "Madam," replied Denis, with a fine irrelevancy, "if I have said
  • anything to wound you, believe me it was for your own sake and not for
  • mine."
  • She thanked him with a tearful look.
  • "I feel your position cruelly," he went on. "The world has been bitter
  • hard on you. Your uncle is a disgrace to mankind. Believe me, madam,
  • there is no young gentleman in all France but would be glad of my
  • opportunity, to die in doing you a momentary service."
  • "I know already that you can be very brave and generous," she answered.
  • "What I _want_ to know is whether I can serve you--now or afterwards,"
  • she added, with a quaver.
  • "Most certainly," he answered, with a smile. "Let me sit beside you as
  • if I were a friend, instead of a foolish intruder; try to forget how
  • awkwardly we are placed to one another; make my last moments go
  • pleasantly; and you will do me the chief service possible."
  • "You are very gallant," she added, with a yet deeper sadness; "very
  • gallant----and it somehow pains me. But draw nearer, if you please; and
  • if you find anything to say to me, you will at least make certain of a
  • very friendly listener. Ah! Monsieur de Beaulieu," she broke forth--"ah!
  • Monsieur de Beaulieu, how can I look you in the face?" And she fell to
  • weeping again with a renewed effusion.
  • "Madam," said Denis, taking her hand in both of his, "reflect on the
  • little time I have before me, and the great bitterness into which I am
  • cast by the sight of your distress. Spare me, in my last moments, the
  • spectacle of what I cannot cure even with the sacrifice of my life."
  • "I am very selfish," answered Blanche. "I will be braver, Monsieur de
  • Beaulieu, for your sake. But think if I can do you no kindness in the
  • future--if you have no friends to whom I could carry your adieux. Charge
  • me as heavily as you can: every burden will lighten, by so little, the
  • invaluable gratitude I owe you. Put it in my power to do something more
  • for you than weep."
  • "My mother is married again, and has a young family to care for. My
  • brother Guichard will inherit my fiefs: and if I am not in error, that
  • will content him amply for my death. Life is a little vapour that
  • passeth away, as we are told by those in holy orders. When a man is in a
  • fair way and sees all life open in front of him, he seems to himself to
  • make a very important figure in the world. His horse whinnies to him;
  • the trumpets blow and the girls look out of window as he rides into town
  • before his company; he receives many assurances of trust and
  • regard--sometimes by express in a letter--sometimes face to face, with
  • persons of great consequence falling on his neck. It is not wonderful if
  • his head is turned for a time. But once he is dead, were he as brave as
  • Hercules or as wise as Solomon, he is soon forgotten. It is not ten
  • years since my father fell, with many other knights around him, in a
  • very fierce encounter, and I do not think that any one of them, nor so
  • much as the name of the fight, is now remembered. No, no, madam, the
  • nearer you come to it, you see that death is a dark and dusty corner,
  • where a man gets into his tomb and has the door shut after him till the
  • judgment-day. I have few friends just now, and once I am dead I shall
  • have none."
  • "Ah, Monsieur de Beaulieu!" she exclaimed, "you forget Blanche de
  • Malétroit."
  • "You have a sweet nature, madam, and you are pleased to estimate a
  • little service far beyond its worth."
  • "It is not that," she answered. "You mistake me if you think I am so
  • easily touched by my own concerns. I say so, because you are the noblest
  • man I have ever met; because I recognise in you a spirit that would have
  • made even a common person famous in the land."
  • "And yet here I die in a mousetrap--with no more noise about it than my
  • own squeaking," answered he.
  • A look of pain crossed her face, and she was silent for a little while.
  • Then a light came into her eyes, and with a smile she spoke again.
  • "I cannot have my champion think meanly of himself. Any one who gives
  • his life for another will be met in Paradise by all the heralds and
  • angels of the Lord God. And you have no cause to hang your head.
  • For----Pray, do you think me beautiful?" she asked, with a deep flush.
  • "Indeed, madam, I do," he said.
  • "I am glad of that," she answered heartily. "Do you think there are many
  • men in France who have been asked in marriage by a beautiful
  • maiden--with her own lips--and who have refused her to her face? I know
  • you men would half-despise such a triumph; but believe me, we women know
  • more of what is precious in love. There is nothing that should set a
  • person higher in his own esteem; and we women would prize nothing more
  • dearly."
  • "You are very good," he said; "but you cannot make me forget that I was
  • asked in pity and not for love."
  • "I am not so sure of that," she replied, holding down her head. "Hear me
  • to an end, Monsieur de Beaulieu. I know how you must despise me; I feel
  • you are right to do so; I am too poor a creature to occupy one thought
  • of your mind, although, alas! you must die for me this morning. But when
  • I asked you to marry me, indeed, and indeed, it was because I respected
  • and admired you, and loved you with my whole soul, from the very moment
  • that you took my part against my uncle. If you had seen yourself, and
  • how noble you looked, you would pity rather than despise me. And now,"
  • she went on, hurriedly checking him with her hand, "although I have laid
  • aside all reserve and told you so much, remember that I know your
  • sentiments towards me already. I would not, believe me, being nobly
  • born, weary you with importunities into consent. I too have a pride of
  • my own: and I declare before the holy Mother of God, if you should now
  • go back from your word already given, I would no more marry you than I
  • would marry my uncle's groom."
  • Denis smiled a little bitterly.
  • "It is a small love," he said, "that shies at a little pride."
  • She made no answer, although she probably had her own thoughts.
  • "Come hither to the window," he said, with a sigh. "Here is the dawn."
  • And indeed the dawn was already beginning. The hollow of the sky was
  • full of essential daylight, colourless and clean; and the valley
  • underneath was flooded with a grey reflection. A few thin vapours clung
  • in the coves of the forest or lay along the winding course of the river.
  • The scene disengaged a surprising effect of stillness, which was hardly
  • interrupted when the cocks began once more to crow among the steadings.
  • Perhaps the same fellow who had made so horrid a clangour in the
  • darkness not half an hour before now sent up the merriest cheer to greet
  • the coming day. A little wind went bustling and eddying among the
  • tree-tops underneath the windows. And still the daylight kept flooding
  • insensibly out of the east, which was soon to grow incandescent and cast
  • up that red-hot cannon-ball, the rising sun.
  • Denis looked out over all this with a bit of a shiver. He had taken her
  • hand, and retained it in his almost unconsciously.
  • "Has the day begun already?" she said; and then, illogically enough:
  • "the night has been so long! Alas! what shall we say to my uncle when he
  • returns?"
  • "What you will," said Denis, and he pressed her fingers in his.
  • She was silent.
  • "Blanche," he said, with a swift, uncertain, passionate utterance, "you
  • have seen whether I fear death. You must know well enough that I would
  • as gladly leap out of that window into the empty air as lay a finger on
  • you without your free and full consent. But if you care for me at all do
  • not let me lose my life in a misapprehension; for I love you better than
  • the whole world; and though I will die for you blithely, it would be
  • like all the joys of Paradise to live on and spend my life in your
  • service."
  • As he stopped speaking, a bell began to ring loudly in the interior of
  • the house; and a clatter of armour in the corridor showed that the
  • retainers were returning to their post, and the two hours were at an
  • end.
  • "After all that you have heard?" she whispered, leaning towards him with
  • her lips and eyes.
  • "I have heard nothing," he replied.
  • "The captain's name was Florimond de Champdivers," she said in his ear.
  • "I did not hear it," he answered, taking her supple body in his arms and
  • covered her wet face with kisses.
  • A melodious chirping was audible behind, followed by a beautiful
  • chuckle, and the voice of Messire de Malétroit wished his new nephew a
  • good morning.
  • PROVIDENCE AND THE GUITAR
  • CHAPTER I
  • Monsieur Léon Berthelini had a great care of his appearance, and
  • sedulously suited his deportment to the costume of the hour. He affected
  • something Spanish in his air, and something of the bandit, with a
  • flavour of Rembrandt at home. In person he was decidedly small, and
  • inclined to be stout; his face was the picture of good-humour; his dark
  • eyes, which were very expressive, told of a kind heart, a brisk, merry
  • nature, and the most indefatigable spirits. If he had worn the clothes
  • of the period you would have set him down for a hitherto undiscovered
  • hybrid between the barber, the innkeeper, and the affable dispensing
  • chemist. But in the outrageous bravery of velvet jacket and flapped hat,
  • with trousers that were more accurately described as fleshings, a white
  • handkerchief cavalierly knotted at his neck, a shock of Olympian curls
  • upon his brow, and his feet shod through all weathers in the slenderest
  • of Molière shoes--you had but to look at him and you knew you were in
  • the presence of a Great Creature. When he wore an overcoat he scorned to
  • pass the sleeves; a single button held it round his shoulders; it was
  • tossed backwards after the manner of a cloak, and carried with the gait
  • and presence of an Almaviva. I am of opinion that M. Berthelini was
  • nearing forty. But he had a boy's heart, gloried in his finery, and
  • walked through life like a child in a perpetual dramatic performance. If
  • he were not Almaviva after all, it was not for lack of making believe.
  • And he enjoyed the artist's compensation. If he were not really
  • Almaviva, he was sometimes just as happy as though he were.
  • I have seen him, at moments when he has fancied himself alone with his
  • Maker, adopt so gay and chivalrous a bearing, and represent his own part
  • with so much warmth and conscience, that the illusion became catching,
  • and I believed implicitly in the Great Creature's pose.
  • But, alas! life cannot be entirely conducted on these principles; man
  • cannot live by Almavivery alone; and the Great Creature, having failed
  • upon several theatres, was obliged to step down every evening from his
  • heights, and sing from half a dozen to a dozen comic songs, twang a
  • guitar, keep a country audience in good humour, and preside finally over
  • the mysteries of a tombola.
  • Madame Berthelini, who was art and part with him in these undignified
  • labours, had perhaps a higher position in the scale of beings, and
  • enjoyed a natural dignity of her own. But her heart was not any more
  • rightly placed, for that would have been impossible; and she had
  • acquired a little air of melancholy, attractive enough in its way, but
  • not good to see like the wholesome, sky-scraping, boyish spirits of her
  • lord.
  • He, indeed, swam like a kite on a fair wind, high above earthly
  • troubles. Detonations of temper were not unfrequent in the zones he
  • travelled; but sulky fogs and tearful depressions were there alike
  • unknown. A well-delivered blow upon a table, or a noble attitude,
  • imitated from Mélingue or Frédéric, relieved his irritation like a
  • vengeance. Though the heaven had fallen, if he had played his part with
  • propriety, Berthelini had been content! And the man's atmosphere, if not
  • his example, reacted on his wife; for the couple doated on each other,
  • and although you would have thought they walked in different worlds, yet
  • continued to walk hand in hand.
  • It chanced one day that Monsieur and Madame Berthelini descended with
  • two boxes and a guitar in a fat case at the station of the little town
  • of Castel-le-Gâchis, and the omnibus carried them with their effects to
  • the Hotel of the Black Head. This was a dismal, conventual building in a
  • narrow street, capable of standing siege when once the gates were shut,
  • and smelling strangely in the interior of straw and chocolate and old
  • feminine apparel. Berthelini paused upon the threshold with a painful
  • premonition. In some former state, it seemed to him, he had visited a
  • hostelry that smelt not otherwise, and been ill received.
  • The landlord, a tragic person in a large felt hat, rose from a
  • business-table under the key-rack, and came forward, removing his hat
  • with both hands as he did so.
  • "Sir, I salute you. May I inquire what is your charge for artists?"
  • inquired Berthelini, with a courtesy at once splendid and insinuating.
  • "For artists?" said the landlord. His countenance fell and the smile of
  • welcome disappeared. "Oh, artists!" he added brutally; "four francs a
  • day." And he turned his back upon these inconsiderable customers.
  • A commercial traveller is received, he also, upon a reduction--yet is he
  • welcome, yet can he command the fatted calf; but an artist, had he the
  • manners of an Almaviva, were he dressed like Solomon in all his glory,
  • is received like a dog and served like a timid lady travelling alone.
  • Accustomed as he was to the rubs of his profession, Berthelini was
  • unpleasantly affected by the landlord's manner.
  • "Elvira," said he to his wife, "mark my words: Castel-le-Gâchis is a
  • tragic folly."
  • "Wait till we see what we take," replied Elvira.
  • "We shall take nothing," replied Berthelini; "we shall feed upon
  • insults. I have an eye, Elvira; I have a spirit of divination; and this
  • place is accursed. The landlord has been discourteous, the Commissary
  • will be brutal, the audience will be sordid and uproarious, and you will
  • take a cold upon your throat. We have been besotted enough to come; the
  • die is cast--it will be a second Sedan."
  • Sedan was a town hateful to the Berthelinis, not only from patriotism
  • (for they were French, and answered after the flesh to the somewhat
  • homely name of Duval), but because it had been the scene of their most
  • sad reverses. In that place they had lain three weeks in pawn for their
  • hotel bill, and had it not been for a surprising stroke of fortune they
  • might have been lying there in pawn until this day. To mention the name
  • of Sedan was for the Berthelinis to dip the brush in earthquake and
  • eclipse. Count Almaviva slouched his hat with a gesture expressive of
  • despair, and even Elvira felt as if ill-fortune had been personally
  • evoked.
  • "Let us ask for breakfast," said she, with a woman's tact.
  • The Commissary of Police of Castel-le-Gâchis was a large red Commissary,
  • pimpled, and subject to a strong cutaneous transpiration. I have
  • repeated the name of his office because he was so very much more a
  • Commissary than a man. The spirit of his dignity had entered into him.
  • He carried his corporation as if it were something official. Whenever he
  • insulted a common citizen it seemed to him as if he were adroitly
  • flattering the Government by a side-wind; in default of dignity he was
  • brutal from an over-weening sense of duty. His office was a den, whence
  • passers-by could hear rude accents laying down, not the law, but the
  • good pleasure of the Commissary.
  • Six several times in the course of the day did M. Berthelini hurry
  • thither in quest of the requisite permission for his evening's
  • entertainment; six several times he found the official was abroad. Léon
  • Berthelini began to grow quite a familiar figure in the streets of
  • Castel-le-Gâchis; he became a local celebrity, and was pointed out as
  • "the man who was looking for the Commissary." Idle children attached
  • themselves to his footsteps, and trotted after him back and forward
  • between the hotel and the office. Léon might try as he liked; he might
  • roll cigarettes, he might straddle, he might cock his hat at a dozen
  • different jaunty inclinations--the part of Almaviva was, under the
  • circumstances, difficult to play.
  • As he passed the market-place upon the seventh excursion the Commissary
  • was pointed out to him, where he stood, with his waistcoat unbuttoned
  • and his hands behind his back, to superintend the sale and measurement
  • of butter. Berthelini threaded his way through the market-stalls and
  • baskets, and accosted the dignitary with a bow which was a triumph of
  • the histrionic art.
  • "I have the honour," he asked, "of meeting M. le Commissaire?"
  • The Commissary was affected by the nobility of his address. He excelled
  • Léon in the depth if not in the airy grace of his salutation.
  • "The honour," said he, "is mine!"
  • "I am," continued the strolling player, "I am, sir, an artist, and I
  • have permitted myself to interrupt you on an affair of business.
  • To-night I give a trifling musical entertainment at the Café of the
  • Triumphs of the Plough--permit me to offer you this little
  • programme--and I have come to ask you for the necessary authorisation."
  • At the word "artist" the Commissary had replaced his hat with the air of
  • a person who, having condescended too far, should suddenly remember the
  • duties of his rank.
  • "Go, go," said he, "I am busy; I am measuring butter."
  • "Heathen Jew!" thought Léon. "Permit me, sir," he resumed, aloud. "I
  • have gone six times already--"
  • "Put up your bills if you choose," interrupted the Commissary. "In an
  • hour or so I will examine your papers at the office. But now go; I am
  • busy."
  • "Measuring butter!" thought Berthelini. "O France, and it is for this
  • that we made '93!"
  • The preparations were soon made; the bills posted, programmes laid on
  • the dinner-table of every hotel in the town, and a stage erected at one
  • end of the Café of the Triumphs of the Plough; but when Léon returned to
  • the office, the Commissary was once more abroad.
  • "He is like Madame Benoîton," thought Léon: "Fichu Commissaire!"
  • And just then he met the man face to face.
  • "Here, sir," said he, "are my papers. Will you be pleased to verify?"
  • But the Commissary was now intent upon dinner.
  • "No use," he replied, "no use; I am busy; I am quite satisfied. Give
  • your entertainment."
  • And he hurried on.
  • "Fichu Commissaire!" thought Léon.
  • CHAPTER II
  • The audience was pretty large; and the proprietor of the café made a
  • good thing of it in beer. But the Berthelinis exerted themselves in
  • vain.
  • Léon was radiant in velveteen; he had a rakish way of smoking a
  • cigarette between his songs that was worth money in itself; he
  • underlined his comic points so that the dullest numskull in
  • Castel-le-Gâchis had a notion when to laugh; and he handled his guitar
  • in a manner worthy of himself. Indeed, his play with that instrument was
  • as good as a whole romantic drama; it was so dashing, so florid, and so
  • cavalier.
  • Elvira, on the other hand, sang her patriotic and romantic songs with
  • more than usual expression; her voice had charm and plangency; and as
  • Léon looked at her, in her low-bodied maroon dress, with her arms bare
  • to the shoulder, and a red flower set provocatively in her corset, he
  • repeated to himself for the many hundredth time that she was one of the
  • loveliest creatures in the world of women.
  • Alas! when she went round with the tambourine, the golden youth of
  • Castel-le-Gâchis turned from her coldly. Here and there a single
  • halfpenny was forthcoming; the net result of a collection never exceeded
  • half a franc; and the Maire himself, after seven different applications,
  • had contributed exactly twopence. A certain chill began to settle upon
  • the artists themselves; it seemed as if they were singing to slugs;
  • Apollo himself might have lost heart with such an audience. The
  • Berthelinis struggled against the impression; they put their back into
  • their work, they sang louder and louder, the guitar twanged like a
  • living thing; and at last Léon arose in his might, and burst with
  • inimitable conviction into his great song, "Y a des honnêtes gens
  • partout!" Never had he given more proof of his artistic mastery; it was
  • his intimate, indefeasible conviction that Castel-le-Gâchis formed an
  • exception to the law he was now lyrically proclaiming, and was peopled
  • exclusively by thieves and bullies; and yet, as I say, he flung it down
  • like a challenge, he trolled it forth like an article of faith; and his
  • face so beamed the while that you would have thought he must make
  • converts of the benches.
  • He was at the top of his register, with his head thrown back and his
  • mouth open, when the door was thrown violently open, and a pair of
  • new-comers marched noisily into the café. It was the Commissary,
  • followed by the Garde Champêtre.
  • The undaunted Berthelini still continued to proclaim, "Y a des honnêtes
  • gens partout!" But now the sentiment produced an audible titter among
  • the audience. Berthelini wondered why; he did not know the antecedents
  • of the Garde Champêtre; he had never heard of a little story about
  • postage-stamps. But the public knew all about the postage-stamps and
  • enjoyed the coincidence hugely.
  • The Commissary planted himself upon a vacant chair with somewhat the air
  • of Cromwell visiting the Rump, and spoke in occasional whispers to the
  • Garde Champêtre, who remained respectfully standing at his back. The
  • eyes of both were directed upon Berthelini, who persisted in his
  • statement.
  • "Y a des honnêtes gens partout," he was just chanting for the twentieth
  • time; when up got the Commissary upon his feet and waved brutally to
  • the singer with his cane.
  • "Is it me you want?" inquired Léon, stopping in his song.
  • "It is you," replied the potentate.
  • "Fichu Commissaire!" thought Léon, and he descended from the stage and
  • made his way to the functionary.
  • "How does it happen, sir," said the Commissary, swelling in person,
  • "that I find you mountebanking in a public café without my permission?"
  • "Without?" cried the indignant Léon. "Permit me to remind you----"
  • "Come, come, sir!" said the Commissary, "I desire no explanations."
  • "I care nothing about what you desire," returned the singer. "I choose
  • to give them, and I will not be gagged. I am an artist, sir, a
  • distinction that you cannot comprehend. I received your permission and
  • stand here upon the strength of it; interfere with me who dare."
  • "You have not got my signature, I tell you," cried the Commissary. "Show
  • me my signature! Where is my signature?"
  • That was just the question; where was his signature? Léon recognised
  • that he was in a hole; but his spirit rose with the occasion, and he
  • blustered nobly, tossing back his curls. The Commissary played up to him
  • in the character of tyrant; and as the one leaned farther forward, the
  • other leaned farther back--majesty confronting fury. The audience had
  • transferred their attention to this new performance, and listened with
  • that silent gravity common to all Frenchmen in the neighbourhood of the
  • Police. Elvira had sat down, she was used to these distractions, and it
  • was rather melancholy than fear that now oppressed her.
  • "Another word," cried the Commissary, "and I arrest you."
  • "Arrest me?" shouted Léon. "I defy you!"
  • "I am the Commissary of Police," said the official.
  • Léon commanded his feelings, and replied, with great delicacy of
  • innuendo--
  • "So it would appear."
  • The point was too refined for Castel-le-Gâchis; it did not raise a
  • smile; and as for the Commissary, he simply bade the singer follow him
  • to his office, and directed his proud footsteps towards the door. There
  • was nothing for it but to obey. Léon did so with a proper pantomime of
  • indifference, but it was a leek to eat, and there was no denying it.
  • The Maire had slipped out and was already waiting at the Commissary's
  • door. Now the Maire, in France, is the refuge of the oppressed. He
  • stands between his people and the boisterous rigours of the Police. He
  • can sometimes understand what is said to him; he is not always puffed up
  • beyond measure by his dignity. 'Tis a thing worth the knowledge of
  • travellers. When all seems over, and a man has made up his mind to
  • injustice, he has still, like the heroes of romance, a little bugle at
  • his belt whereon to blow; and the Maire, a comfortable _deus ex
  • machinâ_, may still descend to deliver him from the minions of the law.
  • The Maire of Castel-le-Gâchis, although inaccessible to the charms of
  • music as retailed by the Berthelinis, had no hesitation whatever as to
  • the rights of the matter. He instantly fell foul of the Commissary in
  • very high terms, and the Commissary, pricked by this humiliation,
  • accepted battle on the point of fact. The argument lasted some little
  • while with varying success, until at length victory inclined so plainly
  • to the Commissary's side that the Maire was fain to re-assert himself by
  • an exercise of authority. He had been out-argued, but he was still the
  • Maire. And so, turning from his interlocutor, he briefly but kindly
  • recommended Léon to get back instanter to his concert.
  • "It is already growing late," he added.
  • Léon did not wait to be told twice. He returned to the Café of the
  • Triumphs of the Plough with all expedition. Alas! the audience had
  • melted away during his absence; Elvira was sitting in a very
  • disconsolate attitude on the guitar-box; she had watched the company
  • dispersing by twos and threes, and the prolonged spectacle had somewhat
  • overwhelmed her spirits. Each man, she reflected, retired with a certain
  • proportion of her earnings in his pocket, and she saw to-night's board
  • and to-morrow's railway expenses, and finally even to-morrow's dinner,
  • walk one after another out of the café-door and disappear into the
  • night.
  • "What was it?" she asked languidly.
  • But Léon did not answer. He was looking round him on the scene of
  • defeat. Scarce a score of listeners remained, and these of the least
  • promising sort. The minute-hand of the clock was already climbing upward
  • towards eleven.
  • "It's a lost battle," said he, and then taking up the money-box, he
  • turned it out. "Three francs seventy-five!" he cried, "as against four
  • of board and six of railway fares; and no time for the tombola! Elvira,
  • this is Waterloo!" And he sat down and passed both hands desperately
  • among his curls. "O fichu Commissaire!" he cried, "fichu Commissaire!"
  • "Let us get the things together and be off," returned Elvira. "We might
  • try another song, but there is not six halfpence in the room."
  • "Six halfpence?" cried Léon, "six hundred thousand devils! There is not
  • a human creature in the town--nothing but pigs and dogs and
  • commissaries! Pray heaven we get safe to bed."
  • "Don't imagine things!" exclaimed Elvira, with a shudder.
  • And with that they set to work on their preparations. The tobacco-jar,
  • the cigarette-holder, the three papers of shirt-studs, which were to
  • have been the prizes of the tombola had the tombola come off, were made
  • into a bundle with the music; the guitar was stowed into the fat
  • guitar-case; and Elvira having thrown a thin shawl about her neck and
  • shoulders, the pair issued from the café and set off for the Black Head.
  • As they crossed the market-place the church bell rang out eleven. It was
  • a dark, mild night, and there was no one in the streets.
  • "It is all very fine," said Léon: "but I have a presentiment. The night
  • is not yet done."
  • CHAPTER III
  • The Black Head presented not a single chink of light upon the street,
  • and the carriage gate was closed.
  • "This is unprecedented," observed Léon. "An inn closed by five minutes
  • after eleven! And there were several commercial travellers in the café
  • up to a late hour. Elvira, my heart misgives me. Let us ring the bell."
  • The bell had a potent note; and being swung under the arch it filled the
  • house from top to bottom with surly, clanging reverberations. The sound
  • accentuated the conventual appearance of the building; a wintry
  • sentiment, a thought of prayer and mortification, took hold upon
  • Elvira's mind; and, as for Léon, he seemed to be reading the stage
  • directions for a lugubrious fifth act.
  • "This is your fault," said Elvira; "this is what comes of fancying
  • things!"
  • Again Léon pulled the bell-rope; again the solemn tocsin awoke the
  • echoes of the inn; and ere they had died away, a light glimmered in the
  • carriage entrance, and a powerful voice was heard upraised and tremulous
  • with wrath.
  • "What's all this?" cried the tragic host through the spars of the gate.
  • "Hard upon twelve, and you come clamouring like Prussians at the door of
  • a respectable hotel? Oh!" he cried, "I know you now! Common singers!
  • People in trouble with the Police! And you present yourselves at
  • midnight like lords and ladies? Be off with you!"
  • "You will permit me to remind you," replied Léon, in thrilling tones,
  • "that I am a guest in your house, that I am properly inscribed, and that
  • I have deposited baggage to the value of four hundred francs."
  • "You cannot get in at this hour," returned the man. "This is no thieves'
  • tavern, for mohocks and night-rakes and organ-grinders."
  • "Brute!" cried Elvira, for the organ-grinders touched her home.
  • "Then I demand my baggage," said Léon, with unabated dignity.
  • "I know nothing of your baggage," replied the landlord.
  • "You detain my baggage? You dare to detain my baggage?" cried the
  • singer.
  • "Who are you?" returned the landlord. "It is dark--I cannot recognise
  • you."
  • "Very well, then--you detain my baggage," concluded Léon. "You shall
  • smart for this. I will weary out your life with persecutions; I will
  • drag you from court to court; if there is justice to be had in France,
  • it shall be rendered between you and me. And I will make you a
  • by-word--I will put you in a song--a scurrilous song--an indecent
  • song--a popular song--which the boys shall sing to you in the street,
  • and come and howl through these spars at midnight!"
  • He had gone on raising his voice at every phrase, for all the while the
  • landlord was very placidly retiring; and now, when the last glimmer of
  • light had vanished from the arch, and the last footstep died away in the
  • interior, Léon turned to his wife with a heroic countenance.
  • "Elvira," said he, "I have now a duty in life. I shall destroy that man
  • as Eugène Sue destroyed the concierge. Let us come at once to the
  • Gendarmerie and begin our vengeance."
  • He picked up the guitar-case, which had been propped against the wall,
  • and they set forth through the silent and ill-lighted town with burning
  • hearts.
  • The Gendarmerie was concealed beside the telegraph-office at the bottom
  • of a vast court, which was partly laid out in gardens; and here all the
  • shepherds of the public lay locked in grateful sleep. It took a deal of
  • knocking to waken one; and he, when he came at last to the door, could
  • find no other remark but that "it was none of his business." Léon
  • reasoned with him, threatened him, besought him; "here," he said, "was
  • Madame Berthelini in evening dress--a delicate woman--in an interesting
  • condition"--the last was thrown in, I fancy, for effect; and to all this
  • the man-at-arms made the same answer--
  • "It is none of my business," said he.
  • "Very well," said Léon, "then we shall go to the Commissary." Thither
  • they went; the office was closed and dark; but the house was close by,
  • and Léon was soon swinging the bell like a madman. The Commissary's wife
  • appeared at the window. She was a thread-paper creature, and informed
  • them that the Commissary had not yet come home.
  • "Is he at the Maire's?" demanded Léon.
  • She thought that was not unlikely.
  • "Where is the Maire's house?" he asked.
  • And she gave him some rather vague information on that point.
  • "Stay you here, Elvira," said Léon, "lest I should miss him by the way.
  • If, when I return, I find you here no longer, I shall follow at once to
  • the Black Head."
  • And he set out to find the Maire's. It took him some ten minutes'
  • wandering among blind lanes, and when he arrived it was already half an
  • hour past midnight. A long white garden wall overhung by some thick
  • chestnuts, a door with a letter-box, and an iron bell-pull--that was all
  • that could be seen of the Maire's domicile. Léon took the bell-pull in
  • both hands, and danced furiously upon the side-walk. The bell itself was
  • just upon the other side of the wall; it responded to his activity, and
  • scattered an alarming clangour far and wide into the night.
  • A window was thrown open in a house across the street, and a voice
  • inquired the cause of this untimely uproar.
  • "I wish the Maire," said Léon.
  • "He has been in bed this hour," returned the voice.
  • "He must get up again," retorted Léon, and he was for tackling the
  • bell-pull once more.
  • "You will never make him hear," responded the voice. "The garden is of
  • great extent, the house is at the farther end, and both the Maire and
  • his housekeeper are deaf."
  • "Aha!" said Léon, pausing. "The Maire is deaf, is he? That explains."
  • And he thought of the evening's concert with a momentary feeling of
  • relief. "Ah!" he continued, "and so the Maire is deaf, and the garden
  • vast, and the house at the far end?"
  • "And you might ring all night," added the voice, "and be none the better
  • for it. You would only keep me awake."
  • "Thank you, neighbour," replied the singer. "You shall sleep."
  • And he made off again at his best pace for the Commissary's. Elvira was
  • still walking to and fro before the door.
  • "He has not come?" asked Léon.
  • "Not he," she replied.
  • "Good," returned Léon. "I am sure our man's inside. Let me see the
  • guitar-case. I shall lay this siege in form, Elvira; I am angry; I am
  • indignant: I am truculently inclined; but I thank my Maker I have still
  • a sense of fun. The unjust judge shall be importuned in a serenade,
  • Elvira. Set him up--and set him up."
  • He had the case opened by this time, struck a few chords, and fell into
  • an attitude which was irresistibly Spanish.
  • "Now," he continued, "feel your voice. Are you ready? Follow me!"
  • The guitar twanged, and the two voices upraised, in harmony and with a
  • startling loudness, the chorus of a song of old Béranger's:--
  • "Commissaire! Commissaire!
  • Colin bat sa ménagère."
  • The stones of Castel-le-Gâchis thrilled at this audacious innovation.
  • Hitherto had the night been sacred to repose and night-caps; and now
  • what was this? Window after window was opened; matches scratched, and
  • candles began to flicker; swollen, sleepy faces peered forth into the
  • starlight. There were the two figures before the Commissary's house,
  • each bolt upright, with head thrown back and eyes interrogating the
  • starry heavens; the guitar wailed, shouted, and reverberated like half
  • an orchestra; and the voices, with a crisp and spirited delivery, hurled
  • the appropriate burden at the Commissary's window. All the echoes
  • repeated the functionary's name. It was more like an entr'acte in a
  • farce of Molière's than a passage of real life in Castel-le-Gâchis.
  • The Commissary, if he was not the first, was not the last of the
  • neighbours to yield to the influence of music, and furiously threw open
  • the window of his bedroom. He was beside himself with rage. He leaned
  • far over the window-sill, raving and gesticulating; the tassel of his
  • white nightcap danced like a thing of life: he opened his mouth to
  • dimensions hitherto unprecedented, and yet his voice, instead of
  • escaping from it in a roar, came forth shrill and choked and tottering.
  • A little more serenading, and it was clear he would be better acquainted
  • with the apoplexy.
  • I scorn to reproduce his language; he touched upon too many serious
  • topics by the way for a quiet story-teller. Although he was known for a
  • man who was prompt with his tongue, and had a power of strong expression
  • at command, he excelled himself so remarkably this night that one maiden
  • lady, who had got out of bed like the rest to hear the serenade, was
  • obliged to shut her window at the second clause. Even what she had
  • heard disquieted her conscience; and next day she said she scarcely
  • reckoned as a maiden lady any longer.
  • Léon tried to explain his predicament, but he received nothing but
  • threats of arrest by way of answer.
  • "If I come down to you!" cried the Commissary.
  • "Ay," said Léon, "do!"
  • "I will not!" cried the Commissary.
  • "You dare not!" answered Léon.
  • At that the Commissary closed his window.
  • "All is over," said the singer. "The serenade was perhaps ill-judged.
  • These boors have no sense of humour."
  • "Let us get away from here," said Elvira, with a shiver. "All these
  • people looking--it is so rude and so brutal." And then giving way once
  • more to passion--"Brutes!" she cried aloud to the candle-lit
  • spectators--"brutes! brutes! brutes!"
  • "_Sauve qui peut_," said Léon. "You have done it now!"
  • And taking the guitar in one hand and the case in the other, he led the
  • way with something too precipitate to be merely called precipitation
  • from the scene of this absurd adventure.
  • CHAPTER IV
  • To the west of Castel-le-Gâchis four rows of venerable lime-trees
  • formed, in this starry night, a twilit avenue with two side aisles of
  • pitch darkness. Here and there stone benches were disposed between the
  • trunks. There was not a breath of wind; a heavy atmosphere of perfume
  • hung about the alleys; and every leaf stood stock-still upon its twig.
  • Hither, after vainly knocking at an inn or two, the Berthelinis came at
  • length to pass the night. After an amiable contention, Léon insisted on
  • giving his coat to Elvira, and they sat down together on the first bench
  • in silence. Léon made a cigarette, which he smoked to an end, looking
  • up into the trees, and beyond them at the constellations, of which he
  • tried vainly to recall the names. The silence was broken by the church
  • bell; it rang the four quarters on a light and tinkling measure; then
  • followed a single deep stroke that died slowly away with a thrill; and
  • stillness resumed its empire.
  • "One," said Léon. "Four hours till daylight. It is warm; it is starry; I
  • have matches and tobacco. Do not let us exaggerate, Elvira--the
  • experience is positively charming. I feel a glow within me; I am born
  • again. This is the poetry of life. Think of Cooper's novels, my dear."
  • "Léon," she said fiercely, "how can you talk such wicked, infamous
  • nonsense? To pass all night out of doors--it is like a nightmare! We
  • shall die!"
  • "You suffer yourself to be led away," he replied soothingly. "It is not
  • unpleasant here; only you brood. Come, now, let us repeat a scene. Shall
  • we try Alceste and Célimène? No? Or a passage from the _Two Orphans_?
  • Come, now, it will occupy your mind; I will play up to you as I never
  • have played before; I feel art moving in my bones."
  • "Hold your tongue," she cried, "or you will drive me mad! Will nothing
  • solemnise you--not even this hideous situation?"
  • "Oh, hideous!" objected Léon. "Hideous is not the word. Why, where would
  • you be? '_Dites, la jeune belle, où voulez-vous aller?_'" he carolled.
  • "Well, now," he went on, opening the guitar-case, "there's another idea
  • for you--sing. Sing '_Dites, la jeune belle_'! It will compose your
  • spirits, Elvira, I am sure."
  • And without waiting an answer he began to strum the symphony. The first
  • chords awoke a young man who was lying asleep upon a neighbouring bench.
  • "Hullo!" cried the young man, "who are you?"
  • "Under which king, Bezonian?" declaimed the artist. "Speak or die!"
  • Or if it was not exactly that, it was something to much the same purpose
  • from a French tragedy.
  • The young man drew near in the twilight. He was a tall, powerful,
  • gentlemanly fellow, with a somewhat puffy face, dressed in a grey tweed
  • suit, with a deer-stalker hat of the same material; and as he now came
  • forward he carried a knapsack slung upon one arm.
  • "Are you camping out here too?" he asked, with a strong English accent.
  • "I'm not sorry for company."
  • Léon explained their misadventure; and the other told them that he was a
  • Cambridge undergraduate on a walking tour, that he had run short of
  • money, could no longer pay for his night's lodging, had already been
  • camping out for two nights, and feared he should require to continue the
  • same manoeuvre for at least two nights more.
  • "Luckily, it's jolly weather," he concluded.
  • "You hear that, Elvira," said Léon.--"Madame Berthelini," he went on,
  • "is ridiculously affected by this trifling occurrence. For my part, I
  • find it romantic and far from uncomfortable; or at least," he added,
  • shifting on the stone bench, "not quite so uncomfortable as might have
  • been expected. But pray be seated."
  • "Yes," returned the undergraduate, sitting down, "it's rather nice than
  • otherwise when once you're used to it; only it's devilish difficult to
  • get washed. I like the fresh air and these stars and things."
  • "Aha!" said Léon, "Monsieur is an artist."
  • "An artist?" returned the other, with a blank stare. "Not if I know it!"
  • "Pardon me," said the actor. "What you said this moment about the orbs
  • of heaven--"
  • "Oh, nonsense!" cried the Englishman. "A fellow may admire the stars and
  • be anything he likes."
  • "You have an artist's nature, however, Mr. ---- I beg your pardon; may
  • I, without indiscretion, inquire your name?" asked Léon.
  • "My name is Stubbs," replied the Englishman.
  • "I thank you," returned Léon. "Mine is Berthelini--Léon Berthelini,
  • ex-artist of the theatres of Montrouge, Belleville, and Montmartre.
  • Humble as you see me, I have created with applause more than one
  • important _rôle_. The Press were unanimous in praise of my Howling Devil
  • of the Mountains, in the piece of the same name. Madame, whom I now
  • present to you, is herself an artist, and I must not omit to state, a
  • better artist than her husband. She also is a creator; she created
  • nearly twenty successful songs at one of the principal Parisian
  • music-halls. But to continue: I was saying you had an artist's nature,
  • Monsieur Stubbs, and you must permit me to be a judge in such a
  • question. I trust you will not falsify your instincts; let me beseech
  • you to follow the career of an artist."
  • "Thank you," returned Stubbs, with a chuckle. "I'm going to be a
  • banker."
  • "No," said Léon, "do not say so. Not that. A man with such a nature as
  • yours should not derogate so far. What are a few privations here and
  • there, so long as you are working for a high and noble goal?"
  • "This fellow's mad," thought Stubbs: "but the woman's rather pretty, and
  • he's not bad fun himself, if you come to that." What he said was
  • different: "I thought you said you were an actor?"
  • "I certainly did so," replied Léon. "I am one, or, alas! I was."
  • "And so you want me to be an actor, do you?" continued the
  • undergraduate. "Why, man, I could never so much as learn the stuff; my
  • memory's like a sieve; and as for acting, I've no more idea than a cat."
  • "The stage is not the only course," said Léon. "Be a sculptor, be a
  • dancer, be a poet or a novelist; follow your heart, in short, and do
  • some thorough work before you die."
  • "And do you call all these things art?" inquired Stubbs.
  • "Why, certainly!" returned Léon. "Are they not all branches?"
  • "Oh! I didn't know," replied the Englishman. "I thought an artist meant
  • a fellow who painted."
  • The singer stared at him in some surprise.
  • "It is the difference of language," he said at last. "This Tower of
  • Babel, when shall we have paid for it? If I could speak English you
  • would follow me more readily."
  • "Between you and me, I don't believe I should," replied the other. "You
  • seem to have thought a devil of a lot about this business. For my part,
  • I admire the stars, and like to have them shining--it's so cheery--but
  • hang me if I had an idea it had anything to do with art! It's not in my
  • line, you see. I'm not intellectual; I have no end of trouble to scrape
  • through my exams., I can tell you! But I'm not a bad sort at bottom," he
  • added, seeing his interlocutor looked distressed even in the dim
  • star-shine, "and I rather like the play, and music, and guitars, and
  • things."
  • Léon had a perception that the understanding was incomplete. He changed
  • the subject.
  • "And so you travel on foot?" he continued. "How romantic! How
  • courageous! And how are you pleased with my land? How does the scenery
  • affect you among these wild hills of ours?"
  • "Well, the fact is," began Stubbs--he was about to say that he didn't
  • care for scenery, which was not at all true, being, on the contrary,
  • only an athletic undergraduate pretension; but he had begun to suspect
  • that Berthelini liked a different sort of meat, and substituted
  • something else: "The fact is, I think it jolly. They told me it was no
  • good up here; even the guide-book said so; but I don't know what they
  • meant. I think it is deuced pretty--upon my word, I do."
  • At this moment, in the most unexpected manner, Elvira burst into tears.
  • "My voice!" she cried. "Léon, if I stay here longer I shall lose my
  • voice!"
  • "You shall not stay another moment," cried the actor.
  • "If I have to beat in a door, if I have to burn the town, I shall find
  • you shelter."
  • With that, he replaced the guitar, and, comforting her with some
  • caresses, drew her arm through his.
  • "Monsieur Stubbs," said he, taking off his hat, "the reception I offer
  • you is rather problematical; but let me beseech you to give us the
  • pleasure of your society. You are a little embarrassed for the moment;
  • you must, indeed, permit me to advance what may be necessary. I ask it
  • as a favour; we must not part so soon after having met so strangely."
  • "Oh, come, you know," said Stubbs, "I can't let a fellow like you----"
  • And there he paused, feeling somehow or other on a wrong tack.
  • "I do not wish to employ menaces," continued Léon, with a smile; "but if
  • you refuse, indeed I shall not take it kindly."
  • "I don't quite see my way out of it," thought the undergraduate; and
  • then, after a pause, he said, aloud and ungraciously enough, "All right.
  • I--I'm very much obliged, of course." And he proceeded to follow them,
  • thinking in his heart, "But it's bad form, all the same, to force an
  • obligation on a fellow."
  • CHAPTER V
  • Léon strode ahead as if he knew exactly where he was going; the sobs of
  • Madame were still faintly audible, and no one uttered a word. A dog
  • barked furiously in a courtyard as they went by; then the church clock
  • struck two, and many domestic clocks followed or preceded it in piping
  • tones. And just then Berthelini spied a light. It burned in a small
  • house on the outskirts of the town, and thither the party now directed
  • their steps.
  • "It is always a chance," said Léon.
  • The house in question stood back from the street behind an open space,
  • part garden, part turnip-field; and several outhouses stood forward from
  • either wing at right angles to the front. One of these had recently
  • undergone some change. An enormous window, looking towards the north,
  • had been effected in the wall and roof, and Léon began to hope it was a
  • studio.
  • "If it's only a painter," he said, with a chuckle, "ten to one we get as
  • good a welcome as we want."
  • "I thought painters were principally poor," said Stubbs.
  • "Ah!" cried Léon, "you do not know the world as I do. The poorer the
  • better for us!"
  • And the trio advanced into the turnip-field.
  • The light was in the ground floor; as one window was brightly
  • illuminated and two others more faintly, it might be supposed that there
  • was a single lamp in one corner of a large apartment; and a certain
  • tremulousness and temporary dwindling showed that a live fire
  • contributed to the effect. The sound of a voice now became audible; and
  • the trespassers paused to listen. It was pitched in a high, angry key,
  • but had still a good, full, and masculine note in it. The utterance was
  • voluble, too voluble even to be quite distinct; a stream of words,
  • rising and falling, with ever and again a phrase thrown out by itself,
  • as if the speaker reckoned on its virtue.
  • Suddenly another voice joined in. This time it was a woman's; and if the
  • man were angry, the woman was incensed to the degree of fury. There was
  • that absolutely blank composure known to suffering males; that
  • colourless unnatural speech which shows a spirit accurately balanced
  • between homicide and hysterics; the tone in which the best of women
  • sometimes utter words worse than death to those most dear to them. If
  • Abstract Bones-and-Sepulchre were to be endowed with the gift of speech,
  • thus, and not otherwise, would it discourse. Léon was a brave man, and I
  • fear he was somewhat sceptically given (he had been educated in a
  • Papistical country), but the habit of childhood prevailed, and he
  • crossed himself devoutly. He had met several women in his career. It was
  • obvious that his instinct had not deceived him, for the male voice broke
  • forth instantly in a towering passion.
  • The undergraduate, who had not understood the significance of the
  • woman's contribution, pricked up his ears at the change upon the man.
  • "There's going to be a free fight," he opined.
  • There was another retort from the woman, still calm, but a little
  • higher.
  • "Hysterics?" asked Léon of his wife. "Is that the stage direction?"
  • "How should I know?" returned Elvira, somewhat tartly.
  • "Oh, woman, woman!" said Léon, beginning to open the guitar-case. "It is
  • one of the burdens of my life, Monsieur Stubbs; they support each other;
  • they always pretend there is no system; they say it's nature. Even
  • Madame Berthelini, who is a dramatic artist!"
  • "You are heartless, Léon," said Elvira; "that woman is in trouble."
  • "And the man, my angel?" inquired Berthelini, passing the ribbon of his
  • guitar. "And the man, _m'amour_?"
  • "He is a man," she answered.
  • "You hear that?" said Léon to Stubbs. "It is not too late for you. Mark
  • the intonation. And now," he continued, "what are we to give them?"
  • "Are you going to sing?" asked Stubbs.
  • "I am a troubadour," replied Léon. "I claim a welcome by and for my art.
  • If I were a banker, could I do as much?"
  • "Well, you wouldn't need, you know," answered the undergraduate.
  • "Egad," said Léon, "but that's true. Elvira, that is true."
  • "Of course it is," she replied. "Did you not know it?"
  • "My dear," answered Léon impressively, "I know nothing but what is
  • agreeable. Even my knowledge of life is a work of art superiorly
  • composed. But what are we to give them? It should be something
  • appropriate."
  • Visions of "Let dogs delight" passed through the under-graduate's mind;
  • but it occurred to him that the poetry was English and that he did not
  • know the air. Hence he contributed no suggestion.
  • "Something about our houselessness," said Elvira.
  • "I have it," cried Léon. And he broke forth into a song of Pierre
  • Dupont's:--
  • "Savez-vous où gite
  • Mai, ce joli mois?"
  • Elvira joined in; so did Stubbs, with a good ear and voice, but an
  • imperfect acquaintance with the music. Léon and the guitar were equal to
  • the situation. The actor dispensed his throat-notes with prodigality and
  • enthusiasm; and, as he looked up to heaven in his heroic way, tossing
  • the black ringlets, it seemed to him that the very stars contributed a
  • dumb applause to his efforts, and the universe lent him its silence for
  • a chorus. That is one of the best features of the heavenly bodies, that
  • they belong to everybody in particular; and a man like Léon, a chronic
  • Endymion who managed to get along without encouragement, is always the
  • world's centre for himself.
  • He alone--and it is to be noted, he was the worst singer of the
  • three--took the music seriously to heart, and judged the serenade from a
  • high artistic point of view. Elvira, on the other hand, was preoccupied
  • about their reception; and as for Stubbs, he considered the whole affair
  • in the light of a broad joke.
  • "Know you the lair of May, the lovely month?" went the three voices in
  • the turnip-field.
  • The inhabitants were plainly fluttered; the light moved to and fro,
  • strengthening in one window, paling in another; and then the door was
  • thrown open, and a man in a blouse appeared on the threshold carrying a
  • lamp. He was a powerful young fellow, with bewildered hair and beard,
  • wearing his neck open; his blouse was stained with oil-colours in a
  • harlequinesque disorder; and there was something rural in the droop and
  • bagginess of his belted trousers.
  • From immediately behind him, and indeed over his shoulder, a woman's
  • face looked out into the darkness; it was pale and a little weary,
  • although still young; it wore a dwindling, disappearing prettiness, soon
  • to be quite gone, and the expression was both gentle and sour, and
  • reminded one faintly of the taste of certain drugs. For all that, it was
  • not a face to dislike; when the prettiness had vanished, it seemed as if
  • a certain pale beauty might step in to take its place; and as both the
  • mildness and the asperity were characters of youth, it might be hoped
  • that, with years, both would merge into a constant, brave, and not
  • unkindly temper.
  • "What is all this?" cried the man.
  • CHAPTER VI
  • Léon had his hat in his hand at once. He came forward with his customary
  • grace; it was a moment which would have earned him a round of cheering
  • on the stage. Elvira and Stubbs advanced behind him, like a couple of
  • Admetus's sheep following the god Apollo.
  • "Sir," said Léon, "the hour is unpardonably late, and our little
  • serenade has the air of an impertinence. Believe me, sir, it is an
  • appeal. Monsieur is an artist, I perceive. We are here three artists
  • benighted and without shelter, one a woman--a delicate woman--in evening
  • dress--in an interesting situation. This will not fail to touch the
  • woman's heart of Madame, whom I perceive indistinctly behind Monsieur
  • her husband, and whose face speaks eloquently of a well-regulated mind.
  • Ah! Monsieur, Madame--one generous movement, and you make three people
  • happy! Two or three hours beside your fire--I ask it of Monsieur in the
  • name of Art--I ask it of Madame by the sanctity of womanhood."
  • The two, as by a tacit consent, drew back from the door.
  • "Come in," said the man.
  • "_Entrez_, Madame," said the woman.
  • The door opened directly upon the kitchen of the house, which was to all
  • appearance the only sitting-room. The furniture was both plain and
  • scanty; but there were one or two landscapes on the wall, handsomely
  • framed, as if they had already visited the committee-rooms of an
  • exhibition and been thence extruded. Léon walked up to the pictures and
  • represented the part of a connoisseur before each in turn, with his
  • usual dramatic insight and force. The master of the house, as if
  • irresistibly attracted, followed him from canvas to canvas with the
  • lamp. Elvira was led directly to the fire, where she proceeded to warm
  • herself, while Stubbs stood in the middle of the floor and followed the
  • proceedings of Léon with mild astonishment in his eyes.
  • "You should see them by daylight," said the artist.
  • "I promise myself that pleasure," said Léon. "You possess, sir, if you
  • will permit me an observation, the art of composition to a T."
  • "You are very good," returned the other. "But should you not draw nearer
  • to the fire?"
  • "With all my heart," said Léon.
  • And the whole party was soon gathered at the table over a hasty and not
  • an elegant cold supper, washed down with the least of small wines.
  • Nobody liked the meal, but nobody complained; they put a good face upon
  • it, one and all, and made a great clattering of knives and forks. To see
  • Léon eating a single cold sausage was to see a triumph; by the time he
  • had done he had got through as much pantomime as would have sufficed for
  • a baron of beef, and he had the relaxed expression of the over-eaten.
  • As Elvira had naturally taken a place by the side of Léon, and Stubbs as
  • naturally, although I believe unconsciously, by the side of Elvira, the
  • host and hostess were left together. Yet it was to be noted that they
  • never addressed a word to each other, nor so much as suffered their eyes
  • to meet. The interrupted skirmish still survived in ill-feeling; and the
  • instant the guests departed it would break forth again as bitterly as
  • ever. The talk wandered from this to that subject--for with one accord
  • the party had declared it was too late to go to bed; but those two never
  • relaxed towards each other; Goneril and Regan in a sisterly tiff were
  • not more bent on enmity.
  • It chanced that Elvira was so much tired by all the little excitements
  • of the night, that for once she laid aside her company manners, which
  • were both easy and correct, and in the most natural manner in the world
  • leaned her head on Léon's shoulder. At the same time, fatigue suggesting
  • tenderness, she locked the fingers of her right hand into those of her
  • husband's left; and, half-closing her eyes, dozed off into a golden
  • borderland between sleep and waking. But all the time she was not
  • unaware of what was passing, and saw the painter's wife studying her
  • with looks between contempt and envy.
  • It occurred to Léon that his constitution demanded the use of some
  • tobacco; and he undid his fingers from Elvira's in order to roll a
  • cigarette. It was gently done, and he took care that his indulgence
  • should in no other way disturb his wife's position. But it seemed to
  • catch the eye of the painter's wife with a special significancy. She
  • looked straight before her for an instant, and then, with a swift and
  • stealthy movement, took hold of her husband's hand below the table.
  • Alas! she might have spared herself the dexterity. For the poor fellow
  • was so overcome by this caress that he stopped with his mouth open in
  • the middle of a word, and by the expression of his face plainly declared
  • to all the company that his thoughts had been diverted into softer
  • channels.
  • If it had not been rather amiable, it would have been absurdly droll.
  • His wife at once withdrew her touch; but it was plain she had to exert
  • some force. Thereupon the young man coloured and looked for a moment
  • beautiful.
  • Léon and Elvira both observed the by-play, and a shock passed from one
  • to the other; for they were inveterate match-makers, especially between
  • those who were already married.
  • "I beg your pardon," said Léon suddenly. "I see no use in pretending.
  • Before we came in here we heard sounds indicating--if I may so express
  • myself--an imperfect harmony."
  • "Sir----" began the man.
  • But the woman was beforehand.
  • "It is quite true," she said. "I see no cause to be ashamed. If my
  • husband is mad I shall at least do my utmost to prevent the
  • consequences. Picture to yourself, Monsieur and Madame," she went on,
  • for she passed Stubbs over, "that this wretched person--a dauber, an
  • incompetent, not fit to be a sign-painter--receives this morning an
  • admirable offer from an uncle--an uncle of my own, my mother's brother,
  • and tenderly beloved--of a clerkship with nearly a hundred and fifty
  • pounds a year, and that he--picture to yourself!--he refuses it! Why?
  • For the sake of Art, he says. Look at his art, I say--look at it! Is it
  • fit to be seen? Ask him--is it fit to be sold? And it is for this,
  • Monsieur and Madame, that he condemns me to the most deplorable
  • existence, without luxuries, without comforts, in a vile suburb of a
  • country town. _O non!_" she cried, "_non--je ne me tairai pas--c'est
  • plus fort que moi!_ I take these gentlemen and this lady for judges--is
  • this kind? is it decent? is it manly? Do I not deserve better at his
  • hands after having married him and"--(a visible hitch)--"done everything
  • in the world to please him?"
  • I doubt if there ever were a more embarrassed company at a table; every
  • one looked like a fool; and the husband like the biggest.
  • "The art of Monsieur, however," said Elvira, breaking the silence, "is
  • not wanting in distinction."
  • "It has this distinction," said the wife, "that nobody will buy it."
  • "I should have supposed a clerkship----" began Stubbs.
  • "Art is Art," swept in Léon. "I salute Art. It is the beautiful, the
  • divine; it is the spirit of the world and the pride of life. But----"
  • And the actor paused.
  • "A clerkship----" began Stubbs.
  • "I'll tell you what it is," said the painter. "I am an artist, and as
  • this gentleman says, Art is this and the other; but of course, if my
  • wife is going to make my life a piece of perdition all day long, I
  • prefer to go and drown myself out of hand."
  • "Go!" said his wife. "I should like to see you!"
  • "I was going to say," resumed Stubbs, "that a fellow may be a clerk and
  • paint almost as much as he likes. I know a fellow in a bank who makes
  • capital water-colour sketches; he even sold one for seven-and-six."
  • To both the women this seemed a plank of safety; each hopefully
  • interrogated the countenance of her lord; even Elvira, an artist
  • herself!--but indeed there must be something permanently mercantile in
  • the female nature. The two men exchanged a glance; it was tragic; not
  • otherwise might two philosophers salute, as at the end of a laborious
  • life each recognised that he was still a mystery to his disciples.
  • Léon arose.
  • "Art is Art," he repeated sadly. "It is not water-colour sketches, nor
  • practising on a piano. It is a life to be lived."
  • "And in the meantime people starve!" observed the woman of the house.
  • "If that's a life, it is not one for me."
  • "I'll tell you what," burst forth Léon; "you, Madame, go into another
  • room and talk it over with my wife; and I'll stay here and talk it over
  • with your husband. It may come to nothing, but let's try."
  • "I am very willing," replied the young woman; and she proceeded to light
  • a candle. "This way, if you please." And she led Elvira upstairs into a
  • bedroom. "The fact is," said she, sitting down, "that my husband cannot
  • paint."
  • "No more can mine act," replied Elvira.
  • "I should have thought he could," returned the other; "he seems clever."
  • "He is so, and the best of men besides," said Elvira; "but he cannot
  • act."
  • "At least he is not a sheer humbug like mine; he can at least sing."
  • "You mistake Léon," returned his wife warmly. "He does not even pretend
  • to sing; he has too fine a taste; he does so for a living. And, believe
  • me, neither of the men are humbugs. They are people with a
  • mission--which they cannot carry out."
  • "Humbug or not," replied the other, "you came very near passing the
  • night in the fields; and, for my part, I live in terror of starvation. I
  • should think it was a man's mission to think twice about his wife. But
  • it appears not. Nothing is their mission but to play the fool. Oh!" she
  • broke out, "is it not something dreary to think of that man of mine? If
  • he could only do it, who would care? But no--not he--no more than I
  • can!"
  • "Have you any children?" asked Elvira.
  • "No; but then I may."
  • "Children change so much," said Elvira, with a sigh.
  • And just then from the room below there flew up a sudden snapping chord
  • on the guitar; one followed after another; then the voice of Léon joined
  • in; and there was an air being played and sung that stopped the speech
  • of the two women. The wife of the painter stood like a person
  • transfixed; Elvira, looking into her eyes, could see all manner of
  • beautiful memories and kind thoughts that were passing in and out of
  • her soul with every note; it was a piece of her youth that went before
  • her; a green French plain, the smell of apple-flowers, the far and
  • shining ringlets of a river, and the words and presence of love.
  • "Léon has hit the nail," thought Elvira to herself. "I wonder how."
  • The how was plain enough. Léon had asked the painter if there were no
  • air connected with courtship and pleasant times; and having learned what
  • he wished, and allowed an interval to pass, he had soared forth into
  • "O mon amante,
  • O mon désir,
  • Sachons cueillir
  • L'heure charmante!"
  • "Pardon me, Madame," said the painter's wife, "your husband sings
  • admirably well."
  • "He sings that with some feeling," replied Elvira critically, although
  • she was a little moved herself, for the song cut both ways in the upper
  • chamber; "but it is as an actor and not as a musician."
  • "Life is very sad," said the other; "it so wastes away under one's
  • fingers."
  • "I have not found it so," replied Elvira. "I think the good parts of it
  • last and grow greater every day."
  • "Frankly, how would you advise me?"
  • "Frankly, I would let my husband do what he wished. He is obviously a
  • very loving painter; you have not yet tried him as a clerk. And you
  • know--if it were only as the possible father of your children--it is as
  • well to keep him at his best."
  • "He is an excellent fellow," said the wife.
  • They kept it up till sunrise with music and all manner of
  • good-fellowship; and at sunrise, while the sky was still temperate and
  • clear, they separated on the threshold with a thousand excellent wishes
  • for each other's welfare. Castel-le-Gâchis was beginning to send up its
  • smoke against the golden east; and the church bell was ringing six.
  • "My guitar is a familiar spirit," said Léon, as he and Elvira took the
  • nearest way towards the inn; "it resuscitated a Commissary, created an
  • English tourist, and reconciled a man and wife."
  • Stubbs, on his part, went off into the morning with reflections of his
  • own.
  • "They are all mad," thought he, "all mad--but wonderfully decent."
  • END OF VOL. IV
  • PRINTED BY CASSELL AND COMPANY, LIMITED, LA BELLE SAUVAGE, LONDON, E.C.
  • End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Works of Robert Louis Stevenson -
  • Swanston Edition Vol. 4 (of 25), by Robert Louis Stevenson
  • *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK WORKS--R.L. STEVENSON, VOL 4 (OF 25) ***
  • ***** This file should be named 30700-8.txt or 30700-8.zip *****
  • This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org/3/0/7/0/30700/
  • Produced by Marius Masi, Jonathan Ingram and the Online
  • Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
  • Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
  • will be renamed.
  • Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
  • one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
  • (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
  • permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
  • set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
  • copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
  • protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
  • Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
  • charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
  • do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
  • rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
  • such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
  • research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
  • practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
  • subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
  • redistribution.
  • *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
  • THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
  • PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
  • To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
  • distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
  • (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
  • http://gutenberg.net/license).
  • Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic works
  • 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
  • and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
  • (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
  • the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
  • all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
  • If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
  • terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
  • entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
  • 1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
  • used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
  • agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
  • things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
  • even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
  • paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
  • and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works. See paragraph 1.E below.
  • 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
  • or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
  • collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
  • individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
  • located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
  • copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
  • works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
  • are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
  • freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
  • this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
  • the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
  • keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
  • 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
  • what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
  • a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
  • the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
  • before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
  • creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
  • Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
  • the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
  • States.
  • 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
  • 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
  • access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
  • whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
  • phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
  • copied or distributed:
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
  • 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
  • from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
  • posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
  • and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
  • or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
  • with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
  • work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
  • through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
  • Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
  • 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
  • with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
  • must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
  • terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
  • to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
  • permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
  • 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
  • work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
  • 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
  • electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
  • prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
  • active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License.
  • 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
  • compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
  • word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
  • distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
  • "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
  • posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.net),
  • you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
  • copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
  • request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
  • form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
  • 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
  • performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
  • unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
  • access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
  • that
  • - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
  • the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
  • you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
  • owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
  • has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
  • Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
  • must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
  • prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
  • returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
  • sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
  • address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
  • the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
  • - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
  • you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
  • does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License. You must require such a user to return or
  • destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
  • and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
  • Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
  • money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  • electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
  • of receipt of the work.
  • - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  • distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
  • forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
  • both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
  • Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
  • Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
  • 1.F.
  • 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
  • effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
  • public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
  • "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
  • corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
  • property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
  • computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
  • your equipment.
  • 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
  • of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
  • liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
  • fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
  • LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
  • PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
  • TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
  • LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
  • INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
  • DAMAGE.
  • 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
  • defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
  • receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
  • written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
  • received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
  • your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
  • the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
  • refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
  • providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
  • receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
  • is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
  • opportunities to fix the problem.
  • 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
  • in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
  • WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
  • WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
  • 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
  • warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
  • If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
  • law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
  • interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
  • the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
  • provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
  • 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
  • trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
  • providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
  • with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
  • promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
  • harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
  • that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
  • or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
  • work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
  • Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
  • Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
  • Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
  • electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
  • including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
  • because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
  • people in all walks of life.
  • Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
  • assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
  • goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
  • remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
  • and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
  • To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
  • and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
  • and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
  • Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  • Foundation
  • The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
  • 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
  • state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
  • Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
  • number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
  • http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
  • permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
  • The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
  • Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
  • throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
  • 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
  • business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
  • information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
  • page at http://pglaf.org
  • For additional contact information:
  • Dr. Gregory B. Newby
  • Chief Executive and Director
  • gbnewby@pglaf.org
  • Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation
  • Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
  • spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
  • increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
  • freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
  • array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
  • ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
  • status with the IRS.
  • The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
  • charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
  • States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
  • considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
  • with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
  • where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
  • SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
  • particular state visit http://pglaf.org
  • While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
  • have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
  • against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
  • approach us with offers to donate.
  • International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
  • any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
  • outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
  • Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
  • methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
  • ways including including checks, online payments and credit card
  • donations. To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
  • Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works.
  • Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
  • with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
  • Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
  • Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
  • editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
  • unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
  • keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
  • Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
  • http://www.gutenberg.net
  • This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
  • including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
  • Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
  • subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.